Home
  By Author [ A  B  C  D  E  F  G  H  I  J  K  L  M  N  O  P  Q  R  S  T  U  V  W  X  Y  Z |  Other Symbols ]
  By Title [ A  B  C  D  E  F  G  H  I  J  K  L  M  N  O  P  Q  R  S  T  U  V  W  X  Y  Z |  Other Symbols ]
  By Language
all Classics books content using ISYS

Download this book: [ ASCII | HTML | PDF ]

Look for this book on Amazon


We have new books nearly every day.
If you would like a news letter once a week or once a month
fill out this form and we will give you a summary of the books for that week or month by email.

Title: The Weavers: a tale of England and Egypt of fifty years ago - Complete
Author: Parker, Gilbert
Language: English
As this book started as an ASCII text book there are no pictures available.


*** Start of this LibraryBlog Digital Book "The Weavers: a tale of England and Egypt of fifty years ago - Complete" ***


THE WEAVERS

By Gilbert Parker



CONTENTS

  BOOK I
  I.        AS THE SPIRIT MOVED
  II.       THE GATES OF THE WORLD
  III.      BANISHED
  IV.       THE CALL

  BOOK II
  V.        THE WIDER WAY
  VI.       “HAST THOU NEVER BILLED A MANY”
   VII.      THE COMPACT
  VIII.     FOR HIS SOUL’S SAKE AND THE LAND’S SAKE
  IX.       THE LETTER, THE NIGHT, AND THE WOMAN
  X.        THE FOUR WHO KNEW
  XI.       AGAINST THE HOUR OF MIDNIGHT
  XII.      THE JEHAD AND THE LIONS
  XIII.     ACHMET THE ROPEMAKER STRIKES
  XIV.      BEYOND THE PALE

  BOOK III
  XV.       SOOLSBY’S HAND UPON THE CURTAIN
  XVI.      THE DEBT AND THE ACCOUNTING
  XVII.     THE WOMAN OF THE CROSS-ROADS
  XVIII.    TIME, THE IDOL-BREAKER
  XIX.      SHARPER THAN A SWORD
  XX.       EACH AFTER HIS OWN ORDER
  XXI.      “THERE IS NOTHING HIDDEN WHICH SHALL NOT BE REVEALED”
   XXII.     AS IN A GLASS DARKLY
  XXIII.    THE TENTS OF CUSHAN
  XXIV.     THE QUESTIONER
  XXV.      THE VOICE THROUGH THE DOOR
  XXVI.     “I OWE YOU NOTHING”
   XXVII.    THE AWAKENING

  BOOK IV
  XXVIII.   NAHOUM TURNS THE SCREW
  XXIX.     THE RECOIL
  XXX.      LACEY MOVES
  XXXI.     THE STRUGGLE IN THE DESERT
  XXXII.    FORTY STRIPES SAVE ONE
  XXXIII.   THE DARK INDENTURE
  XXXIV.    NAHOUM DROPS THE MASK

  BOOK V
  XXXV.     THE FLIGHT OF THE WOUNDED
  XXXVI.    “IS IT ALWAYS SO-IN LIFE?”
   XXXVII.   THE FLYING SHUTTLE
  XXXVIII.  JASPER KIMBER SPEAKS
  XXXIX.    FAITH JOURNEYS TO LONDON

  BOOK VI
  XL.       HYLDA SEEKS NAHOUM
  XLI.      IN THE LAND OF SHINAR
  XLII.     THE LOOM OF DESTINY



INTRODUCTION

When I turn over the hundreds of pages of this book, I have a feeling
that I am looking upon something for which I have no particular
responsibility, though it has a strange contour of familiarity. It is as
though one looks upon a scene in which one had lived and moved, with the
friendly yet half-distant feeling that it once was one’s own possession
but is so no longer. I should think the feeling to be much like that of
the old man whose sons, gone to distant places, have created their
own plantations of life and have themselves become the masters of
possessions. Also I suppose that when I read the story through again
from the first page to the last, I shall recreate the feeling in which
I lived when I wrote it, and it will become a part of my own identity
again. That distance between himself and his work, however, which
immediately begins to grow as soon as a book leaves the author’s hands
for those of the public, is a thing which, I suppose, must come to one
who produces a work of the imagination. It is no doubt due to the fact
that every piece of art which has individuality and real likeness to
the scenes and character it is intended to depict is done in a kind of
trance. The author, in effect, self-hypnotises himself, has created
an atmosphere which is separate and apart from that of his daily
surroundings, and by virtue of his imagination becomes absorbed in
that atmosphere. When the book is finished and it goes forth, when the
imagination is relaxed and the concentration of mind is withdrawn, the
atmosphere disappears, and then. One experiences what I feel when I take
up ‘The Weavers’ and, in a sense, wonder how it was done, such as it is.

The frontispiece of the English edition represents a scene in the House
of Commons, and this brings to my mind a warning which was given me
similar to that on my entering new fields outside the one in which
I first made a reputation in fiction. When, in a certain year, I
determined that I would enter the House of Commons I had many friends
who, in effect, wailed and gnashed their teeth. They said that it would
be the death of my imaginative faculties; that I should never write
anything any more; that all the qualities which make literature living
and compelling would disappear. I thought this was all wrong then, and
I know it is all wrong now. Political life does certainly interfere
with the amount of work which an author may produce. He certainly cannot
write a book every year and do political work as well, but if he does
not attempt to do the two things on the same days, as it were, but in
blocks of time devoted to each separately and respectively, he will
only find, as I have found, that public life the conflict of it, the
accompanying attrition of mind, the searching for the things which will
solve the problems of national life, the multitudinous variations of
character with which one comes in contact, the big issues suddenly
sprung upon the congregation of responsible politicians, all are
stimulating to the imagination, invigorating to the mind, and
marvellously freshening to every literary instinct. No danger to the
writer lies in doing political work, if it does not sap his strength
and destroy his health. Apart from that, he should not suffer. The very
spirit of statesmanship is imagination, vision; and the same quality
which enables an author to realise humanity for a book is necessary for
him to realise humanity in the crowded chamber of a Parliament.

So far as I can remember, whatever was written of The Weavers, no critic
said that it lacked imagination. Some critics said it was too crowded
with incident; that there was enough incident in it for two novels; some
said that the sweep was too wide, but no critic of authority declared
that the book lacked vision or the vivacity of a living narrative. It
is not likely that I shall ever write again a novel of Egypt, but I have
made my contribution to Anglo-Egyptian literature, and I do not think I
failed completely in showing the greatness of soul which enabled one man
to keep the torch of civilisation, of truth, justice, and wholesome love
alight in surroundings as offensive to civilisation as was Egypt in the
last days of Ismail Pasha--a time which could be well typified by the
words put by Bulwer Lytton in the mouth of Cardinal Richelieu:

       “I found France rent asunder,
        Sloth in the mart and schism in the temple;
        Broils festering to rebellion; and weak laws
        Rotting away with rust in antique sheaths.
        I have re-created France; and, from the ashes
        Of the old feudal and decrepit carcase,
        Civilisation on her luminous wings
        Soars, phoenix-like, to Jove!”

Critics and readers have endeavoured to identify the main
characteristics of The Weavers with figures in Anglo-Egyptian and
official public life. David Claridge was, however, a creature of the
imagination. It has been said that he was drawn from General Gordon. I
am not conscious of having taken Gordon for David’s prototype, though,
as I was saturated with all that had been written about Gordon, there
is no doubt that something of that great man may have found its way
into the character of David Claridge. The true origin of David Claridge,
however, may be found in a short story called ‘All the World’s Mad’, in
Donovan Pasha, which was originally published by Lady Randolph Churchill
in an ambitious but defunct magazine called ‘The Anglo-Saxon Review’.
The truth is that David Claridge had his origin in a fairly close
understanding of, and interest in, Quaker life. I had Quaker relatives
through the marriage of a connection of my mother, and the original of
Benn Claridge, the uncle of David, is still alive, a very old man, who
in my boyhood days wore the broad brim and the straight preacher-like
coat of the old-fashioned Quaker. The grandmother of my wife was also a
Quaker, and used the “thee” and “thou” until the day of her death.

Here let me say that criticism came to me from several quarters both
in England and America on the use of these words thee and thou, and
statements were made that the kind of speech which I put into David
Claridge’s mouth was not Quaker speech. For instance, they would not
have it that a Quaker would say, “Thee will go with me”--as though they
were ashamed of the sweet inaccuracy of the objective pronoun being used
in the nominative; but hundreds of times I have myself heard Quakers
use “thee” in just such a way in England and America. The facts are,
however, that Quakers differ extensively in their habits, and there grew
up in England among the Quakers in certain districts a sense of shame
for false grammar which, to say the least, was very childish. To be
deliberately and boldly ungrammatical, when you serve both euphony and
simplicity, is merely to give archaic charm, not to be guilty of an
offence. I have friends in Derbyshire who still say “Thee thinks,”
 etc., and I must confess that the picture of a Quaker rampant over my
deliberate use of this well-authenticated form of speech produced to
my mind only the effect of an infuriated sheep, when I remembered the
peaceful attribute of Quaker life and character. From another quarter
came the assurance that I was wrong when I set up a tombstone with a
name upon it in a Quaker graveyard. I received a sarcastic letter from
a lady on the borders of Sussex and Surrey upon this point, and I
immediately sent her a first-class railway ticket to enable her to visit
the Quaker churchyard at Croydon, in Surrey, where dead and gone Quakers
have tombstones by the score, and inscriptions on them also. It is a
good thing to be accurate; it is desperately essential in a novel.
The average reader, in his triumph at discovering some slight error of
detail, would consign a masterpiece of imagination, knowledge of life
and character to the rubbish-heap.

I believe that ‘The Weavers’ represents a wider outlook of life, closer
understanding of the problems which perplex society, and a clearer
view of the verities than any previous book written by me, whatever its
popularity may have been. It appealed to the British public rather more
than ‘The Right of Way’, and the great public of America and the Oversea
Dominions gave it a welcome which enabled it to take its place beside
‘The Right of Way’, the success of which was unusual.



NOTE

This book is not intended to be an historical novel, nor are its
characters meant to be identified with well-known persons connected with
the history of England or of Egypt; but all that is essential in the
tale is based upon, and drawn from, the life of both countries. Though
Egypt has greatly changed during the past generation, away from Cairo
and the commercial centres the wheels of social progress have turned but
slowly, and much remains as it was in the days of which this book is a
record in the spirit of the life, at least.

                       G. P.


     “Dost thou spread the sail, throw the spear, swing the axe, lay
     thy hand upon the plough, attend the furnace door, shepherd the
     sheep upon the hills, gather corn from the field, or smite the
     rock in the quarry? Yet, whatever thy task, thou art even as
     one who twists the thread and throws the shuttle, weaving the
     web of Life. Ye are all weavers, and Allah the Merciful, does
     He not watch beside the loom?”



CHAPTER I. AS THE SPIRIT MOVED

The village lay in a valley which had been the bed of a great river in
the far-off days when Ireland, Wales and Brittany were joined together
and the Thames flowed into the Seine. The place had never known turmoil
or stir. For generations it had lived serenely.

Three buildings in the village stood out insistently, more by the
authority of their appearance and position than by their size. One was a
square, red-brick mansion in the centre of the village, surrounded by a
high, redbrick wall enclosing a garden. Another was a big, low, graceful
building with wings. It had once been a monastery. It was covered
with ivy, which grew thick and hungry upon it, and it was called the
Cloistered House. The last of the three was of wood, and of no great
size--a severely plain but dignified structure, looking like some
council-hall of a past era. Its heavy oak doors and windows with
diamond panes, and its air of order, cleanliness and serenity, gave it
a commanding influence in the picture. It was the key to the history of
the village--a Quaker Meeting-house.

Involuntarily the village had built itself in such a way that it made
a wide avenue from the common at one end to the Meeting-house on the
gorse-grown upland at the other. With a demure resistance to the will
of its makers the village had made itself decorative. The people were
unconscious of any attractiveness in themselves or in their village.
There were, however, a few who felt the beauty stirring around them.
These few, for their knowledge and for the pleasure which it brought,
paid the accustomed price. The records of their lives were the only
notable history of the place since the days when their forefathers
suffered for the faith.

One of these was a girl--for she was still but a child when she died;
and she had lived in the Red Mansion with the tall porch, the wide
garden behind, and the wall of apricots and peaches and clustering
grapes. Her story was not to cease when she was laid away in the stiff
graveyard behind the Meeting-house. It was to go on in the life of her
son, whom to bring into the world she had suffered undeserved, and loved
with a passion more in keeping with the beauty of the vale in which she
lived than with the piety found on the high-backed seats in the Quaker
Meeting-house. The name given her on the register of death was Mercy
Claridge, and a line beneath said that she was the daughter of Luke
Claridge, that her age at passing was nineteen years, and that “her soul
was with the Lord.”

Another whose life had given pages to the village history was one of
noble birth, the Earl of Eglington. He had died twenty years after the
time when Luke Claridge, against the then custom of the Quakers, set up
a tombstone to Mercy Claridge’s memory behind the Meeting-house. Only
thrice in those twenty years had he slept in a room of the Cloistered
House. One of those occasions was the day on which Luke Claridge put up
the grey stone in the graveyard, three years after his daughter’s death.
On the night of that day these two men met face to face in the garden of
the Cloistered House. It was said by a passer-by, who had involuntarily
overheard, that Luke Claridge had used harsh and profane words to Lord
Eglington, though he had no inkling of the subject of the bitter talk.
He supposed, however, that Luke had gone to reprove the other for a
wasteful and wandering existence; for desertion of that Quaker religion
to which his grandfather, the third Earl of Eglington, had turned in
the second half of his life, never visiting his estates in Ireland, and
residing here among his new friends to his last day. This listener--John
Fairley was his name--kept his own counsel. On two other occasions had
Lord Eglington visited the Cloistered House in the years that passed,
and remained many months. Once he brought his wife and child. The former
was a cold, blue-eyed Saxon of an old family, who smiled distantly upon
the Quaker village; the latter, a round-headed, warm-faced youth, with a
bold, menacing eye, who probed into this and that, rushed here and there
as did his father; now built a miniature mill; now experimented at some
peril in the laboratory which had been arranged in the Cloistered House
for scientific experiments; now shot partridges in the fields where
partridges had not been shot for years; and was as little in the picture
as his adventurous father, though he wore a broad-brimmed hat, smiling
the while at the pain it gave to the simple folk around him.

And yet once more the owner of the Cloistered House returned alone. The
blue-eyed lady was gone to her grave; the youth was abroad. This time
he came to die. He was found lying on the floor of his laboratory with
a broken retort in fragments beside him. With his servant, Luke
Claridge was the first to look upon him lying in the wreck of his last
experiment, a spirit-lamp still burning above him, in the grey light
of a winter’s morning. Luke Claridge closed the eyes, straightened
the body, and crossed the hands over the breast which had been the
laboratory of many conflicting passions of life.

The dead man had left instructions that his body should be buried in the
Quaker graveyard, but Luke Claridge and the Elders prevented that--he
had no right to the privileges of a Friend; and, as the only son was
afar, and no near relatives pressed the late Earl’s wishes, the ancient
family tomb in Ireland received all that was left of the owner of the
Cloistered House, which, with the estates in Ireland and the title,
passed to the wandering son.



CHAPTER II. THE GATES OF THE WORLD

Stillness in the Meeting-house, save for the light swish of one
graveyard-tree against the window-pane, and the slow breathing of the
Quaker folk who filled every corner. On the long bench at the upper
end of the room the Elders sat motionless, their hands on their knees,
wearing their hats; the women in their poke-bonnets kept their gaze upon
their laps. The heads of all save three were averted, and they were
Luke Claridge, his only living daughter, called Faith, and his dead
daughter’s son David, who kept his eyes fixed on the window where the
twig flicked against the pane. The eyes of Faith, who sat on a bench at
one side, travelled from David to her father constantly; and if, once or
twice, the plain rebuke of Luke Claridge’s look compelled her eyes
upon her folded hands, still she was watchful and waiting, and seemed
demurely to defy the convention of unblinking silence. As time went on,
others of her sex stole glances at Mercy’s son from the depths of their
bonnets; and at last, after over an hour, they and all were drawn to
look steadily at the young man upon whose business this Meeting of
Discipline had been called. The air grew warmer and warmer, but no one
became restless; all seemed as cool of face and body as the grey gowns
and coats with grey steel buttons which they wore.

At last a shrill voice broke the stillness. Raising his head, one of the
Elders said: “Thee will stand up, friend.” He looked at David.

With a slight gesture of relief the young man stood up. He was good
to look at-clean-shaven, broad of brow, fine of figure, composed of
carriage, though it was not the composure of the people by whom he was
surrounded. They were dignified, he was graceful; they were consistently
slow of movement, but at times his quick gestures showed that he had
not been able to train his spirit to that passiveness by which he
lived surrounded. Their eyes were slow and quiet, more meditative than
observant; his were changeful in expression, now abstracted, now dark
and shining as though some inner fire was burning. The head, too, had
a habit of coming up quickly with an almost wilful gesture, and with an
air which, in others, might have been called pride.

“What is thy name?” said another owl-like Elder to him.

A gentle, half-amused smile flickered at the young man’s lips for an
instant, then, “David Claridge--still,” he answered.

His last word stirred the meeting. A sort of ruffle went through the
atmosphere, and now every eye was fixed and inquiring. The word was
ominous. He was there on his trial, and for discipline; and it was
thought by all that, as many days had passed since his offence was
committed, meditation and prayer should have done their work. Now,
however, in the tone of his voice, as it clothed the last word, there
was something of defiance. On the ear of his grandfather, Luke Claridge,
it fell heavily. The old man’s lips closed tightly, he clasped his hands
between his knees with apparent self-repression.

The second Elder who had spoken was he who had once heard Luke Claridge
use profane words in the Cloistered House. Feeling trouble ahead, and
liking the young man and his brother Elder, Luke Claridge, John Fairley
sought now to take the case into his own hands.

“Thee shall never find a better name, David,” he said, “if thee live a
hundred years. It hath served well in England. This thee didst do.
While the young Earl of Eglington was being brought home, with noise
and brawling, after his return to Parliament, thee mingled among the
brawlers; and because some evil words were said of thy hat and thy
apparel, thee laid about thee, bringing one to the dust, so that his
life was in peril for some hours to come. Jasper Kimber was his name.”

“Were it not that the smitten man forgave thee, thee would now be in a
prison cell,” shrilly piped the Elder who had asked his name.

“The fight was fair,” was the young man’s reply. “Though I am a Friend,
the man was English.”

“Thee was that day a son of Belial,” rejoined the shrill Elder. “Thee
did use thy hands like any heathen sailor--is it not the truth?”

“I struck the man. I punished him--why enlarge?”

“Thee is guilty?”

“I did the thing.”

“That is one charge against thee. There are others. Thee was seen
to drink of spirits in a public-house at Heddington that day.
Twice--thrice, like any drunken collier.”

“Twice,” was the prompt correction.

There was a moment’s pause, in which some women sighed and others folded
and unfolded their hands on their laps; the men frowned.

“Thee has been a dark deceiver,” said the shrill Elder again, and with
a ring of acrid triumph; “thee has hid these things from our eyes many
years, but in one day thee has uncovered all. Thee--”

“Thee is charged,” interposed Elder Fairley, “with visiting a play this
same day, and with seeing a dance of Spain following upon it.”

“I did not disdain the music,” said the young man drily; “the flute,
of all instruments, has a mellow sound.” Suddenly his eyes darkened, he
became abstracted, and gazed at the window where the twig flicked softly
against the pane, and the heat of summer palpitated in the air. “It has
good grace to my ear,” he added slowly.

Luke Claridge looked at him intently. He began to realize that there
were forces stirring in his grandson which had no beginning in Claridge
blood, and were not nurtured in the garden with the fruited wall. He was
not used to problems; he had only a code, which he had rigidly kept. He
had now a glimmer of something beyond code or creed.

He saw that the shrill Elder was going to speak. He intervened. “Thee is
charged, David,” he said coldly, “with kissing a woman--a stranger and
a wanton--where the four roads meet ‘twixt here and yonder town.” He
motioned towards the hills.

“In the open day,” added the shrill Elder, a red spot burning on each
withered cheek.

“The woman was comely,” said the young man, with a tone of irony,
recovering an impassive look.

A strange silence fell, the women looked down; yet they seemed not so
confounded as the men. After a moment they watched the young man with
quicker flashes of the eye.

“The answer is shameless,” said the shrill Elder. “Thy life is that of a
carnal hypocrite.”

The young man said nothing. His face had become very pale, his lips were
set, and presently he sat down and folded his arms.

“Thee is guilty of all?” asked John Fairley.

His kindly eye was troubled, for he had spent numberless hours in this
young man’s company, and together they had read books of travel and
history, and even the plays of Shakespeare and Marlowe, though drama was
anathema to the Society of Friends--they did not realize it in the life
around them. That which was drama was either the visitation of God or
the dark deeds of man, from which they must avert their eyes. Their own
tragedies they hid beneath their grey coats and bodices; their dirty
linen they never washed in public, save in the scandal such as this
where the Society must intervene. Then the linen was not only washed,
but duly starched, sprinkled, and ironed.

“I have answered all. Judge by my words,” said David gravely.

“Has repentance come to thee? Is it thy will to suffer that which we
may decide for thy correction?” It was Elder Fairley who spoke. He was
determined to control the meeting and to influence its judgment. He
loved the young man.

David made no reply; he seemed lost in thought. “Let the discipline
proceed--he hath an evil spirit,” said the shrill Elder.

“His childhood lacked in much,” said Elder Fairley patiently.

To most minds present the words carried home--to every woman who had a
child, to every man who had lost a wife and had a motherless son. This
much they knew of David’s real history, that Mercy Claridge, his mother,
on a visit to the house of an uncle at Portsmouth, her mother’s brother,
had eloped with and was duly married to the captain of a merchant ship.
They also knew that, after some months, Luke Claridge had brought her
home; and that before her child was born news came that the ship her
husband sailed had gone down with all on board. They knew likewise that
she had died soon after David came, and that her father, Luke Claridge,
buried her in her maiden name, and brought the boy up as his son,
not with his father’s name but bearing that name so long honoured in
England, and even in the far places of the earth--for had not Benn
Claridge, Luke’s brother, been a great carpet-merchant, traveller, and
explorer in Asia Minor, Egypt, and the Soudan--Benn Claridge of the
whimsical speech, the pious life? All this they knew; but none of them,
to his or her knowledge, had ever seen David’s father. He was legendary;
though there was full proof that the girl had been duly married. That
had been laid before the Elders by Luke Claridge on an occasion when
Benn Claridge, his brother was come among them again from the East.

At this moment of trial David was thinking of his uncle, Benn Claridge,
and of his last words fifteen years before when going once again to the
East, accompanied by the Muslim chief Ebn Ezra, who had come with him
to England on the business of his country. These were Benn Claridge’s
words: “Love God before all, love thy fellow-man, and thy conscience
will bring thee safe home, lad.”

“If he will not repent, there is but one way,” said the shrill Elder.

“Let there be no haste,” said Luke Claridge, in a voice that shook a
little in his struggle for self-control.

Another heretofore silent Elder, sitting beside John Fairley, exchanged
words in a whisper with him, and then addressed them. He was a very
small man with a very high stock and spreading collar, a thin face, and
large wide eyes. He kept his chin down in his collar, but spoke at the
ceiling like one blind, though his eyes were sharp enough on occasion.
His name was Meacham.

“It is meet there shall be time for sorrow and repentance,” he said.
“This, I pray you all, be our will: that for three months David live
apart, even in the hut where lived the drunken chair-maker ere he
disappeared and died, as rumour saith--it hath no tenant. Let it be that
after to-morrow night at sunset none shall speak to him till that time
be come, the first day of winter. Till that day he shall speak to no
man, and shall be despised of the world, and--pray God--of himself. Upon
the first day of winter let it be that he come hither again and speak
with us.”

On the long stillness of assent that followed there came a voice across
the room, from within a grey-and-white bonnet, which shadowed a delicate
face shining with the flame of the spirit within. It was the face of
Faith Claridge, the sister of the woman in the graveyard, whose soul
was “with the Lord,” though she was but one year older and looked much
younger than her nephew, David.

“Speak, David,” she said softly. “Speak now. Doth not the spirit move
thee?”

She gave him his cue, for he had of purpose held his peace till all had
been said; and he had come to say some things which had been churning
in his mind too long. He caught the faint cool sarcasm in her tone, and
smiled unconsciously at her last words. She, at least, must have reasons
for her faith in him, must have grounds for his defence in painful days
to come; for painful they must be, whether he stayed to do their
will, or went into the fighting world where Quakers were few and life
composite of things they never knew in Hamley.

He got to his feet and clasped his hands behind his back. After an
instant he broke silence.

“All those things of which I am accused, I did; and for them is asked
repentance. Before that day on which I did these things was there
complaint, or cause for it? Was my life evil? Did I think in secret that
which might not be done openly? Well, some things I did secretly. Ye
shall hear of them. I read where I might, and after my taste, many
plays, and found in them beauty and the soul of deep things. Tales
I have read, but a few, and John Milton, and Chaucer, and Bacon, and
Montaigne, and Arab poets also, whose books my uncle sent me. Was this
sin in me?”

“It drove to a day of shame for thee,” said the shrill Elder.

He took no heed, but continued: “When I was a child I listened to the
lark as it rose from the meadow; and I hid myself in the hedge that,
unseen, I might hear it sing; and at night I waited till I could hear
the nightingale. I have heard the river singing, and the music of the
trees. At first I thought that this must be sin, since ye condemn the
human voice that sings, but I could feel no guilt. I heard men and women
sing upon the village green, and I sang also. I heard bands of music.
One instrument seemed to me more than all the rest. I bought one
like it, and learned to play. It was the flute--its note so soft and
pleasant. I learned to play it--years ago--in the woods of Beedon beyond
the hill, and I have felt no guilt from then till now. For these things
I have no repentance.”

“Thee has had good practice in deceit,” said the shrill Elder.

Suddenly David’s manner changed. His voice became deeper; his eyes
took on that look of brilliance and heat which had given Luke Claridge
anxious thoughts.

“I did, indeed, as the spirit moved me, even as ye have done.”

“Blasphemer, did the spirit move thee to brawl and fight, to drink and
curse, to kiss a wanton in the open road? What hath come upon thee?”
 Again it was the voice of the shrill Elder.

“Judge me by the truth I speak,” he answered. “Save in these things my
life has been an unclasped book for all to read.”

“Speak to the charge of brawling and drink, David,” rejoined the little
Elder Meacham with the high collar and gaze upon the ceiling.

“Shall I not speak when I am moved? Ye have struck swiftly; I will draw
the arrow slowly from the wound. But, in truth, ye had good right to
wound. Naught but kindness have I had among you all; and I will answer.
Straightly have I lived since my birth. Yet betimes a torturing unrest
of mind was used to come upon me as I watched the world around us. I
saw men generous to their kind, industrious and brave, beloved by
their fellows; and I have seen these same men drink and dance and give
themselves to coarse, rough play like young dogs in a kennel. Yet, too,
I have seen dark things done in drink--the cheerful made morose, the
gentle violent. What was the temptation? What the secret? Was it but the
low craving of the flesh, or was it some primitive unrest, or craving of
the soul, which, clouded and baffled by time and labour and the wear of
life, by this means was given the witched medicament--a false freedom, a
thrilling forgetfulness? In ancient days the high, the humane, in search
of cure for poison, poisoned themselves, and then applied the antidote.
He hath little knowledge and less pity for sin who has never sinned.
The day came when all these things which other men did in my sight I
did--openly. I drank with them in the taverns--twice I drank. I met a
lass in the way. I kissed her. I sat beside her at the roadside and she
told me her brief, sad, evil story. One she had loved had left her. She
was going to London. I gave her what money I had--”

“And thy watch,” said a whispering voice from the Elders’ bench.

“Even so. And at the cross-roads I bade her goodbye with sorrow.”

“There were those who saw,” said the shrill voice from the bench.

“They saw what I have said--no more. I had never tasted spirits in my
life. I had never kissed a woman’s lips. Till then I had never struck my
fellow-man; but before the sun went down I fought the man who drove the
lass in sorrow into the homeless world. I did not choose to fight; but
when I begged the man Jasper Kimber for the girl’s sake to follow and
bring her back, and he railed at me and made to fight me, I took off my
hat, and there I laid him in the dust.”

“No thanks to thee that he did not lie in his grave,” observed the
shrill Elder.

“In truth I hit hard,” was the quiet reply.

“How came thee expert with thy fists?” asked Elder Fairley, with the
shadow of a smile.

“A book I bought from London, a sack of corn, a hollow leather ball, and
an hour betimes with the drunken chair-maker in the hut by the lime-kiln
on the hill. He was once a sailor and a fighting man.”

A look of blank surprise ran slowly along the faces of the Elders. They
were in a fog of misunderstanding and reprobation.

“While yet my father”--he looked at Luke Claridge, whom he had ever been
taught to call his father--“shared the great business at Heddington, and
the ships came from Smyrna and Alexandria, I had some small duties, as
is well known. But that ceased, and there was little to do. Sports are
forbidden among us here, and my body grew sick, because the mind had no
labour. The world of work has thickened round us beyond the hills. The
great chimneys rise in a circle as far as eye can see on yonder crests;
but we slumber and sleep.”

“Enough, enough,” said a voice from among the women. “Thee has a friend
gone to London--thee knows the way. It leads from the cross-roads!”

Faith Claridge, who had listened to David’s speech, her heart panting,
her clear grey eyes--she had her mother’s eyes--fixed benignly on him,
turned to the quarter whence the voice came. Seeing who it was--a widow
who, with no demureness, had tried without avail to bring Luke Claridge
to her--her lips pressed together in a bitter smile, and she said to her
nephew clearly:

“Patience Spielman hath little hope of thee, David. Hope hath died in
her.”

A faint, prim smile passed across the faces of all present, for all knew
Faith’s allusion, and it relieved the tension of the past half-hour.
From the first moment David began to speak he had commanded his hearers.
His voice was low and even; but it had also a power which, when put to
sudden quiet use, compelled the hearer to an almost breathless silence,
not so much to the meaning of the words, but to the tone itself, to
the man behind it. His personal force was remarkable. Quiet and pale
ordinarily, his clear russet-brown hair falling in a wave over his
forehead, when roused, he seemed like some delicate engine made to do
great labours. As Faith said to him once, “David, thee looks as though
thee could lift great weights lightly.” When roused, his eyes lighted
like a lamp, the whole man seemed to pulsate. He had shocked, awed,
and troubled his listeners. Yet he had held them in his power, and was
master of their minds. The interjections had but given him new means to
defend himself. After Faith had spoken he looked slowly round.

“I am charged with being profane,” he said. “I do not remember. But
is there none among you who has not secretly used profane words and,
neither in secret nor openly, has repented? I am charged with drinking.
On one day of my life I drank openly. I did it because something in me
kept crying out, ‘Taste and see!’ I tasted and saw, and know; and I know
that oblivion, that brief pitiful respite from trouble, which this
evil tincture gives. I drank to know; and I found it lure me into a new
careless joy. The sun seemed brighter, men’s faces seemed happier,
the world sang about me, the blood ran swiftly, thoughts swarmed in
my brain. My feet were on the mountains, my hands were on the sails of
great ships; I was a conqueror. I understood the drunkard in the first
withdrawal begotten of this false stimulant. I drank to know. Is there
none among you who has, though it be but once, drunk secretly as I drank
openly? If there be none, then I am condemned.”

“Amen,” said Elder Fairley’s voice from the bench. “In the open way by
the cross-roads I saw a woman. I saw she was in sorrow. I spoke to her.
Tears came to her eyes. I took her hand, and we sat down together. Of
the rest I have told you. I kissed her--a stranger. She was comely. And
this I know, that the matter ended by the cross-roads, and that by and
forbidden paths have easy travel. I kissed the woman openly--is there
none among you who has kissed secretly, and has kept the matter hidden?
For him I struck and injured, it was fair. Shall a man be beaten like a
dog? Kimber would have beaten me.”

“Wherein has it all profited?” asked the shrill Elder querulously.

“I have knowledge. None shall do these things hereafter but I shall
understand. None shall go venturing, exploring, but I shall pray for
him.”

“Thee will break thy heart and thy life exploring,” said Luke Claridge
bitterly. Experiment in life he did not understand, and even Benn
Claridge’s emigration to far lands had ever seemed to him a monstrous
and amazing thing, though it ended in the making of a great business in
which he himself had prospered, and from which he had now retired. He
suddenly realized that a day of trouble was at hand with this youth on
whom his heart doted, and it tortured him that he could not understand.

“By none of these things shall I break my life,” was David’s answer now.

For a moment he stood still and silent, then all at once he stretched
out his hands to them. “All these things I did were against our faith.
I desire forgiveness. I did them out of my own will; I will take up your
judgment. If there be no more to say, I will make ready to go to old
Soolsby’s hut on the hill till the set time be passed.”

There was a long silence. Even the shrill Elder’s head was buried in
his breast. They were little likely to forego his penalty. There was
a gentle inflexibility in their natures born of long restraint
and practised determination. He must go out into blank silence and
banishment until the first day of winter. Yet, recalcitrant as they held
him, their secret hearts were with him, for there was none of them but
had had happy commerce with him; and they could think of no more bitter
punishment than to be cut off from their own society for three months.
They were satisfied he was being trained back to happiness and honour.

A new turn was given to events, however. The little wizened Elder
Meacham said: “The flute, friend--is it here?”

“I have it here,” David answered.

“Let us have music, then.”

“To what end?” interjected the shrill Elder.

“He hath averred he can play,” drily replied the other. “Let us judge
whether vanity breeds untruth in him.”

The furtive brightening of the eyes in the women was represented in
the men by an assumed look of abstraction in most; in others by a bland
assumption of judicial calm. A few, however, frowned, and would have
opposed the suggestion, but that curiosity mastered them. These watched
with darkening interest the flute, in three pieces, drawn from an inner
pocket and put together swiftly.

David raised the instrument to his lips, blew one low note, and then
a little run of notes, all smooth and soft. Mellowness and a sober
sweetness were in the tone. He paused a moment after this, and seemed
questioning what to play. And as he stood, the flute in his hands, his
thoughts took flight to his Uncle Benn, whose kindly, shrewd face and
sharp brown eyes were as present to him, and more real, than those of
Luke Claridge, whom he saw every day. Of late when he had thought of
his uncle, however, alternate depression and lightness of spirit had
possessed him. Night after night he had troubled sleep, and he had
dreamed again and again that his uncle knocked at his door, or came and
stood beside his bed and spoke to him. He had wakened suddenly and said
“Yes” to a voice which seemed to call to him.

Always his dreams and imaginings settled round his Uncle Benn, until
he had found himself trying to speak to the little brown man across the
thousand leagues of land and sea. He had found, too, in the past that
when he seemed to be really speaking to his uncle, when it seemed
as though the distance between them had been annihilated, that soon
afterwards there came a letter from him. Yet there had not been more
than two or three a year. They had been, however, like books of many
pages, closely written, in Arabic, in a crabbed characteristic hand, and
full of the sorrow and grandeur and misery of the East. How many books
on the East David had read he would hardly have been able to say; but
something of the East had entered into him, something of the philosophy
of Mahomet and Buddha, and the beauty of Omar Khayyam had given a
touch of colour and intellect to the narrow faith in which he had been
schooled. He had found himself replying to a question asked of him in
Heddington, as to how he knew that there was a God, in the words of a
Muslim quoted by his uncle: “As I know by the tracks in the sand whether
a Man or Beast has passed there, so the heaven with its stars, the earth
with its fruits, show me that God has passed.” Again, in reply to the
same question, the reply of the same Arab sprang to his lips--“Does the
Morning want a Light to see it by?”

As he stood with his flute--his fingers now and then caressingly rising
and falling upon its little caverns, his mind travelled far to those
regions he had never seen, where his uncle traded, and explored.
Suddenly, the call he had heard in his sleep now came to him in this
waking reverie. His eyes withdrew from the tree at the window, as if
startled, and he almost called aloud in reply; but he realised where
he was. At last, raising the flute to his lips, as the eyes of Luke
Claridge closed with very trouble, he began to play.

Out in the woods of Beedon he had attuned his flute to the stir of
leaves, the murmur of streams, the song of birds, the boom and burden
of storm; and it was soft and deep as the throat of the bell-bird of
Australian wilds. Now it was mastered by the dreams he had dreamed
of the East: the desert skies, high and clear and burning, the desert
sunsets, plaintive and peaceful and unvaried--one lovely diffusion, in
which day dies without splendour and in a glow of pain. The long velvety
tread of the camel, the song of the camel-driver, the monotonous chant
of the river-man, with fingers mechanically falling on his little drum,
the cry of the eagle of the Libyan Hills, the lap of the heavy waters
of the Dead Sea down by Jericho, the battle-call of the Druses beyond
Damascus, the lonely gigantic figures at the mouth of the temple of Abou
Simbel, looking out with the eternal question to the unanswering desert,
the delicate ruins of moonlit Baalbec, with the snow mountains hovering
above, the green oases, and the deep wells where the caravans lay down
in peace--all these were pouring their influences on his mind in the
little Quaker village of Hamley where life was so bare, so grave.

The music he played was all his own, was instinctively translated from
all other influences into that which they who listened to him could
understand. Yet that sensuous beauty which the Quaker Society was so
concerned to banish from any part in their life was playing upon them
now, making the hearts of the women beat fast, thrilling them, turning
meditation into dreams, and giving the sight of the eyes far visions
of pleasure. So powerful was this influence that the shrill Elder twice
essayed to speak in protest, but was prevented by the wizened Elder
Meacham. When it seemed as if the aching, throbbing sweetness must
surely bring denunciation, David changed the music to a slow mourning
cadence. It was a wail of sorrow, a march to the grave, a benediction,
a soft sound of farewell, floating through the room and dying away into
the mid-day sun.

There came a long silence after, and David sat with unmoving look upon
the distant prospect through the window. A woman’s sob broke the air.
Faith’s handkerchief was at her eyes. Only one quick sob, but it
had been wrung from her by the premonition suddenly come that the
brother--he was brother more than nephew--over whom her heart had
yearned had, indeed, come to the cross-roads, and that their ways would
henceforth divide. The punishment or banishment now to be meted out to
him was as nothing. It meant a few weeks of disgrace, of ban, of what,
in effect, was self-immolation, of that commanding justice of the
Society which no one yet save the late Earl of Eglington had defied.
David could refuse to bear punishment, but such a possibility had never
occurred to her or to any one present. She saw him taking his punishment
as surely as though the law of the land had him in its grasp. It was not
that which she was fearing. But she saw him moving out of her life. To
her this music was the prelude of her tragedy.

A moment afterwards Luke Claridge arose and spoke to David in austere
tones: “It is our will that thee begone to the chair-maker’s but upon
the hill till three months be passed, and that none have speech with
thee after sunset to-morrow even.”

“Amen,” said all the Elders.

“Amen,” said David, and put his flute into his pocket, and rose to go.



CHAPTER III. BANISHED

The chair-maker’s hut lay upon the north hillside about half-way between
the Meeting-house at one end of the village and the common at the other
end. It commanded the valley, had no house near it, and was sheltered
from the north wind by the hill-top which rose up behind it a hundred
feet or more. No road led to it--only a path up from the green of the
village, winding past a gulley and the deep cuts of old rivulets now
over grown by grass or bracken. It got the sun abundantly, and it was
protected from the full sweep of any storm. It had but two rooms, the
floor was of sanded earth, but it had windows on three sides, east,
west, and south, and the door looked south. Its furniture was a plank
bed, a few shelves, a bench, two chairs, some utensils, a fireplace
of stone, a picture of the Virgin and Child, and of a cardinal of the
Church of Rome with a red hat--for the chair-maker had been a Roman
Catholic, the only one of that communion in Hamley. Had he been a
Protestant his vices would have made him anathema, but, being what he
was, his fellow-villagers had treated him with kindness.

After the half-day in which he was permitted to make due preparations,
lay in store of provisions, and purchase a few sheep and hens, hither
came David Claridge. Here, too, came Faith, who was permitted one hour
with him before he began his life of willing isolation. Little was said
as they made the journey up the hill, driving the sheep before them,
four strong lads following with necessities--flour, rice, potatoes, and
suchlike.

Arrived, the goods were deposited inside the hut, the lads were
dismissed, and David and Faith were left alone. David looked at his
watch. They had still a handful of minutes before the parting. These
flew fast, and yet, seated inside the door, and looking down at the
village which the sun was bathing in the last glowing of evening,
they remained silent. Each knew that a great change had come in their
hitherto unchanging life, and it was difficult to separate premonition
from substantial fact. The present fact did not represent all they felt,
though it represented all on which they might speak together now.

Looking round the room, at last Faith said: “Thee has all thee needs,
David? Thee is sure?”

He nodded. “I know not yet how little man may need. I have lived in
plenty.”

At that moment her eyes rested on the Cloistered House.

“The Earl of Eglington would not call it plenty.” A shade passed over
David’s face. “I know not how he would measure. Is his own field so
wide?”

“The spread of a peacock’s feather.”

“What does thee know of him?” David asked the question absently.

“I have eyes to see, Davy.” The shadows from that seeing were in her
eyes as she spoke, but he did not observe them.

“Thee sees but with half an eye,” she continued. “With both mine I have
seen horses and carriages, and tall footmen, and wine and silver, and
gilded furniture, and fine pictures, and rolls of new carpet--of Uncle
Benn’s best carpets, Davy--and a billiard-table, and much else.”

A cloud slowly gathered over David’s face, and he turned to her with an
almost troubled surprise. “Thee has seen these things--and how?”

“One day--thee was in Devon--one of the women was taken ill. They sent
for me because the woman asked it. She was a Papist; but she begged that
I should go with her to the hospital, as there was no time to send
to Heddington for a nurse. She had seen me once in the house of the
toll-gate keeper. Ill as she was, I could have laughed, for, as we went
in the Earl’s carriage to the hospital-thirty miles it was--she said she
felt at home with me, my dress being so like a nun’s. It was then I saw
the Cloistered House within and learned what was afoot.”

“In the Earl’s carriage indeed--and the Earl?”

“He was in Ireland, burrowing among those tarnished baubles, his titles,
and stripping the Irish Peter to clothe the English Paul.”

“He means to make Hamley his home? From Ireland these furnishings come?”

“So it seems. Henceforth the Cloistered House will have its doors flung
wide. London and all the folk of Parliament will flutter along the dunes
of Hamley.”

“Then the bailiff will sit yonder within a year, for he is but a starved
Irish peer.”

“He lives to-day as though he would be rich tomorrow. He bids for fame
and fortune, Davy.”

“‘Tis as though a shirtless man should wear a broadcloth coat over a
cotton vest.”

“The world sees only the broadcloth coat. For the rest--”

“For the rest, Faith?”

“They see the man’s face, and--”

His eyes were embarrassed. A thought had flashed into his mind which he
considered unworthy, for this girl beside him was little likely to dwell
upon the face of a renegade peer, whose living among them was a constant
reminder of his father’s apostasy. She was too fine, dwelt in such high
spheres, that he could not think of her being touched by the glittering
adventures of this daring young member of Parliament, whose book of
travels had been published, only to herald his understood determination
to have office in the Government, not in due time, but in his own time.
What could there be in common between the sophisticated Eglington and
this sweet, primitively wholesome Quaker girl?

Faith read what was passing in his mind. She flushed--slowly flushed
until her face--and eyes were one soft glow, then she laid a hand upon
his arm and said: “Davy, I feel the truth about him--no more. Nothing of
him is for thee or me. His ways are not our ways.” She paused, and then
said solemnly: “He hath a devil. That I feel. But he hath also a mind,
and a cruel will. He will hew a path, or make others hew it for him.
He will make or break. Nothing will stand in his way, neither man nor
thing, those he loves nor those he hates. He will go on--and to go on,
all means, so they be not criminal, will be his. Men will prophesy great
things for him--they do so now. But nothing they prophesy, Davy, keeps
pace with his resolve.”

“How does thee know these things?”

His question was one of wonder and surprise. He had never before seen in
her this sharp discernment and criticism.

“How know I, Davy? I know him by studying thee. What thee is not he is.
What he is thee is not.” The last beams of the sun sent a sudden glint
of yellow to the green at their feet from the western hills, rising far
over and above the lower hills of the village, making a wide ocean of
light, at the bottom of which lay the Meeting-house and the Cloistered
House, and the Red Mansion with the fruited wall, and all the others,
like dwellings at the bottom of a golden sea. David’s eyes were on the
distance, and the far-seeing look was in his face which had so deeply
impressed Faith in the Meeting-house, by which she had read his future.

“And shall I not also go on?” he asked.

“How far, who can tell?”

There was a plaintive note in her voice--the unavailing and sad protest
of the maternal spirit, of the keeper of the nest, who sees the brood
fly safely away, looking not back.

“What does thee see for me afar, Faith?” His look was eager.

“The will of God, which shall be done,” she said with a sudden
resolution, and stood up. Her hands were lightly clasped before her like
those of Titian’s Mater Dolorosa among the Rubens and Tintorettos of the
Prado, a lonely figure, whose lot it was to spend her life for others.
Even as she already had done; for thrice she had refused marriages
suitable and possible to her. In each case she had steeled her heart
against loving, that she might be all in all to her sister’s child and
to her father. There is no habit so powerful as the habit of care of
others. In Faith it came as near being a passion as passion could have
a place in her even-flowing blood, under that cool flesh, governed by
a heart as fair as the apricot blossoms on the wall in her father’s
garden. She had been bitterly hurt in the Meeting-house; as bitterly as
is many a woman when her lover has deceived her. David had acknowledged
before them all that he had played the flute secretly for years! That he
should have played it was nothing; that she should not have shared his
secret, and so shared his culpability before them all, was a wound which
would take long to heal.

She laid her hand upon his shoulder suddenly with a nervous little
motion.

“And the will of God thee shall do to His honour, though thee is outcast
to-day.... But, Davy, the music-thee kept it from me.”

He looked up at her steadily; he read what was in her mind.

“I hid it so, because I would not have thy conscience troubled. Thee
would go far to smother it for me; and I was not so ungrateful to thee.
I did it for good to thee.”

A smile passed across her lips. Never was woman so grateful, never wound
so quickly healed. She shook her head sadly at him, and stilling the
proud throbbing of her heart, she said:

“But thee played so well, Davy!”

He got up and turned his head away, lest he should laugh outright. Her
reasoning--though he was not worldly enough to call it feminine, and
though it scarce tallied with her argument--seemed to him quite her own.

“How long have we?” he said over his shoulder. “The sun is yet five
minutes up, or more,” she said, a little breathlessly, for she saw his
hand inside his coat, and guessed his purpose.

“But thee will not dare to play--thee will not dare,” she said, but more
as an invitation than a rebuke. “Speech was denied me here, but not my
music. I find no sin in it.”

She eagerly watched him adjust the flute. Suddenly she drew to him the
chair from the doorway, and beckoned him to sit down. She sat where she
could see the sunset.

The music floated through the room and down the hillside, a searching
sweetness.

She kept her face ever on the far hills. It went on and on. At last it
stopped. David roused himself, as from a dream. “But it is dark!”
 he said, startled. “It is past the time thee should be with me. My
banishment began at sunset.”

“Are all the sins to be thine?” she asked calmly. She had purposely let
him play beyond the time set for their being together.

“Good-night, Davy.” She kissed him on the cheek. “I will keep the music
for the sin’s remembrance,” she added, and went out into the night.



CHAPTER IV. THE CALL


“England is in one of those passions so creditable to her moral sense,
so illustrative of her unregulated virtues. We are living in the first
excitement and horror of the news of the massacre of Christians
at Damascus. We are full of righteous and passionate indignation.
‘Punish--restore the honour of the Christian nations’ is the proud
appeal of prelate, prig, and philanthropist, because some hundreds of
Christians who knew their danger, yet chose to take up their abode in a
fanatical Muslim city of the East, have suffered death.”

The meeting had been called in answer to an appeal from Exeter Hall.
Lord Eglington had been asked to speak, and these were among his closing
words.

He had seen, as he thought, an opportunity for sensation. Politicians of
both sides, the press on all hands, were thundering denunciations upon
the city of Damascus, sitting insolent and satiated in its exquisite
bloom of pear and nectarine, and the deed itself was fading into that
blank past of Eastern life where there “are no birds in last year’s
nest.” If he voyaged with the crowd, his pennant would be lost in the
clustering sails! So he would move against the tide, and would startle,
even if he did not convince.

“Let us not translate an inflamed religious emotion into a war,” he
continued. “To what good? Would it restore one single life in Damascus?
Would it bind one broken heart? Would it give light to one darkened
home? Let us have care lest we be called a nation of hypocrites. I will
neither support nor oppose the resolution presented; I will content
myself with pointing the way to a greater national self-respect.”

Mechanically, a few people who had scarcely apprehended the full force
of his remarks began to applaud; but there came cries of “‘Sh! ‘Sh!” and
the clapping of hands suddenly stopped. For a moment there was absolute
silence, in which the chairman adjusted his glasses and fumbled with the
agenda paper in his confusion, scarcely knowing what to do. The speaker
had been expected to second the resolution, and had not done so. There
was an awkward silence. Then, in a loud whisper, some one said:

“David, David, do thee speak.”

It was the voice of Faith Claridge. Perturbed and anxious, she had come
to the meeting with her father. They had not slept for nights, for the
last news they had had of Benn Claridge was from the city of Damascus,
and they were full of painful apprehensions.

It was the eve of the first day of winter, and David’s banishment was
over. Faith had seen David often at a distance--how often had she stood
in her window and looked up over the apricot-wall to the chair-maker’s
hut on the hill! According to his penalty David had never come to
Hamley village, but had lived alone, speaking to no one, avoided by all,
working out his punishment. Only the day before the meeting he had read
of the massacre at Damascus from a newspaper which had been left on
his doorstep overnight. Elder Fairley had so far broken the covenant of
ostracism and boycott, knowing David’s love for his Uncle Benn.

All that night David paced the hillside in anxiety and agitation,
and saw the sun rise upon a new world--a world of freedom, of
home-returning, yet a world which, during the past four months, had
changed so greatly that it would never seem the same again.

The sun was scarce two hours high when Faith and her father mounted the
hill to bring him home again. He had, however, gone to Heddington
to learn further news of the massacre. He was thinking of his Uncle
Benn-all else could wait. His anxiety was infinitely greater than
that of Luke Claridge, for his mind had been disturbed by frequent
premonitions; and those sudden calls in his sleep-his uncle’s
voice--ever seemed to be waking him at night. He had not meant to speak
at the meeting, but the last words of the speaker decided him; he was
in a flame of indignation. He heard the voice of Faith whisper over the
heads of the people. “David, David, do thee speak.” Turning, he met her
eyes, then rose to his feet, came steadily to the platform, and raised a
finger towards the chairman.

A great whispering ran through the audience. Very many recognised
him, and all had heard of him--the history of his late banishment and
self-approving punishment were familiar to them. He climbed the steps
of the platform alertly, and the chairman welcomed him with nervous
pleasure. Any word from a Quaker, friendly to the feeling of national
indignation, would give the meeting the new direction which all desired.

Something in the face of the young man, grown thin and very pale during
the period of long thought and little food in the lonely and meditative
life he had led; something human and mysterious in the strange tale of
his one day’s mad doings, fascinated them. They had heard of the liquor
he had drunk, of the woman he had kissed at the cross-roads, of the
man he had fought, of his discipline and sentence. His clean, shapely
figure, and the soft austerity of the neat grey suit he wore, his
broad-brimmed hat pushed a little back, showing well a square white
forehead--all conspired to send a wave of feeling through the audience,
which presently broke into cheering.

Beginning with the usual formality, he said: “I am obliged to differ
from nearly every sentiment expressed by the Earl of Eglington, the
member for Levizes, who has just taken his seat.”

There was an instant’s pause, the audience cheered, and cries of delight
came from all parts of the house. “All good counsel has its sting,” he
continued, “but the good counsel of him who has just spoken is a sting
in a wound deeper than the skin. The noble Earl has bidden us to be
consistent and reasonable. I have risen here to speak for that to which
mere consistency and reason may do cruel violence. I am a man of peace,
I am the enemy of war--it is my faith and creed; yet I repudiate the
principle put forward by the Earl of Eglington, that you shall not
clinch your hand for the cause which is your heart’s cause, because, if
you smite, the smiting must be paid for.”

He was interrupted by cheers and laughter, for the late event in his own
life came to them to point his argument.

“The nation that declines war may be refusing to inflict that just
punishment which alone can set the wrong-doers on the better course. It
is not the faith of that Society to which I belong to decline correction
lest it may seem like war.”

The point went home significantly, and cheering followed. “The high
wall of Tibet, a stark refusal to open the door to the wayfarer, I can
understand; but, friend”--he turned to the young peer--“friend, I cannot
understand a defence of him who opens the door upon terms of mutual
hospitality, and then, in the red blood of him who has so contracted,
blots out the just terms upon which they have agreed. Is that thy faith,
friend?”

The repetition of the word friend was almost like a gibe, though it was
not intended as such. There was none present, however, but knew of the
defection of the Earl’s father from the Society of Friends, and they
chose to interpret the reference to a direct challenge. It was a
difficult moment for the young Earl, but he only smiled, and cherished
anger in his heart.

For some minutes David spoke with force and power, and he ended with
passionate solemnity. His voice rang out: “The smoke of this burning
rises to Heaven, the winds that wail over scattered and homeless dust
bear a message of God to us. In the name of Mahomet, whose teaching
condemns treachery and murder, in the name of the Prince of Peace, who
taught that justice which makes for peace, I say it is England’s duty
to lay the iron hand of punishment upon this evil city and on the
Government in whose orbit it shines with so deathly a light. I fear it
is that one of my family and of my humble village lies beaten to death
in Damascus. Yet not because of that do I raise my voice here to-day.
These many years Benn Claridge carried his life in his hands, and in
a good cause it was held like the song of a bird, to be blown from his
lips in the day of the Lord. I speak only as an Englishman. I ask you
to close your minds against the words of this brilliant politician, who
would have you settle a bill of costs written in Christian blood, by a
promise to pay, got through a mockery of armed display in those waters
on which once looked the eyes of the Captain of our faith. Humanity has
been put in the witness-box of the world; let humanity give evidence.”

Women wept. Men waved their hats and cheered; the whole meeting rose to
its feet and gave vent to its feelings.

For some moments the tumult lasted, Eglington looking on with face
unmoved. As David turned to leave the table, however, he murmured,
“Peacemaker! Peacemaker!” and smiled sarcastically.

As the audience resumed their seats, two people were observed making
their way to the platform. One was Elder Fairley, leading the way to a
tall figure in a black robe covering another coloured robe, and wearing
a large white turban. Not seeing the new-comers, the chairman was about
to put the resolution; but a protesting hand from John Fairley stopped
him, and in a strange silence the two new-comers mounted the platform.
David rose and advanced to meet them. There flashed into his mind that
this stranger in Eastern garb was Ebn Ezra Bey, the old friend of Benn
Claridge, of whom his uncle had spoken and written so much. The same
instinct drew Ebn Ezra Bey to him--he saw the uncle’s look in the
nephew’s face. In a breathless stillness the Oriental said in perfect
English, with a voice monotonously musical:

“I came to thy house and found thee not. I have a message for thee from
the land where thine uncle sojourned with me.”

He took from a wallet a piece of paper and passed it to David, adding:
“I was thine uncle’s friend. He hath put off his sandals and walketh
with bare feet!” David read eagerly.

“It is time to go, Davy,” the paper said. “All that I have is thine. Go
to Egypt, and thee shall find it so. Ebn Ezra Bey will bring thee. Trust
him as I have done. He is a true man, though the Koran be his faith.
They took me from behind, Davy, so that I was spared temptation--I die
as I lived, a man of peace. It is too late to think how it might have
gone had we met face to face; but the will of God worketh not according
to our will. I can write no more. Luke, Faith, and Davy--dear Davy, the
night has come, and all’s well. Good morrow, Davy. Can you not hear me
call? I have called thee so often of late! Good morrow! Good morrow!...
I doff my hat, Davy--at last--to God!”

David’s face whitened. All his visions had been true visions, his dreams
true dreams. Brave Benn Claridge had called to him at his door--“Good
morrow! Good morrow! Good morrow!” Had he not heard the knocking and the
voice? Now all was made clear. His path lay open before him--a far land
called him, his quiet past was infinite leagues away. Already the staff
was in his hands and the cross-roads were sinking into the distance
behind. He was dimly conscious of the wan, shocked face of Faith in the
crowd beneath him, which seemed blurred and swaying, of the bowed
head of Luke Claridge, who, standing up, had taken off his hat in the
presence of this news of his brother’s death which he saw written in
David’s face. David stood for a moment before the great throng, numb and
speechless. “It is a message from Damascus,” he said at last, and could
say no more.

Ebn Ezra Bey turned a grave face upon the audience.

“Will you hear me?” he said. “I am an Arab.” “Speak--speak!” came from
every side.

“The Turk hath done his evil work in Damascus,” he said. “All the
Christians are dead--save one; he hath turned Muslim, and is safe.” His
voice had a note of scorn. “It fell sudden and swift like a storm in
summer. There were no paths to safety. Soldiers and those who led them
shared in the slaying. As he and I who had travelled far together these
many years sojourned there in the way of business, I felt the air grow
colder, I saw the cloud gathering. I entreated, but he would not go. If
trouble must come, then he would be with the Christians in their peril.
At last he saw with me the truth. He had a plan of escape. There was a
Christian weaver with his wife in a far quarter--against my entreaty he
went to warn them. The storm broke. He was the first to fall, smitten in
‘that street called Straight.’ I found him soon after. Thus did he speak
to me--even in these words: ‘The blood of women and children shed
here to-day shall cry from the ground. Unprovoked the host has turned
wickedly upon his guest. The storm has been sown, and the whirlwind must
be reaped. Out of this evil good shall come. Shall not the Judge of all
the earth do right?’ These were his last words to me then. As his life
ebbed out, he wrote a letter which I have brought hither to one”--he
turned to David--“whom he loved. At the last he took off his hat, and
lay with it in his hands, and died.... I am a Muslim, but the God of
pity, of justice, and of right is my God; and in His name be it said
that was a crime of Sheitan the accursed.”

In a low voice the chairman put the resolution. The Earl of Eglington
voted in its favour.

Walking the hills homeward with Ebn Ezra Bey, Luke, Faith, and John
Fairley, David kept saying over to himself the words of Benn Claridge:
“I have called thee so often of late. Good morrow! Good morrow! Good
morrow! Can you not hear me call?”



CHAPTER V. THE WIDER WAY

Some months later the following letter came to David Claridge in Cairo
from Faith Claridge in Hamley:

   David, I write thee from the village and the land of the people
   which thou didst once love so well. Does thee love them still?
   They gave thee sour bread to eat ere thy going, but yet thee didst
   grind the flour for the baking. Thee didst frighten all who knew
   thee with thy doings that mad midsummer time. The tavern, the
   theatre, the cross-roads, and the cockpit--was ever such a day!

   Now, Davy, I must tell of a strange thing. But first, a moment.
   Thee remembers the man Kimber smitten by thee at the public-house on
   that day? What think thee has happened? He followed to London the
   lass kissed by thee, and besought her to return and marry him. This
   she refused at first with anger; but afterwards she said that, if in
   three years he was of the same mind, and stayed sober and hard-
   working meanwhile, she would give him an answer, she would consider.
   Her head was high. She has become maid to a lady of degree, who has
   well befriended her.

   How do I know these things? Even from Jasper Kimber, who, on his
   return from London, was taken to his bed with fever. Because of the
   hard blows dealt him by thee, I went to make amends. He welcomed
   me, and soon opened his whole mind. That mind has generous moments,
   David, for he took to being thankful for thy knocks.

   Now for the strange thing I hinted. After visiting Jasper Kimber at
   Heddington, as I came back over the hill by the path we all took
   that day after the Meeting--Ebn Ezra Bey, my father, Elder Fairley,
   and thee and me--I drew near the chairmaker’s but where thee lived
   alone all those sad months. It was late evening; the sun had set.
   Yet I felt that I must needs go and lay my hand in love upon the
   door of the empty hut which had been ever as thee left it. So I
   came down the little path swiftly, and then round the great rock,
   and up towards the door. But, as I did so, my heart stood still,
   for I heard voices. The door was open, but I could see no one. Yet
   there the voices sounded, one sharp and peevish with anger, the
   other low and rough. I could not hear what was said. At last, a
   figure came from the door and went quickly down the hillside. Who,
   think thee, was it? Even “neighbour Eglington.” I knew the walk
   and the forward thrust of the head. Inside the hut all was still.
   I drew near with a kind of fear, but yet I came to the door and
   looked in.

   As I looked into the dusk, my limbs trembled under me, for who
   should be sitting there, a half-finished chair between his knees,
   but Soolsby the old chair-maker! Yes, it was he. There he sat
   looking at me with his staring blue eyes and shock of redgrey hair.
   “Soolsby! Soolsby!” said I, my heart hammering at my breast; for
   was not Soolsby dead and buried? His eyes stared at me in fright.
   “Why do you come?” he said in a hoarse whisper. “Is he dead, then?
   Has harm come to him?”

   By now I had recovered myself, for it was no ghost I saw, but a
   human being more distraught than was myself. “Do you not know me,
   Soolsby?” I asked. “You are Mercy Claridge from beyond--beyond and
   away,” he answered dazedly. “I am Faith Claridge, Soolsby,”
    answered I. He started, peered forward at me, and for a moment he
   did not speak; then the fear went from his face. “Ay, Faith
   Claridge, as I said,” he answered, with apparent understanding, his
   stark mood passing. “No, thee said Mercy Claridge, Soolsby,” said
   I, “and she has been asleep these many years.” “Ay, she has slept
   soundly, thanks be to God!” he replied, and crossed himself. “Why
   should thee call me by her name?” I inquired. “Ay, is not her tomb
   in the churchyard?” he answered, and added quickly, “Luke Claridge
   and I are of an age to a day--which, think you, will go first?”

   He stopped weaving, and peered over at me with his staring blue
   eyes, and I felt a sudden quickening of the heart. For, at the
   question, curtains seemed to drop from all around me, and leave me
   in the midst of pains and miseries, in a chill air that froze me to
   the marrow. I saw myself alone--thee in Egypt and I here, and none
   of our blood and name beside me. For we are the last, Davy, the
   last of the Claridges. But I said coldly, and with what was near to
   anger, that he should link his name and fate with that of Luke
   Claridge: “Which of ye two goes first is God’s will, and according
   to His wisdom. Which, think thee,” added I--and now I cannot
   forgive myself for saying it--“which, think thee, would do least
   harm in going?” “I know which would do most good,” he answered,
   with a harsh laugh in his throat. Yet his blue eyes looked kindly
   at me, and now he began to nod pleasantly. I thought him a little
   mad, but yet his speech had seemed not without dark meaning. “Thee
   has had a visitor,” I said to him presently. He laughed in a
   snarling way that made me shrink, and answered: “He wanted this and
   he wanted that--his high-handed, second-best lordship. Ay, and he
   would have it, because it pleased him to have it--like his father
   before him. A poor sparrow on a tree-top, if you tell him he must
   not have it, he will hunt it down the world till it is his, as
   though it was a bird of paradise. And when he’s seen it fall at
   last, he’ll remember but the fun of the chase; and the bird may get
   to its tree-top again--if it can--if it can--if it can, my lord!
   That is what his father was, the last Earl, and that is what he is
   who left my door but now. He came to snatch old Soolsby’s palace,
   his nest on the hill, to use it for a telescope, or such whimsies.
   He has scientific tricks like his father before him. Now is it
   astronomy, and now chemistry, and suchlike; and always it is the
   Eglington mind, which let God A’mighty make it as a favour. He
   would have old Soolsby’s palace for his spy-glass, would he then?
   It scared him, as though I was the devil himself, to find me here.
   I had but come back in time--a day later, and he would have sat here
   and seen me in the Pit below before giving way. Possession’s nine
   points were with me; and here I sat and faced him; and here he
   stormed, and would do this and should do that; and I went on with my
   work. Then he would buy my Colisyum, and I wouldn’t sell it for all
   his puffball lordship might offer. Isn’t the house of the snail as
   much to him as the turtle’s shell to the turtle? I’ll have no
   upstart spilling his chemicals here, or devilling the stars from a
   seat on my roof.” “Last autumn,” said I, “David Claridge was housed
   here. Thy palace was a prison then.” “I know well of that.
   Haven’t I found his records here? And do you think his makeshift
   lordship did not remind me?” “Records? What records, Soolsby?”
    asked I, most curious. “Writings of his thoughts which he forgot--
   food for mind and body left in the cupboard.” “Give them to me upon
   this instant, Soolsby,” said I. “All but one,” said he, “and that
   is my own, for it was his mind upon Soolsby the drunken chair-maker.
   God save him from the heathen sword that slew his uncle. Two better
   men never sat upon a chair!” He placed the papers in my hand, all
   save that one which spoke of him. Ah, David, what with the flute
   and the pen, banishment was no pain to thee!... He placed the
   papers, save that one, in my hands, and I, womanlike, asked again
   for all. “Some day,” said he, “come, and I will read it to you.
   Nay, I will give you a taste of it now,” he added, as he brought
   forth the writing. “Thus it reads.”

   Here are thy words, Davy. What think thee of them now?

   “As I dwell in this house I know Soolsby as I never knew him when he
   lived, and though, up here, I spent many an hour with him. Men
   leave their impressions on all around them. The walls which have
   felt their look and their breath, the floor which has taken their
   footsteps, the chairs in which they have sat, have something of
   their presence. I feel Soolsby here at times so sharply that it
   would seem he came again and was in this room, though he is dead and
   gone. I ask him how it came he lived here alone; how it came that
   he made chairs, he, with brains enough to build great houses or
   great bridges; how it was that drink and he were such friends; and
   how he, a Catholic, lived here among us Quakers, so singular,
   uncompanionable, and severe. I think it true, and sadly true, that
   a man with a vice which he is able to satisfy easily and habitually,
   even as another satisfies a virtue, may give up the wider actions of
   the world and the possibilities of his life for the pleasure which
   his one vice gives him, and neither miss nor desire those greater
   chances of virtue or ambition which he has lost. The simplicity of
   a vice may be as real as the simplicity of a virtue.”

   Ah, David, David, I know not what to think of those strange words;
   but old Soolsby seemed well to understand thee, and he called thee
   “a first-best gentleman.” Is my story long? Well, it was so
   strange, and it fixed itself upon my mind so deeply, and thy
   writings at the hut have been so much in my hands and in my mind,
   that I have put it all down here. When I asked Soolsby how it came
   he had been rumoured dead, he said that he himself had been the
   cause of it; but for what purpose he would not say, save that he was
   going a long voyage, and had made up his mind to return no more. “I
   had a friend,” he said, “and I was set to go and see that friend
   again.... But the years go on, and friends have an end. Life
   spills faster than the years,” he said. And he would say no more,
   but would walk with me even to my father’s door. “May the Blessed
   Virgin and all the Saints be with you,” he said at parting, “if you
   will have a blessing from them. And tell him who is beyond and away
   in Egypt that old Soolsby’s busy making a chair for him to sit in
   when the scarlet cloth is spread, and the East and West come to
   salaam before him. Tell him the old man says his fluting will be
   heard.”

   And now, David, I have told thee all, nearly. Remains to say that
   thy one letter did our hearts good. My father reads it over and
   over, and shakes his head sadly, for, truth is, he has a fear that
   the world may lay its hand upon thee. One thing I do observe, his
   heart is hard set against Lord Eglington. In degree it has ever
   been so; but now it is like a constant frown upon his forehead. I
   see him at his window looking out towards the Cloistered House; and
   if our neighbour comes forth, perhaps upon his hunter, or now in his
   cart, or again with his dogs, he draws his hat down upon his eyes
   and whispers to himself. I think he is ever setting thee off
   against Lord Eglington; and that is foolish, for Eglington is but a
   man of the earth earthy. His is the soul of the adventurer.

   Now what more to be set down? I must ask thee how is thy friend Ebn
   Ezra Bey? I am glad thee did find all he said was true, and that in
   Damascus thee was able to set a mark by my uncle’s grave. But that
   the Prince Pasha of Egypt has set up a claim against my uncle’s
   property is evil news; though, thanks be to God, as my father says,
   we have enough to keep us fed and clothed and housed. But do thee
   keep enough of thy inheritance to bring thee safe home again to
   those who love thee. England is ever grey, Davy, but without thee
   it is grizzled--all one “Quaker drab,” as says the Philistine. But
   it is a comely and a good land, and here we wait for thee.

   In love and remembrance.

   I am thy mother’s sister, thy most loving friend.

                       FAITH.

David received this letter as he was mounting a huge white Syrian donkey
to ride to the Mokattam Hills, which rise sharply behind Cairo, burning
and lonely and large. The cities of the dead Khalifas and Mamelukes
separated them from the living city where the fellah toiled, and Arab,
Bedouin, Copt strove together to intercept the fruits of his toiling, as
it passed in the form of taxes to the Palace of the Prince Pasha; while
in the dark corners crouched, waiting, the cormorant usurers--Greeks,
Armenians, and Syrians, a hideous salvage corps, who saved the house
of a man that they might at last walk off with his shirt and the cloth
under which he was carried to his grave. In a thousand narrow streets
and lanes, in the warm glow of the bazaars, in earth-damp huts, by
blistering quays, on the myriad ghiassas on the river, from long before
sunrise till the sunset-gun boomed from the citadel rising beside the
great mosque whose pinnacles seem to touch the blue, the slaves of
the city of Prince Kaid ground out their lives like corn between the
millstones.

David had been long enough in Egypt to know what sort of toiling it was.
A man’s labour was not his own. The fellah gave labour and taxes and
backsheesh and life to the State, and the long line of tyrants above
him, under the sting of the kourbash; the high officials gave backsheesh
to the Prince Pasha, or to his Mouffetish, or to his Chief Eunuch, or to
his barber, or to some slave who had his ear.

But all the time the bright, unclouded sun looked down on a smiling
land, and in Cairo streets the din of the hammers, the voices of the
boys driving heavily laden donkeys, the call of the camel-drivers
leading their caravans into the great squares, the clang of the brasses
of the sherbet-sellers, the song of the vendor of sweetmeats, the drone
of the merchant praising his wares, went on amid scenes of wealth and
luxury, and the city glowed with colour and gleamed with light. Dark
faces grinned over the steaming pot at the door of the cafes, idlers
on the benches smoked hasheesh, female street-dancers bared their faces
shamelessly to the men, and indolent musicians beat on their tiny drums,
and sang the song of “O Seyyid,” or of “Antar”; and the reciter gave
his sing-song tale from a bench above his fellows. Here a devout Muslim,
indifferent to the presence of strangers, turned his face to the East,
touched his forehead to the ground, and said his prayers. There, hung to
a tree by a deserted mosque near by, the body of one who was with
them all an hour before, and who had paid the penalty for some real
or imaginary crime; while his fellows blessed Allah that the storm had
passed them by. Guilt or innocence did not weigh with them; and the dead
criminal, if such he were, who had drunk his glass of water and prayed
to Allah, was, in their sight, only fortunate and not disgraced, and had
“gone to the bosom of Allah.” Now the Muezzin from a minaret called to
prayer, and the fellah in his cotton shirt and yelek heard, laid his
load aside, and yielded himself to his one dear illusion, which would
enable him to meet with apathy his end--it might be to-morrow!--and go
forth to that plenteous heaven where wives without number awaited him,
where fields would yield harvests without labour, where rich food in
gold dishes would be ever at his hand. This was his faith.

David had now been in the country six months, rapidly perfecting his
knowledge of Arabic, speaking it always to his servant Mahommed Hassan,
whom he had picked from the streets. Ebn Ezra Bey had gone upon his own
business to Fazougli, the tropical Siberia of Egypt, to liberate, by
order of Prince Kaid,--and at a high price--a relative banished there.
David had not yet been fortunate with his own business--the settlement
of his Uncle Benn’s estate--though the last stages of negotiation with
the Prince Pasha seemed to have been reached. When he had brought the
influence of the British Consulate to bear, promises were made, doors
were opened wide, and Pasha and Bey offered him coffee and talked to
him sympathetically. They had respect for him more than for most Franks,
because the Prince Pasha had honoured him with especial favour. Perhaps
because David wore his hat always and the long coat with high collar
like a Turk, or because Prince Kaid was an acute judge of human nature,
and also because honesty was a thing he greatly desired--in others--and
never found near his own person; however it was, he had set David high
in his esteem at once. This esteem gave greater certainty that any
backsheesh coming from the estate of Benn Claridge would not be sifted
through many hands on its way to himself. Of Benn Claridge Prince Kaid
had scarcely even heard until he died; and, indeed, it was only within
the past few years that the Quaker merchant had extended his business to
Egypt and had made his headquarters at Assiout, up the river.

David’s donkey now picked its way carefully through the narrow streets
of the Moosky. Arabs and fellaheen squatting at street corners looked at
him with furtive interest. A foreigner of this character they had never
before seen, with coat buttoned up like an Egyptian official in the
presence of his superior, and this wide, droll hat on his head. David
knew that he ran risks, that his confidence invited the occasional
madness of a fanatical mind, which makes murder of the infidel a
passport to heaven; but as a man he took his chances, and as a Christian
he believed he would suffer no mortal hurt till his appointed time. He
was more Oriental, more fatalist, than he knew. He had also early in his
life learned that an honest smile begets confidence; and his face, grave
and even a little austere in outline, was usually lighted by a smile.

From the Mokattam Hills, where he read Faith’s letter again, his back
against one of the forts which Napoleon had built in his Egyptian days,
he scanned the distance. At his feet lay the great mosque, and the
citadel, whose guns controlled the city, could pour into it a lava
stream of shot and shell. The Nile wound its way through the green
plains, stretching as far to the north as eye could see between the opal
and mauve and gold of the Libyan Hills. Far over in the western vista a
long line of trees, twining through an oasis flanking the city, led out
to a point where the desert abruptly raised its hills of yellow sand.
Here, enormous, lonely, and cynical, the pyramids which Cheops had
built, the stone sphinx of Ghizeh, kept faith with the desert in the
glow of rainless land-reminders ever that the East, the mother of
knowledge, will by knowledge prevail; that:

          “The thousand years of thy insolence
          The thousand years of thy faith,
          Will be paid in fiery recompense,
          And a thousand years of bitter death.”

“The sword--for ever the sword,” David said to himself, as he looked:
“Rameses and David and Mahomet and Constantine, and how many conquests
have been made in the name of God! But after other conquests there have
been peace and order and law. Here in Egypt it is ever the sword, the
survival of the strongest.”

As he made his way down the hillside again he fell to thinking upon all
Faith had written. The return of the drunken chair-maker made a deep
impression on him--almost as deep as the waking dreams he had had of his
uncle calling him.

“Soolsby and me--what is there between Soolsby and me?” he asked himself
now as he made his way past the tombs of the Mamelukes. “He and I are
as far apart as the poles, and yet it comes to me now, with a strange
conviction, that somehow my life will be linked with that of the drunken
Romish chair-maker. To what end?” Then he fell to thinking of his Uncle
Benn. The East was calling him. “Something works within me to hold me
here, a work to do.”

From the ramparts of the citadel he watched the sun go down, bathing the
pyramids in a purple and golden light, throwing a glamour over all
the western plain, and making heavenly the far hills with a plaintive
colour, which spoke of peace and rest, but not of hope. As he stood
watching, he was conscious of people approaching. Voices mingled, there
was light laughter, little bursts of admiration, then lower tones,
and then he was roused by a voice calling. He turned round. A group of
people were moving towards the exit from the ramparts, and near himself
stood a man waving an adieu.

“Well, give my love to the girls,” said the man cheerily. Merry faces
looked back and nodded, and in a moment they were gone. The man turned
round, and looked at David, then he jerked his head in a friendly sort
of way and motioned towards the sunset.

“Good enough, eh?”

“Surely, for me,” answered David. On the instant he liked the red,
wholesome face, and the keen, round, blue eyes, the rather opulent
figure, the shrewd, whimsical smile, all aglow now with beaming
sentimentality, which had from its softest corner called out: “Well,
give my love to the girls.”

“Quaker, or I never saw Germantown and Philadelphy,” he continued, with
a friendly manner quite without offence. “I put my money on Quakers
every time.”

“But not from Germantown or Philadelphia,” answered David, declining a
cigar which his new acquaintance offered.

“Bet you, I know that all right. But I never saw Quakers anywhere else,
and I meant the tribe and not the tent. English, I bet? Of course, or
you wouldn’t be talking the English language--though I’ve heard they
talk it better in Boston than they do in England, and in Chicago they’re
making new English every day and improving on the patent. If Chicago
can’t have the newest thing, she won’t have anything. ‘High hopes that
burn like stars sublime,’ has Chicago. She won’t let Shakespeare or
Milton be standards much longer. She won’t have it--simply won’t have
England swaggering over the English language. Oh, she’s dizzy, is
Chicago--simply dizzy. I was born there. Parents, one Philadelphy, one
New York, one Pawtucket--the Pawtucket one was the step-mother. Father
liked his wives from the original States; but I was born in Chicago. My
name is Lacey--Thomas Tilman Lacey of Chicago.”

“I thank thee,” said David.

“And you, sir?”

“David Claridge.”

“Of--?”

“Of Hamley.”

“Mr. Claridge of Hamley. Mr. Claridge, I am glad to meet you.” They
shook hands. “Been here long, Mr. Claridge?”

“A few months only.”

“Queer place--gilt-edged dust-bin; get anything you like here, from a
fresh gutter-snipe to old Haroun-al-Raschid. It’s the biggest jack-pot
on earth. Barnum’s the man for this place--P. T. Barnum. Golly, how
the whole thing glitters and stews! Out of Shoobra his High Jinks Pasha
kennels with his lions and lives with his cellars of gold, as if he
was going to take them with him where he’s going--and he’s going fast.
Here--down here, the people, the real people, sweat and drudge between
a cake of dourha, an onion, and a balass of water at one end of the day,
and a hemp collar and their feet off the ground at the other.”

“You have seen much of Egypt?” asked David, feeling a strange confidence
in the garrulous man, whose frankness was united to shrewdness and a
quick, observant eye.

“How much of Egypt I’ve seen, the Egypt where more men get lost,
strayed, and stolen than die in their beds every day, the Egypt where
a eunuch is more powerful than a minister, where an official will toss
away a life as I’d toss this cigar down there where the last Mameluke
captain made his great jump, where women--Lord A’mighty! where women are
divorced by one evil husband, by the dozen, for nothing they ever did
or left undone, and yet ‘d be cut to pieces by their own fathers if they
learned that ‘To step aside is human--’ Mr. Claridge, of that Egypt I
don’t know much more’n would entitle me to say, How d’ye do. But it’s
enough for me. You’ve seen something--eh?”

“A little. It is not civilised life here. Yet--yet a few strong
patriotic men--”

Lacey looked quizzically at David.

“Say,” he said, “I thought that about Mexico once. I said
Manana--this Manana is the curse of Mexico. It’s always
to-morrow--to-morrow--to-morrow. Let’s teach ‘em to do things to-day.
Let’s show ‘em what business means. Two million dollars went into that
experiment, but Manana won. We had good hands, but it had the joker.
After five years I left, with a bald head at twenty-nine, and a little
book of noble thoughts--Tips for the Tired, or Things you can say To-day
on what you can do to-morrow. I lost my hair worrying, but I learned
to be patient. The Dagos wanted to live in their own way, and they did.
It’s one thing to be a missionary and say the little word in season;
it’s another to run your soft red head against a hard stone wall. I went
to Mexico a conquistador, I left it a child of time, who had learned to
smile; and I left some millions behind me, too. I said to an old Padre
down there that I knew--we used to meet in the Cafe Manrique and drink
chocolate--I said to him, ‘Padre, the Lord’s Prayer is a mistake down
here.’ ‘Si, senor,’ he said, and smiled his far-away smile at me. ‘Yes,’
said I, ‘for you say in the Lord’s Prayer, “Give us this day our daily
bread.”’ ‘Si, senor,’ he says, ‘but we do not expect it till to-morrow!’
The Padre knew from the start, but I learned at great expense, and went
out of business--closed up shop for ever, with a bald head and my Tips
for the Tired. Well, I’ve had more out of it all, I guess, than if I’d
trebled the millions and wiped Manana off the Mexican coat of arms.”

“You think it would be like that here?” David asked abstractedly.

Lacey whistled. “There the Government was all right and the people all
wrong. Here the people are all right and the Government all wrong. Say,
it makes my eyes water sometimes to see the fellah slogging away. He’s
a Jim-dandy--works all day and half the night, and if the tax-gatherer
isn’t at the door, wakes up laughing. I saw one”--his light blue eyes
took on a sudden hardness--“laughing on the other side of his mouth one
morning. They were ‘kourbashing’ his feet; I landed on them as the soles
came away. I hit out.” His face became grave, he turned the cigar round
in his mouth. “It made me feel better, but I had a close call. Lucky for
me that in Mexico I got into the habit of carrying a pop-gun. It saved
me then. But it isn’t any use going on these special missions. We
Americans think a lot of ourselves. We want every land to do as we do;
and we want to make ‘em do it. But a strong man here at the head, with
a sword in his hand, peace in his heart, who’d be just and poor--how can
you make officials honest when you take all you can get yourself--! But,
no, I guess it’s no good. This is a rotten cotton show.”

Lacey had talked so much, not because he was garrulous only, but because
the inquiry in David’s eyes was an encouragement to talk. Whatever his
misfortunes in Mexico had been, his forty years sat lightly on him, and
his expansive temperament, his childlike sentimentality, gave him
an appearance of beaming, sophisticated youth. David was slowly
apprehending these things as he talked--subconsciously, as it were; for
he was seeing pictures of the things he himself had observed, through
the lens of another mind, as primitive in some regards as his own, but
influenced by different experiences.

“Say, you’re the best listener I ever saw,” added Lacey, with a laugh.

David held out his hand. “Thee sees things clearly,” he answered.

Lacey grasped his hand.

At that moment an orderly advanced towards them. “He’s after us--one of
the Palace cavalry,” said Lacey.

“Effendi--Claridge Effendi! May his grave be not made till the
karadh-gatherers return,” said the orderly to David.

“My name is Claridge,” answered David.

“To the hotel, effendi, first, then to the Mokattam Hills after thee,
then here--from the Effendina, on whom be God’s peace, this letter for
thee.”

David took the letter. “I thank thee, friend,” he said.

As he read it, Lacey said to the orderly in Arabic “How didst thou know
he was here?”

The orderly grinned wickedly.

“Always it is known what place the effendi honours. It is not dark where
he uncovers his face.”

Lacey gave a low whistle.

“Say, you’ve got a pull in this show,” he said, as David folded up the
letter and put it in his pocket.

“In Egypt, if the master smiles on you, the servant puts his nose in the
dust.”

“The Prince Pasha bids me to dinner at the Palace to-night. I have no
clothes for such affairs. Yet--” His mind was asking itself if this was
a door opening, which he had no right to shut with his own hand. There
was no reason why he should not go; therefore there might be a
reason why he should go. It might be, it no doubt was, in the way of
facilitating his business. He dismissed the orderly with an affirmative
and ceremonial message to Prince Kaid--and a piece of gold.

“You’ve learned the custom of the place,” said Lacey, as he saw the gold
piece glitter in the brown palm of the orderly.

“I suppose the man’s only pay is in such service,” rejoined David. “It
is a land of backsheesh. The fault is not with the people; it is with
the rulers. I am not sorry to share my goods with the poor.”

“You’ll have a big going concern here in no time,” observed Lacey. “Now,
if I had those millions I left in Mexico--” Suddenly he stopped. “Is it
you that’s trying to settle up an estate here--at Assiout--belonged to
an uncle?”

David inclined his head.

“They say that you and Prince Kaid are doing the thing yourselves, and
that the pashas and judges and all the high-mogul sharks of the Medjidie
think that the end of the world has come. Is that so?”

“It is so, if not completely so. There are the poor men and humble--the
pashas and judges and the others of the Medjidie, as thee said, are not
poor. But such as the orderly yonder--” He paused meditatively.

Lacey looked at David with profound respect. “You make the poorest your
partners, your friends. I see, I see. Jerusalem, that’s masterly! I
admire you. It’s a new way in this country.” Then, after a moment:
“It’ll do--by golly, it’ll do! Not a bit more costly, and you do some
good with it. Yes--it--will--do.”

“I have given no man money save in charity and for proper service done
openly,” said David, a little severely.

“Say--of course. And that’s just what isn’t done here. Everything goes
to him who hath, and from him who hath not is taken away even that which
he hath. One does the work and another gets paid--that’s the way here.
But you, Mr. Claridge, you clinch with the strong man at the top, and,
down below, you’ve got as your partners the poor man, whose name is
Legion. If you get a fall out of the man at the top, you’re solid with
the Legion. And if the man at the top gets up again and salaams and
strokes your hand, and says, ‘Be my brother,’ then it’s a full Nile,
and the fig-tree putteth forth its tender branches, and the date-palm
flourisheth, and at the village pond the thanksgiving turkey gobbles and
is glad. ‘Selah’!”

The sunset gun boomed out from the citadel. David turned to go, and
Lacey added:

“I’m waiting for a pasha who’s taking toll of the officers inside
there--Achmet Pasha. They call him the Ropemaker, because so many pass
through his hands to the Nile. The Old Muslin I call him, because he’s
so diaphanous. Thinks nobody can see through him, and there’s nobody
that can’t. If you stay long in Egypt, you’ll find that Achmet is the
worst, and Nahoum the Armenian the deepest, pasha in all this sickening
land. Achmet is cruel as a tiger to any one that stands in his way;
Nahoum, the whale, only opens out to swallow now and then; but when
Nahoum does open out, down goes Jonah, and never comes up again. He’s
a deep one, and a great artist is Nahoum. I’ll bet a dollar you’ll see
them both to-night at the Palace--if Kaid doesn’t throw them to the
lions for their dinner before yours is served. Here one shark is
swallowed by another bigger, till at last the only and original
sea-serpent swallows ‘em all.”

As David wound his way down the hills, Lacey waved a hand after him.

“Well, give my love to the girls,” he said.



CHAPTER VI. “HAST THOU NEVER KILLED A MAN?”

“Claridge Effendi!”

As David moved forward, his mind was embarrassed by many impressions.
He was not confused, but the glitter and splendour, the Oriental
gorgeousness of the picture into which he stepped, excited his
eye, roused some new sense in him. He was a curious figure in those
surroundings. The consuls and agents of all the nations save one were
in brilliant uniform, and pashas, generals, and great officials were
splendid in gold braid and lace, and wore flashing Orders on their
breasts. David had been asked for half-past eight o’clock, and he was
there on the instant; yet here was every one assembled, the Prince Pasha
included. As he walked up the room he suddenly realised this fact, and,
for a moment, he thought he had made a mistake; but again he remembered
distinctly that the letter said half-past eight, and he wondered now
if this had been arranged by the Prince--for what purpose? To afford
amusement to the assembled company? He drew himself up with dignity, his
face became graver. He had come in a Quaker suit of black broadcloth,
with grey steel buttons, and a plain white stock; and he wore his
broad-brimmed hat--to the consternation of the British Consul-General
and the Europeans present, to the amazement of the Turkish and native
officials, who eyed him keenly. They themselves wore red tarbooshes, as
did the Prince; yet all of them knew that the European custom of showing
respect was by doffing the hat. The Prince Pasha had settled that with
David, however, at their first meeting, when David had kept on his hat
and offered Kaid his hand.

Now, with amusement in his eyes, Prince Kaid watched David coming up the
great hall. What his object was in summoning David for an hour when
all the court and all the official Europeans should be already present,
remained to be seen. As David entered, Kaid was busy receiving salaams,
and returning greeting, but with an eye to the singularly boyish yet
gallant figure approaching. By the time David had reached the group, the
Prince Pasha was ready to receive him.

“Friend, I am glad to welcome thee,” said the Effendina, sly humour
lurking at the corner of his eye. Conscious of the amazement of all
present, he held out his hand to David.

“May thy coming be as the morning dew, friend,” he added, taking David’s
willing hand.

“And thy feet, Kaid, wall in goodly paths, by the grace of God the
compassionate and merciful.”

As a wind, unfelt, stirs the leaves of a forest, making it rustle
delicately, a whisper swept through the room. Official Egypt was
dumfounded. Many had heard of David, a few had seen him, and now all
eyed with inquisitive interest one who defied so many of the customs of
his countrymen; who kept on his hat; who used a Mahommedan salutation
like a true believer; whom the Effendina honoured--and presently
honoured in an unusual degree by seating him at table opposite himself,
where his Chief Chamberlain was used to sit.

During dinner Kaid addressed his conversation again and again to David,
asking questions put to disconcert the consuls and other official folk
present, confident in the naive reply which would be returned. For there
was a keen truthfulness in the young man’s words which, however suave
and carefully balanced, however gravely simple and tactful, left no
doubt as to their meaning. There was nothing in them which could be
challenged, could be construed into active criticism of men or things;
and yet much he said was horrifying. It made Achmet Pasha sit up
aghast, and Nahoum Pasha, the astute Armenian, for a long time past the
confidant and favourite of the Prince Pasha, laugh in his throat; for,
if there was a man in Egypt who enjoyed the thrust of a word or the
bite of a phrase, it was Nahoum. Christian though he was, he was,
nevertheless, Oriental to his farthermost corner, and had the culture of
a French savant. He had also the primitive view of life, and the morals
of a race who, in the clash of East and West, set against Western
character and directness, and loyalty to the terms of a bargain, the
demoralised cunning of the desert folk; the circuitous tactics of those
who believed that no man spoke the truth directly, that it must ever
be found beneath devious and misleading words, to be tracked like a
panther, as an Antipodean bushman once said, “through the sinuosities
of the underbrush.” Nahoum Pasha had also a rich sense of grim humour.
Perhaps that was why he had lived so near the person of the Prince, had
held office so long. There were no Grand Viziers in Egypt; but he was
as much like one as possible, and he had one uncommon virtue, he was
greatly generous. If he took with his right hand he gave with his left;
and Mahommedan as well as Copt and Armenian, and beggars of every race
and creed, hung about his doors each morning to receive the food and
alms he gave freely.

After one of David’s answers to Kaid, which had had the effect
of causing his Highness to turn a sharp corner of conversation by
addressing himself to the French consul, Nahoum said suavely:

“And so, monsieur, you think that we hold life lightly in the East--that
it is a characteristic of civilisation to make life more sacred, to
cherish it more fondly?”

He was sitting beside David, and though he asked the question casually,
and with apparent intention only of keeping talk going, there was a
lurking inquisition in his eye. He had seen enough to-night to make
him sure that Kaid had once more got the idea of making a European
his confidant and adviser; to introduce to his court one of those
mad Englishmen who cared nothing for gold--only for power; who loved
administration for the sake of administration and the foolish joy of
labour. He was now set to see what sort of match this intellect could
play, when faced by the inherent contradictions present in all truths or
the solutions of all problems.

“It is one of the characteristics of that which lies behind
civilisation, as thee and me have been taught,” answered David.

Nahoum was quick in strategy, but he was unprepared for David’s
knowledge that he was an Armenian Christian, and he had looked for
another answer.

But he kept his head and rose to the occasion. “Ah, it is high, it is
noble, to save life--it is so easy to destroy it,” he answered. “I saw
his Highness put his life in danger once to save a dog from drowning. To
cherish the lives of others, and to be careless of our own; to give
that of great value as though it were of no worth--is it not the
Great Lesson?” He said it with such an air of sincerity, with such
dissimulation, that, for the moment, David was deceived. There was,
however, on the face of the listening Kaid a curious, cynical smile. He
had heard all, and he knew the sardonic meaning behind Nahoum’s words.

Fat High Pasha, the Chief Chamberlain, the corrupt and corruptible,
intervened. “It is not so hard to be careless when care would be
useless,” he said, with a chuckle. “When the khamsin blows the
dust-storms upon the caravan, the camel-driver hath no care for his
camels. ‘Malaish!’ he says, and buries his face in his yelek.”

“Life is beautiful and so difficult--to save,” observed Nahoum, in
a tone meant to tempt David on one hand and to reach the ears of the
notorious Achmet Pasha, whose extortions, cruelties, and taxations had
built his master’s palaces, bribed his harem, given him money to pay
the interest on his European loans, and made himself the richest man in
Egypt, whose spies were everywhere, whose shadow was across every man’s
path. Kaid might slay, might toss a pasha or a slave into the Nile now
and then, might invite a Bey to visit him, and stroke his beard and call
him brother and put diamond-dust in the coffee he drank, so that he
died before two suns came and went again, “of inflammation and a natural
death”; but he, Achmet Pasha, was the dark Inquisitor who tortured every
day, for whose death all men prayed, and whom some would have slain, but
that another worse than himself might succeed him.

At Nahoum’s words the dusky brown of Achmet’s face turned as black as
the sudden dilation of the pupil of an eye deepens its hue, and he said
with a guttural accent:

“Every man hath a time to die.”

“But not his own time,” answered Nahoum maliciously.

“It would appear that in Egypt he hath not always the choice of the
fashion or the time,” remarked David calmly. He had read the malice
behind their words, and there had flashed into his own mind tales told
him, with every circumstance of accuracy, of deaths within and without
the Palace. Also he was now aware that Nahoum had mocked him. He was
concerned to make it clear that he was not wholly beguiled.

“Is there, then, for a man choice of fashion or time in England,
effendi?” asked Nahoum, with assumed innocence.

“In England it is a matter between the Giver and Taker of life and
himself--save where murder does its work,” said David.

“And here it is between man and man--is it that you would say?” asked
Nahoum.

“There seem wider privileges here,” answered David drily.

“Accidents will happen, privileges or no,” rejoined Nahoum, with
lowering eyelids.

The Prince intervened. “Thy own faith forbids the sword, forbids war,
or--punishment.”

“The Prophet I follow was called the Prince of Peace, friend,” answered
David, bowing gravely across the table.

“Hast thou never killed a man?” asked Kaid, with interest in his eyes.
He asked the question as a man might ask another if he had never visited
Paris.

“Never, by the goodness of God, never,” answered David.

“Neither in punishment nor in battle?”

“I am neither judge nor soldier, friend.”

“Inshallah, thou hast yet far to go! Thou art young yet. Who can tell?”

“I have never so far to go as that, friend,” said David, in a voice that
rang a little.

“To-morrow is no man’s gift.”

David was about to answer, but chancing to raise his eyes above the
Prince Pasha’s head, his glance was arrested and startled by seeing a
face--the face of a woman-looking out of a panel in a mooshrabieh screen
in a gallery above. He would not have dwelt upon the incident, he would
have set it down to the curiosity of a woman of the harem, but that
the face looking out was that of an English girl, and peering over her
shoulder was the dark, handsome face of an Egyptian or a Turk.

Self-control was the habit of his life, the training of his faith,
and, as a rule, his face gave little evidence of inner excitement.
Demonstration was discouraged, if not forbidden, among the Quakers, and
if, to others, it gave a cold and austere manner, in David it tempered
to a warm stillness the powerful impulses in him, the rivers of feeling
which sometimes roared through his veins.

Only Nahoum Pasha had noticed his arrested look, so motionless did he
sit; and now, without replying, he bowed gravely and deferentially to
Kaid, who rose from the table. He followed with the rest. Presently the
Prince sent Higli Pasha to ask his nearer presence.

The Prince made a motion of his hand, and the circle withdrew. He waved
David to a seat.

“To-morrow thy business shall be settled,” said the Prince suavely, “and
on such terms as will not startle. Death-tribute is no new thing in the
East. It is fortunate for thee that the tribute is from thy hand to my
hand, and not through many others to mine.”

“I am conscious I have been treated with favour, friend,” said David.
“I would that I might show thee kindness. Though how may a man of no
account make return to a great Prince?”

“By the beard of my father, it is easily done, if thy kindness is a
real thing, and not that which makes me poorer the more I have of it--as
though one should be given a herd of horses which must not be sold but
still must be fed.”

“I have given thee truth. Is not truth cheaper than falsehood?”

“It is the most expensive thing in Egypt; so that I despair of buying
thee. Yet I would buy thee to remain here--here at my court; here by my
hand which will give thee the labour thou lovest, and will defend thee
if defence be needed. Thou hast not greed, thou hast no thirst for
honour, yet thou hast wisdom beyond thy years. Kaid has never besought
men, but he beseeches thee. Once there was in Egypt, Joseph, a wise
youth, who served a Pharaoh, and was his chief counsellor, and it was
well with the land. Thy name is a good name; well-being may follow thee.
The ages have gone, and the rest of the world has changed, but Egypt is
the same Egypt, the Nile rises and falls, and the old lean years and fat
years come and go. Though I am in truth a Turk, and those who serve
and rob me here are Turks, yet the fellah is the same as he was five
thousand years ago. What Joseph the Israelite did, thou canst do; for
I am no more unjust than was that Rameses whom Joseph served. Wilt thou
stay with me?”

David looked at Kaid as though he would read in his face the reply that
he must make, but he did not see Kaid; he saw, rather, the face of
one he had loved more than Jonathan had been loved by the young
shepherd-prince of Israel. In his ears he heard the voice that had
called him in his sleep-the voice of Benn Claridge; and, at the same
instant, there flashed into his mind a picture of himself fighting
outside the tavern beyond Hamley and bidding farewell to the girl at the
crossroads.

“Friend, I cannot answer thee now,” he said, in a troubled voice.

Kaid rose. “I will give thee an hour to think upon it. Come with me.” He
stepped forward. “To-morrow I will answer thee, Kaid.”

“To-morrow there is work for thee to do. Come.” David followed him.

The eyes that followed the Prince and the Quaker were not friendly.
What Kaid had long foreshadowed seemed at hand: the coming of a European
counsellor and confidant. They realised that in the man who had just
left the room with Kaid there were characteristics unlike those they had
ever met before in Europeans.

“A madman,” whispered High Pasha to Achmet the Ropemaker.

“Then his will be the fate of the swine of Gadarene,” said Nahoum Pasha,
who had heard.

“At least one need not argue with a madman.” The face of Achmet the
Ropemaker was not more pleasant than his dark words.

“It is not the madman with whom you have to deal, but his keeper,”
 rejoined Nahoum.

Nahoum’s face was heavier than usual. Going to weight, he was still
muscular and well groomed. His light brown beard and hair and blue eyes
gave him a look almost Saxon, and bland power spoke in his face and in
every gesture.

He was seldom without the string of beads so many Orientals love
to carry, and, Armenian Christian as he was, the act seemed almost
religious. It was to him, however, like a ground-wire in telegraphy--it
carried off the nervous force tingling in him and driving him to
impulsive action, while his reputation called for a constant outward
urbanity, a philosophical apathy. He had had his great fight for place
and power, alien as he was in religion, though he had lived in Egypt
since a child. Bar to progress as his religion had been at first, it had
been an advantage afterwards; for, through it, he could exclude himself
from complications with the Wakfs, the religious court of the Muslim
creed, which had lands to administer, and controlled the laws of
marriage and inheritance. He could shrug his shoulders and play with his
beads, and urbanely explain his own helplessness and ineligibility when
his influence was summoned, or it was sought to entangle him in warring
interests. Oriental through and through, the basis of his creed was
similar to that of a Muslim: Mahomet was a prophet and Christ was a
prophet. It was a case of rival prophets--all else was obscured into a
legend, and he saw the strife of race in the difference of creed. For
the rest, he flourished the salutations and language of the Arab as
though they were his own, and he spoke Arabic as perfectly as he did
French and English.

He was the second son of his father. The first son, who was but a year
older, and was as dark as he was fair, had inherited--had seized--all
his father’s wealth. He had lived abroad for some years in France and
England. In the latter place he had been one of the Turkish Embassy,
and, having none of the outward characteristics of the Turk, and being
in appearance more of a Spaniard than an Oriental, he had, by his gifts,
his address and personal appearance, won the good-will of the Duchess of
Middlesex, and had had that success all too flattering to the soul of a
libertine. It had, however, been the means of his premature retirement
from England, for his chief at the Embassy had a preference for an
Oriental entourage. He was called Foorgat Bey.

Sitting at table, Nahoum alone of all present had caught David’s
arrested look, and, glancing up, had seen the girl’s face at the panel
of mooshrabieh, and had seen also over her shoulder the face of his
brother, Foorgat Bey. He had been even more astonished than David,
and far more disturbed. He knew his brother’s abilities; he knew his
insinuating address--had he not influenced their father to give him
wealth while he was yet alive? He was aware also that his brother had
visited the Palace often of late. It would seem as though the Prince
Pasha was ready to make him, as well as David, a favourite. But the
face of the girl--it was an English face! Familiar with the Palace,
and bribing when it was necessary to bribe, Foorgat Bey had evidently
brought her to see the function, there where all women were forbidden.
He could little imagine Foorgat doing this from mere courtesy; he could
not imagine any woman, save one wholly sophisticated, or one entirely
innocent, trusting herself with him--and in such a place. The girl’s
face, though not that of one in her teens, had seemed to him a very
flower of innocence.

But, as he stood telling his beads, abstractedly listening to the
scandal talked by Achmet and Higli, he was not thinking of his brother,
but of the two who had just left the chamber. He was speculating as
to which room they were likely to enter. They had not gone by the door
convenient to passage to Kaid’s own apartments. He would give much to
hear the conversation between Kaid and the stranger; he was all too
conscious of its purport. As he stood thinking, Kaid returned. After
looking round the room for a moment, the Prince came slowly over to
Nahoum, and, stretching out a hand, stroked his beard.

“Oh, brother of all the wise, may thy sun never pass its noon!” said
Kaid, in a low, friendly voice.

Despite his will, a shudder passed through Nahoum Pasha’s frame.
How often in Egypt this gesture and such words were the prelude to
assassination, from which there was no escape save by death itself. Into
Nahoum’s mind there flashed the words of an Arab teacher, “There is
no refuge from God but God Himself,” and he found himself blindly
wondering, even as he felt Kaid’s hand upon his beard and listened to
the honeyed words, what manner of death was now preparing for him, and
what death of his own contriving should intervene. Escape, he knew,
there was none, if his death was determined on; for spies were
everywhere, and slaves in the pay of Kaid were everywhere, and such as
were not could be bought or compelled, even if he took refuge in the
house of a foreign consul. The lean, invisible, ghastly arm of death
could find him, if Kaid willed, though he delved in the bowels of the
Cairene earth, or climbed to an eagle’s eyrie in the Libyan Hills.
Whether it was diamond-dust or Achmet’s thin thong that stopped the
breath, it mattered not; it was sure. Yet he was not of the breed to
tremble under the descending sword, and he had long accustomed himself
to the chance of “sudden demise.” It had been chief among the chances he
had taken when he entered the high and perilous service of Kaid. Now,
as he felt the secret joy of these dark spirits surrounding him--Achmet,
and High Pasha, who kept saying beneath his breath in thankfulness
that it was not his turn, Praise be to God!--as he, felt their secret
self-gratulations, and their evil joy over his prospective downfall,
he settled himself steadily, made a low salutation to Kaid, and calmly
awaited further speech. It came soon enough.

“It is written upon a cucumber leaf--does not the world read it?--that
Nahoum Pasha’s form shall cast a longer shadow than the trees; so that
every man in Egypt shall, thinking on him, be as covetous as Ashaah, who
knew but one thing more covetous than himself--the sheep that mistook
the rainbow for a rope of hay, and, jumping for it, broke his neck.”

Kaid laughed softly at his own words.

With his eye meeting Kaid’s again, after a low salaam, Nahoum made
answer:

“I would that the lance of my fame might sheathe itself in the breasts
of thy enemies, Effendina.”

“Thy tongue does that office well,” was the reply. Once more Kaid laid
a gentle hand upon Nahoum’s beard. Then, with a gesture towards the
consuls and Europeans, he said to them in French: “If I might but beg
your presence for yet a little time!” Then he turned and walked away. He
left by a door leading to his own apartments.

When he had gone, Nahoum swung slowly round and faced the agitated
groups.

“He who sleeps with one eye open sees the sun rise first,” he said, with
a sarcastic laugh. “He who goes blindfold never sees it set.”

Then, with a complacent look upon them all, he slowly left the room by
the door out of which David and Kaid had first passed.

Outside the room his face did not change. His manner had not been
bravado. It was as natural to him as David’s manner was to himself. Each
had trained himself in his own way to the mastery of his will, and the
will in each was stronger than any passion of emotion in them. So far
at least it had been so. In David it was the outcome of his faith,
in Nahoum it was the outcome of his philosophy, a simple, fearless
fatalism.

David had been left by Kaid in a small room, little more than an
alcove, next to a larger room richly furnished. Both rooms belonged to a
spacious suite which lay between the harem and the major portion of the
Palace. It had its own entrance and exits from the Palace, opening on
the square at the front, at the back opening on its own garden, which
also had its own exits to the public road. The quarters of the Chief
Eunuch separated the suite from the harem, and Mizraim, the present
Chief Eunuch, was a man of power in the Palace, knew more secrets, was
more courted, and was richer than some of the princes. Nahoum had an
office in the Palace, also, which gave him the freedom of the place, and
brought him often in touch with the Chief Eunuch. He had made Mizraim
a fast friend ever since the day he had, by an able device, saved the
Chief Eunuch from determined robbery by the former Prince Pasha, with
whom he had suddenly come out of favour.

When Nahoum left the great salon, he directed his steps towards the
quarters of the Chief Eunuch, thinking of David, with a vague desire
for pursuit and conflict. He was too much of a philosopher to seek to do
David physical injury--a futile act; for it could do him no good in the
end, could not mend his own fortunes; and, merciless as he could be on
occasion, he had no love of bloodshed. Besides, the game afoot was not
of his making, and he was ready to await the finish, the more so because
he was sure that to-morrow would bring forth momentous things. There was
a crisis in the Soudan, there was trouble in the army, there was
dark conspiracy of which he knew the heart, and anything might happen
to-morrow! He had yet some cards to play, and Achmet and Higli--and
another very high and great--might be delivered over to Kaid’s deadly
purposes rather than himself tomorrow. What he knew Kaid did not know.
He had not meant to act yet; but new facts faced him, and he must make
one struggle for his life. But as he went towards Mizraim’s quarters he
saw no sure escape from the stage of those untoward events, save by the
exit which is for all in some appointed hour.

He was not, however, more perplexed and troubled than David, who, in
the little room where he had been brought and left alone with coffee and
cigarettes, served by a slave from some distant portion of the Palace,
sat facing his future.

David looked round the little room. Upon the walls hung weapons of every
kind--from a polished dagger of Toledo to a Damascus blade, suits of
chain armour, long-handled, two-edged Arab swords, pistols which had
been used in the Syrian wars of Ibrahim, lances which had been taken
from the Druses at Palmyra, rude battle-axes from the tribes of the
Soudan, and neboots of dom-wood which had done service against
Napoleon at Damietta. The cushions among which he sat had come from
Constantinople, the rug at his feet from Tiflis, the prayer-rug on the
wall from Mecca.

All that he saw was as unlike what he had known in past years as though
he had come to Mars or Jupiter. All that he had heard recalled to him
his first readings in the Old Testament--the story of Nebuchadnezzar, of
Belshazzar, of Ahasuerus--of Ahasuerus! He suddenly remembered the
face he had seen looking down at the Prince’s table from the panel of
mooshrabieh. That English face--where was it? Why was it there? Who
was the man with her? Whose the dark face peering scornfully over her
shoulder? The face of an English girl in that place dedicated to sombre
intrigue, to the dark effacement of women, to the darker effacement of
life, as he well knew, all too often! In looking at this prospect for
good work in the cause of civilisation, he was not deceived, he was not
allured. He knew into what subterranean ways he must walk, through what
mazes of treachery and falsehood he must find his way; and though he
did not know to the full the corruption which it was his duty to Kaid
to turn to incorruption, he knew enough to give his spirit pause. What
would be--what could be--the end? Would he not prove to be as much out
of place as was the face of that English girl? The English girl! England
rushed back upon him--the love of those at home; of his father, the only
father he had ever known; of Faith, the only mother or sister he had
ever known; of old John Fairley; the love of the woods and the hills
where he had wandered came upon him. There was work to do in England,
work too little done--the memory of the great meeting at Heddington
flashed upon him. Could his labour and his skill, if he had any, not be
used there? Ah, the green fields, the soft grey skies, the quiet vale,
the brave, self-respecting, toiling millions, the beautiful sense of law
and order and goodness! Could his gifts and labours not be used there?
Could not--

He was suddenly startled by a smothered cry, then a call of distress. It
was the voice of a woman.

He started up. The voice seemed to come from a room at his right; not
that from which he had entered, but one still beyond this where he was.
He sprang towards the wall and examined it swiftly. Finding a division
in the tapestry, he ran his fingers quickly and heavily down the crack
between. It came upon the button of a spring. He pressed it, the door
yielded, and, throwing it back, he stepped into the room-to see a woman
struggling to resist the embraces and kisses of a man. The face was that
of the girl who had looked out of the panel in the mooshrabieh screen.
Then it was beautiful in its mirth and animation, now it was pale
and terror-stricken, as with one free hand she fiercely beat the face
pressed to hers.

The girl only had seen David enter. The man was not conscious of his
presence till he was seized and flung against the wall. The violence of
the impact brought down at his feet two weapons from the wall above
him. He seized one-a dagger-and sprang to his feet. Before he could move
forward or raise his arm, however, David struck him a blow in the neck
which flung him upon a square marble pedestal intended for a statue.
In falling his head struck violently a sharp corner of the pedestal. He
lurched, rolled over on the floor, and lay still.

The girl gave a choking cry. David quickly stooped and turned the body
over. There was a cut where the hair met the temple. He opened the
waistcoat and thrust his hand inside the shirt. Then he felt the pulse
of the limp wrist.

For a moment he looked at the face steadily, almost contemplatively it
might have seemed, and then drew both arms close to the body.

Foorgat Bey, the brother of Nahoum Pasha, was dead.

Rising, David turned, as if in a dream, to the girl. He made a motion of
the hand towards the body. She understood. Dismay was in her face, but
the look of horror and desperation was gone. She seemed not to realise,
as did David, the awful position in which they were placed, the deed
which David had done, the significance of the thing that lay at their
feet.

“Where are thy people?” said David. “Come, we will go to them.”

“I have no people here,” she said, in a whisper.

“Who brought thee?”

She made a motion behind her towards the body. David glanced down. The
eyes of the dead man were open. He stooped and closed them gently. The
collar and tie were disarranged; he straightened them, then turned again
to her.

“I must take thee away,” he said calmly. “But it must be secretly.”
 He looked around, perplexed. “We came secretly. My maid is outside the
garden--in a carriage. Oh, come, let us go, let us escape. They will
kill you--!” Terror came into her face again. “Thee, not me, is in
danger--name, goodness, future, all.... Which way did thee come?”

“Here--through many rooms--” She made a gesture to curtains beyond. “But
we first entered through doors with sphinxes on either side, with a room
where was a statue of Mehemet Ali.”

It was the room through which David had come with Kaid. He took her
hand. “Come quickly. I know the way. It is here,” he said, pointing to
the panel-door by which he had entered.

Holding her hand still, as though she were a child, he led her quickly
from the room, and shut the panel behind them. As they passed through,
a hand drew aside the curtains on the other side of the room which they
were leaving.

Presently the face of Nahoum Pasha followed the hand. A swift glance
to the floor, then he ran forward, stooped down, and laid a hand on his
brother’s breast. The slight wound on the forehead answered his rapid
scrutiny. He realised the situation as plainly as if it had been written
down for him--he knew his brother well.

Noiselessly he moved forward and touched the spring of the door through
which the two had gone. It yielded, and he passed through, closed the
door again and stealthily listened, then stole a look into the farther
chamber. It was empty. He heard the outer doors close. For a moment he
listened, then went forward and passed through into the hall. Softly
turning the handle of the big wooden doors which faced him, he opened
them an inch or so, and listened. He could hear swiftly retreating
footsteps. Presently he heard the faint noise of a gate shutting. He
nodded his head, and was about to close the doors and turn away, when
his quick ear detected footsteps again in the garden. Some one--the man,
of course--was returning.

“May fire burn his eyes for ever! He would talk with Kald, then go again
among them all, and so pass out unsuspected and safe. For who but I--who
but I could say he did it? And I--what is my proof? Only the words which
I speak.”

A scornful, fateful smile passed over his face. “‘Hast thou never killed
a man?’ said Kaid. ‘Never,’ said he--‘by the goodness of God, never!’
The voice of Him of Galilee, the hand of Cain, the craft of Jael. But
God is with the patient.”

He went hastily and noiselessly-his footfall was light for so heavy a
man-through the large room to the farther side from that by which David
and Kaid had first entered. Drawing behind a clump of palms near a door
opening to a passage leading to Mizraim’s quarters, he waited. He saw
David enter quickly, yet without any air of secrecy, and pass into the
little room where Kaid had left him.

For a long time there was silence.

The reasons were clear in Nahoum’s mind why he should not act yet. A new
factor had changed the equation which had presented itself a short half
hour ago.

A new factor had also entered into the equation which had been presented
to David by Kaid with so flattering an insistence. He sat in the place
where Kaid had left him, his face drawn and white, his eyes burning, but
with no other “sign of agitation. He was frozen and still. His look was
fastened now upon the door by which the Prince Pasha would enter, now
upon the door through which he had passed to the rescue of the English
girl, whom he had seen drive off safely with her maid. In their swift
passage from the Palace to the carriage, a thing had been done of even
greater moment than the killing of the sensualist in the next room.
In the journey to the gateway the girl David served had begged him to
escape with her. This he had almost sharply declined; it would be no
escape, he had said. She had urged that no one knew. He had replied that
Kaid would come again for him, and suspicion would be aroused if he were
gone.

“Thee has safety,” he had said. “I will go back. I will say that I
killed him. I have taken a life, I will pay for it as is the law.”

Excited as she was, she had seen the inflexibility of his purpose. She
had seen the issue also clearly. He would give himself up, and the whole
story would be the scandal of Europe.

“You have no right to save me only to kill me,” she had said
desperately. “You would give your life, but you would destroy that
which is more than life to me. You did not intend to kill him. It was
no murder, it was punishment.” Her voice had got harder. “He would have
killed my life because he was evil. Will you kill it because you are
good? Will you be brave, quixotic, but not pitiful?... No, no, no!”
 she had said, as his hand was upon the gate, “I will not go unless you
promise that you will hide the truth, if you can.” She had laid her hand
upon his shoulder with an agonised impulse. “You will hide it for a girl
who will cherish your memory her whole life long. Ah--God bless you!”

She had felt that she conquered before he spoke as, indeed, he did not
speak, but nodded his head and murmured something indistinctly. But that
did not matter, for she had won; she had a feeling that all would be
well. Then he had placed her in her carriage, and she was driven swiftly
away, saying to herself half hysterically: “I am safe, I am safe. He
will keep his word.”

Her safety and his promise were the new factor which changed the
equation for which Kaid would presently ask the satisfaction. David’s
life had suddenly come upon problems for which his whole past was no
preparation. Conscience, which had been his guide in every situation,
was now disarmed, disabled, and routed. It had come to terms.

In going quickly through the room, they had disarranged a table. The
girl’s cloak had swept over it, and a piece of brie-a-brae had been
thrown upon the floor. He got up and replaced it with an attentive
air. He rearranged the other pieces on the table mechanically, seeing,
feeling another scene, another inanimate thing which must be for ever
and for ever a picture burning in his memory. Yet he appeared to be
casually doing a trivial and necessary act. He did not definitely
realise his actions; but long afterwards he could have drawn an accurate
plan of the table, could have reproduced upon it each article in its
exact place as correctly as though it had been photographed. There were
one or two spots of dust or dirt on the floor, brought in by his boots
from the garden. He flicked them aside with his handkerchief.

How still it was! Or was it his life which had become so still? It
seemed as if the world must be noiseless, for not a sound of the life in
other parts of the Palace came to him, not an echo or vibration of the
city which stirred beyond the great gateway. Was it the chilly hand of
death passing over everything, and smothering all the activities? His
pulses, which, but a few minutes past, were throbbing and pounding like
drums in his ears, seemed now to flow and beat in very quiet. Was this,
then, the way that murderers felt, that men felt who took human life--so
frozen, so little a part of their surroundings? Did they move as dead
men among the living, devitalised, vacuous calm?

His life had been suddenly twisted out of recognition. All that his
habit, his code, his morals, his religion, had imposed upon him had
been overturned in one moment. To take a human life, even in battle, was
against the code by which he had ever been governed, yet he had taken
life secretly, and was hiding it from the world.

Accident? But had it been necessary to strike at all? His presence alone
would have been enough to save the girl from further molestation; but,
he had thrown himself upon the man like a tiger. Yet, somehow, he felt
no sorrow for that. He knew that if again and yet again he were placed
in the same position he would do even as he had done--even as he had
done with the man Kimber by the Fox and Goose tavern beyond Hamley. He
knew that the blow he had given then was inevitable, and he had never
felt real repentance. Thinking of that blow, he saw its sequel in the
blow he had given now. Thus was that day linked with the present, thus
had a blow struck in punishment of the wrong done the woman at the
crossroads been repeated in the wrong done the girl who had just left
him.

A sound now broke the stillness. It was a door shutting not far off.
Kaid was coming. David turned his face towards the room where Foorgat
Bey was lying dead. He lifted his arms with a sudden passionate gesture.
The blood came rushing through his veins again. His life, which had
seemed suspended, was set free; and an exaltation of sorrow, of pain, of
action, possessed him.

“I have taken a life, O my God!” he murmured. “Accept mine in service
for this land. What I have done in secret, let me atone for in secret,
for this land--for this poor land, for Christ’s sake!”

Footsteps were approaching quickly. With a great effort of the will he
ruled himself to quietness again. Kaid entered, and stood before him in
silence. David rose. He looked Kaid steadily in the eyes. “Well?” said
Kaid placidly.

“For Egypt’s sake I will serve thee,” was the reply. He held out his
hand. Kaid took it, but said, in smiling comment on the action: “As the
Viceroy’s servant there is another way!”

“I will salaam to-morrow, Kaid,” answered David.

“It is the only custom of the place I will require of thee, effendi.
Come.”

A few moments later they were standing among the consuls and officials
in the salon.

“Where is Nahoum?” asked Kaid, looking round on the agitated throng.

No one answered. Smiling, Kaid whispered in David’s ear.



CHAPTER VII. THE COMPACT

One by one the lights went out in the Palace. The excited guests were
now knocking at the doors of Cairene notables, bent upon gossip of the
night’s events, or were scouring the bazaars for ears into which to
pour the tale of how David was exalted and Nahoum was brought low; how,
before them all, Kaid had commanded Nahoum to appear at the Palace in
the morning at eleven, and the Inglesi, as they had named David, at ten.
But they declared to all who crowded upon their words that the Inglesi
left the Palace with a face frozen white, as though it was he that had
met debacle, while Nahoum had been as urbane and cynical as though he
had come to the fulness of his power.

Some, on hearing this, said: “Beware Nahoum!” But those who had been at
the Palace said: “Beware the Inglesi!” This still Quaker, with the white
shining face and pontifical hat, with his address of “thee” and “thou,”
 and his forms of speech almost Oriental in their imagery and simplicity,
himself an archaism, had impressed them with a sense of power. He had
prompted old Diaz Pasha to speak of him as a reincarnation, so separate
and withdrawn he seemed at the end of the evening, yet with an uncanny
mastery in his dark brown eyes. One of the Ulema, or holy men, present
had said in reply to Diaz: “It is the look of one who hath walked with
Death and bought and sold with Sheitan the accursed.” To Nahoum Pasha,
Dim had said, as the former left the Palace, a cigarette between his
fingers: “Sleep not nor slumber, Nahoum. The world was never lost by
one earthquake.” And Nahoum had replied with a smooth friendliness: “The
world is not reaped in one harvest.”

“The day is at hand--the East against the West,” murmured old Diaz, as
he passed on.

“The day is far spent,” answered Nahoum, in a voice unheard by Diaz;
and, with a word to his coachman, who drove off quickly, he disappeared
in the shrubbery.

A few minutes later he was tapping at the door of Mizraim, the Chief
Eunuch. Three times he tapped in the same way. Presently the door
opened, and he stepped inside. The lean, dark figure of Mizraim bowed
low; the long, slow fingers touched the forehead, the breast, and the
lips.

“May God preserve thy head from harm, excellency, and the night give
thee sleep,” said Mizraim. He looked inquiringly at Nahoum.

“May thy head know neither heat nor cold, and thy joys increase,”
 responded Nahoum mechanically, and sat down.

To an European it would have seemed a shameless mockery to have wished
joy to this lean, hateful dweller in the between-worlds; to Nahoum
it was part of a life which was all ritual and intrigue, gabbling
superstition and innate fatalism, decorated falsehood and a brave
philosophy.

“I have work for thee at last, Mizraim,” said Nahoum.

“At last?”

“Thou hast but played before. To-night I must see the sweat of thy
brow.”

Mizraim’s cold fingers again threw themselves against his breast,
forehead, and lips, and he said:

“As a woman swims in a fountain, so shall I bathe in sweat for thee, who
hath given with one hand and hath never taken with the other.”

“I did thee service once, Mizraim--eh?”

“I was as a bird buffeted by the wind; upon thy masts my feet found
rest. Behold, I build my nest in thy sails, excellency.”

“There are no birds in last year’s nest, Mizraim, thou dove,” said
Nahoum, with a cynical smile. “When I build, I build. Where I swear by
the stone of the corner, there am I from dark to dark and from dawn to
dawn, pasha.” Suddenly he swept his hand low to the ground and a ghastly
sort of smile crossed over his face. “Speak--I am thy servant. Shall I
not hear? I will put my hand in the entrails of Egypt, and wrench them
forth for thee.”

He made a gesture so cruelly, so darkly, suggestive that Nahoum turned
his head away. There flashed before his mind the scene of death in
which his own father had lain, butchered like a beast in the shambles, a
victim to the rage of Ibrahim Pasha, the son of Mehemet Ali.

“Then listen, and learn why I have need of thee to-night.”

First, Nahoum told the story of David’s coming, and Kaid’s treatment of
himself, the foreshadowing of his own doom. Then of David and the girl,
and the dead body he had seen; of the escape of the girl, of David’s
return with Kaid--all exactly as it had happened, save that he did; not
mention the name of the dead man.

It did not astonish Mizraim that Nahoum had kept all this secret. That
crime should be followed by secrecy and further crime, if need be,
seems natural to the Oriental mind. Mizraim had seen removal follow upon
removal, and the dark Nile flowed on gloomily, silently, faithful to the
helpless ones tossed into its bosom. It would much have astonished him
if Nahoum had not shown a gaping darkness somewhere in his tale, and he
felt for the key to the mystery.

“And he who lies dead, excellency?”

“My brother.”

“Foorgat Bey!”

“Even he, Mizraim. He lured the girl here--a mad man ever. The other
madman was in the next room. He struck--come, and thou shalt see.”

Together they felt their way through the passages and rooms, and
presently entered the room where Foorgat Bey was lying. Nahoum struck a
light, and, as he held the candle, Mizraim knelt and examined the body
closely. He found the slight wound on the temple, then took the candle
from Nahoum and held it close to the corner of the marble pedestal. A
faint stain of blood was there. Again he examined the body, and ran his
fingers over the face and neck. Suddenly he stopped, and held the light
close to the skin beneath the right jaw. He motioned, and Nahoum laid
his fingers also on the spot. There was a slight swelling.

“A blow with the fist, excellency--skilful, and English.” He looked
inquiringly at Nahoum. “As a weasel hath a rabbit by the throat, so is
the Inglesi in thy hands.”

Nahoum shook his head. “And if I went to Kaid, and said, ‘This is the
work of the Inglesi,’ would he believe? Kaid would hang me for the
lie--would it be truth to him? What proof have I, save the testimony of
mine own eyes? Egypt would laugh at that. Is it the time, while yet the
singers are beneath the windows, to assail the bride? All bridegrooms
are mad. It is all sunshine and morning with the favourite, the Inglesi.
Only when the shadows lengthen may he be stricken. Not now.”

“Why dost thou hide this from Kaid, O thou brother of the eagle?”

“For my gain and thine, keeper of the gate. To-night I am weak, because
I am poor. To-morrow I shall be rich and, it may be, strong. If Kaid
knew of this tonight, I should be a prisoner before cockcrow. What
claims has a prisoner? Kaid would be in my brother’s house at dawn,
seizing all that is there and elsewhere, and I on my way to Fazougli, to
be strangled or drowned.”

“O wise and far-seeing! Thine eye pierces the earth. What is there to
do? What is my gain--what thine?”

“Thy gain? The payment of thy debt to me.” Mizraim’s face lengthened.
His was a loathsome sort of gratitude. He was willing to pay in kind;
but what Oriental ever paid a debt without a gift in return, even as a
bartering Irishman demands his lucky penny.

“So be it, excellency, and my life is thine to spill upon the ground, a
scarlet cloth for thy feet. And backsheesh?”

Nahoum smiled grimly. “For backsheesh, thy turban full of gold.”

Mizraim’s eyes glittered-the dull black shine of a mongrel terrier’s. He
caught the sleeve of Nahoum’s coat and kissed it, then kissed his hand.

Thus was their bargain made over the dead body; and Mizraim had an
almost superstitious reverence for the fulfilment of a bond, the one
virtue rarely found in the Oriental. Nothing else had he, but of all men
in Egypt he was the best instrument Nahoum could have chosen; and of all
men in Egypt he was the one man who could surely help him.

“What is there now to do, excellency?”

“My coachman is with the carriage at the gate by which the English girl
left. It is open still. The key is in Foorgat’s pocket, no doubt; stolen
by him, no doubt also.... This is my design. Thou wilt drive him”--he
pointed to the body--“to his palace, seated in the carriage as though he
were alive. There is a secret entrance. The bowab of the gate will show
the way; I know it not. But who will deny thee? Thou comest from high
places--from Kaid. Who will speak of this? Will the bowab? In the
morning Foorgat will be found dead in his bed! The slight bruise thou
canst heal--thou canst?”

Mizraim nodded. “I can smooth it from the sharpest eye.”

“At dawn he will be found dead; but at dawn I shall be knocking at his
gates. Before the world knows I shall be in possession. All that is
his shall be mine, for at once the men of law shall be summoned, and my
inheritance secured before Kaid shall even know of his death. I shall
take my chances for my life.”

“And the coachman, and the bowab, and others it may be?”

“Shall not these be with thee--thou, Kaid’s keeper of the harem, the
lion at the door of his garden of women? Would it be strange that
Foorgat, who ever flew at fruit above his head, perilous to get or keep,
should be found on forbidden ground, or in design upon it? Would it be
strange to the bowab or the slave that he should return with thee stark
and still? They would but count it mercy of Kaid that he was not given
to the serpents of the Nile. A word from thee--would one open his mouth?
Would not the shadow of thy hand, of the swift doom, be over them? Would
not a handful of gold bind them to me? Is not the man dead? Are they not
mine--mine to bind or break as I will?”

“So be it! Wisdom is of thee as the breath of man is his life. I will
drive Foorgat Bey to his home.”

A few moments later all that was left of Foorgat Bey was sitting in his
carriage beside Mizraim the Chief Eunuch--sitting upright, stony, and
still, and in such wise was driven swiftly to his palace.



CHAPTER VIII. FOR HIS SOUL’S SAKE AND THE LAND’S SAKE

David came to know a startling piece of news the next morning-that
Foorgat Bey had died of heart-disease in his bed, and was so found by
his servants. He at once surmised that Foorgat’s body had been carried
out of the Palace; no doubt that it might not be thought he had come
to his death by command of Kaid. His mind became easier. Death, murder,
crime in Egypt was not a nine days’ wonder; it scarce outlived one day.
When a man was gone none troubled. The dead man was in the bosom of
Allah; then why should the living be beset or troubled? If there was
foul play, why make things worse by sending another life after the life
gone, even in the way of justice?

The girl David saved had told him her own name, and had given him the
name of the hotel at which she was staying. He had an early breakfast,
and prepared to go to her hotel, wishing to see her once more. There
were things to be said for the first and last time and then be buried
for ever. She must leave the country at once. In this sick, mad land, in
this whirlpool of secret murder and conspiracy, no one could tell what
plot was hatching, what deeds were forward; and he could not yet be sure
that no one save himself and herself knew who had killed Foorgat Bey.
Her perfect safety lay in instant flight. It was his duty to see that
she went, and at once--this very day. He would go and see her.

He went to the hotel. There he learned that, with her aunt, she had left
that morning for Alexandria en route to England.

He approved her wisdom, he applauded her decision. Yet--yet, somehow,
as he bent his footsteps towards his lodgings again he had a sense of
disappointment, of revelation. What might happen to him--evidently that
had not occurred to her. How could she know but that his life might be
in danger; that, after all, they might have been seen leaving the fatal
room? Well, she had gone, and with all his heart he was glad that she
was safe.

His judgment upon last night’s event was not coloured by a single
direct criticism upon the girl. But he could not prevent the suggestion
suddenly flashing into his mind that she had thought of herself first
and last. Well, she had gone; and he was here to face the future,
unencumbered by aught save the weight of his own conscience.

Yet, the weight of his conscience! His feet were still free--free for
one short hour before he went to Kaid; but his soul was in chains. As he
turned his course to the Nile, and crossed over the great bridge, there
went clanking by in chains a hundred conscripts, torn from their homes
in the Fayoum, bidding farewell for ever to their friends, receiving
their last offerings, for they had no hope of return. He looked at their
haggard and dusty faces, at their excoriated ankles, and his eyes closed
in pain. All they felt he felt. What their homes were to them, these
fellaheen, dragged forth to defend their country, to go into the desert
and waste their lives under leaders tyrannous, cruel, and incompetent,
his old open life, his innocence, his integrity, his truthfulness and
character, were to him. By an impulsive act, by a rash blow, he had
asserted his humanity; but he had killed his fellow-man in anger. He
knew that as that fatal blow had been delivered, there was no thought
of punishment--it was blind anger and hatred: it was the ancient
virus working which had filled the world with war, and armed it at the
expense, the bitter and oppressive expense, of the toilers and the poor.
The taxes for wars were wrung out of the sons of labour and sorrow.
These poor fellaheen had paid taxes on everything they possessed. Taxes,
taxes, nothing but taxes from the cradle! Their lands, houses, and
palm-trees would be taxed still, when they would reap no more. And
having given all save their lives, these lives they must now give under
the whip and the chain and the sword.

As David looked at them in their single blue calico coverings, in which
they had lived and slept-shivering in the cold night air upon the bare
ground--these thoughts came to him; and he had a sudden longing to
follow them and put the chains upon his own arms and legs, and go forth
and suffer with them, and fight and die? To die were easy. To fight?...
Was it then come to that? He was no longer a man of peace, but a man
of the sword; no longer a man of the palm and the evangel, but a man of
blood and of crime! He shrank back out of the glare of the sun; for it
suddenly seemed to him that there was written upon his fore head, “This
is a brother of Cain.” For the first time in his life he had a shrinking
from the light, and from the sun which he had loved like a Persian, had,
in a sense, unconsciously worshipped.

He was scarcely aware where he was. He had wandered on until he had come
to the end of the bridge and into the great groups of traffickers who,
at this place, made a market of their wares. Here sat a seller of sugar
cane; there wandered, clanking his brasses, a merchant of sweet waters;
there shouted a cheap-jack of the Nile the virtues of a knife from
Sheffield. Yonder a camel-driver squatted and counted his earnings; and
a sheepdealer haggled with the owner of a ghiassa bound for the sands of
the North. The curious came about him and looked at him, but he did not
see or hear. He sat upon a stone, his gaze upon the river, following
with his eyes, yet without consciously observing, the dark riverine
population whose ways are hidden, who know only the law of the river and
spend their lives in eluding pirates and brigands now, and yet again the
peaceful porters of commerce.

To his mind, never a criminal in this land but less a criminal than he!
For their standard was a standard of might the only right; but he--his
whole life had been nurtured in an atmosphere of right and justice, had
been a spiritual demonstration against force. He was with out fear, as
he was without an undue love of life. The laying down of his life had
never been presented to him; and yet, now that his conscience was his
only judge, and it condemned him, he would gladly have given his life to
pay the price of blood.

That was impossible. His life was not his own to give, save by suicide;
and that would be the unpardonable insult to God and humanity. He
had given his word to the woman, and he would keep it. In those brief
moments she must have suffered more than most men suffer in a long life.
Not her hand, however, but his, had committed the deed. And yet a sudden
wave of pity for her rushed over him, because the conviction seized him
that she would also in her heart take upon herself the burden of his
guilt as though it were her own. He had seen it in the look of her face
last night.

For the sake of her future it was her duty to shield herself from any
imputation which might as unjustly as scandalously arise, if the facts
of that black hour ever became known. Ever became known? The thought
that there might be some human eye which had seen, which knew, sent a
shiver through him.

“I would give my life a thousand times rather than that,” he said
aloud to the swift-flowing river. His head sank on his breast. His lips
murmured in prayer:

“But be merciful to me, Thou just Judge of Israel, for Thou hast made
me, and Thou knowest whereof I am made. Here will I dedicate my life to
Thee for the land’s sake. Not for my soul’s sake, O my God! If it be
Thy will, let my soul be cast away; but for the soul of him whose body I
slew, and for his land, let my life be the long sacrifice.”

Dreams he had had the night before--terrible dreams, which he could
never forget; dreams of a fugitive being hunted through the world,
escaping and eluding, only to be hemmed in once more; on and on till he
grew grey and gaunt, and the hunt suddenly ended in a great morass, into
which he plunged with the howling world behind him. The grey, dank mists
came down on him, his footsteps sank deeper and deeper, and ever the
cries, as of damned spirits, grew in his ears. Mocking shapes flitted
past him, the wings of obscene birds buffeted him, the morass grew up
about him; and now it was all a red moving mass like a dead sea heaving
about him. With a moan of agony he felt the dolorous flood above his
shoulders, and then a cry pierced the gloom and the loathsome misery,
and a voice he knew called to him, “David, David, I am coming!” and he
had awaked with the old hallucination of his uncle’s voice calling to
him in the dawn.

It came to him now as he sat by the water-side, and he raised his face
to the sun and to the world. The idlers had left him alone; none were
staring at him now. They were all intent on their own business, each man
labouring after his kind. He heard the voice of a riverman as he toiled
at a rope standing on the corn that filled his ghiassa from end to
end, from keel to gunwale. The man was singing a wild chant of cheerful
labour, the soul of the hard-smitten of the earth rising above the rack
and burden of the body:

     “O, the garden where to-day we sow and to-morrow we reap!
     O, the sakkia turning by the garden walls;
     O, the onion-field and the date-tree growing,
     And my hand on the plough-by the blessing of God;
     Strength of my soul, O my brother, all’s well!”

The meaning of the song got into his heart. He pressed his hand to his
breast with a sudden gesture. It touched something hard. It was his
flute. Mechanically he had put it in his pocket when he dressed in the
morning. He took it out and looked at it lovingly. Into it he had poured
his soul in the old days--days, centuries away, it seemed now. It should
still be the link with the old life. He rose and walked towards his home
again. The future spread clearly before him. Rapine, murder, tyranny,
oppression, were round him on every side, and the ruler of the land
called him to his counsels. Here a great duty lay--his life for this
land, his life, and his love, and his faith. He would expiate his crime
and his sin, the crime of homicide for which he alone was responsible,
the sin of secrecy for which he and another were responsible. And that
other? If only there had been but one word of understanding between them
before she left!

At the door of his house stood the American whom he had met at the
citadel yesterday-it seemed a hundred years ago.

“I’ve got a letter for you,” Lacey said. “The lady’s aunt and herself
are cousins of mine more or less removed, and originally at home in the
U. S. A. a generation ago. Her mother was an American. She didn’t know
your name--Miss Hylda Maryon, I mean. I told her, but there wasn’t time
to put it on.” He handed over the unaddressed envelope.

David opened the letter, and read:

“I have seen the papers. I do not understand what has happened, but I
know that all is well. If it were not so, I would not go. That is the
truth. Grateful I am, oh, believe me! So grateful that I do not yet know
what is the return which I must make. But the return will be made. I
hear of what has come to you--how easily I might have destroyed all! My
thoughts blind me. You are great and good; you will know at least that
I go because it is the only thing to do. I fly from the storm with a
broken wing. Take now my promise to pay what I owe in the hour Fate
wills--or in the hour of your need. You can trust him who brings this to
you; he is a distant cousin of my own. Do not judge him by his odd and
foolish words. They hide a good character, and he has a strong nature.
He wants work to do. Can you give it? Farewell.”

David put the letter in his pocket, a strange quietness about his heart.

He scarcely realised what Lacey was saying. “Great girl that. Troubled
about something in England, I guess. Going straight back.”

David thanked him for the letter. Lacey became red in the face. He
tried to say something, but failed. “Thee wishes to say something to me,
friend?” asked David.

“I’m full up; I can’t speak. But, say--”

“I am going to the Palace now. Come back at noon if you will.”

He wrung David’s hand in gratitude. “You’re going to do it. You’re going
to do it. I see it. It’s a great game--like Abe Lincoln’s. Say, let me
black your boots while you’re doing it, will you?”

David pressed his hand.



CHAPTER IX. THE LETTER, THE NIGHT, AND THE WOMAN

   “To-day has come the fulfilment of my dream, Faith. I am given to
   my appointed task; I am set on a road of life in which there is no
   looking back. My dreams of the past are here begun in very truth
   and fact. When, in the night, I heard Uncle Benn calling, when in
   the Meeting-house voices said, ‘Come away, come away, and labour,
   thou art idle,’ I could hear my heart beat in the ardour to be off.
   Yet I knew not whither. Now I know.

   “Last night the Prince Pasha called me to his Council, made me
   adviser, confidant, as one who has the ear of his captain--after he
   had come to terms with me upon that which Uncle Benn left of land
   and gold. Think not that he tempted me.

   “Last night I saw favourites look upon me with hate because of
   Kaid’s favour, though the great hall was filled with show of
   cheerful splendour, and men smiled and feasted. To-day I know that
   in the Palace where I was summoned to my first: duty with the
   Prince, every step I took was shadowed, every motion recorded, every
   look or word noted and set down. I have no fear of them. They are
   not subtle enough for the unexpected acts of honesty in the life of
   a true man. Yet I do not wonder men fail to keep honest in the
   midst of this splendour, where all is strife as to who shall have
   the Prince’s favour; who shall enjoy the fruits of bribery,
   backsheesh, and monopoly; who shall wring from the slave and the
   toil-ridden fellah the coin his poor body mints at the corvee, in
   his own taxed fields of dourha and cucumbers.

   “Is this like anything we ever dreamed at Hamley, Faith? Yet here
   am I set, and here shall I stay till the skein be ravelled out.
   Soon I shall go into the desert upon a mission to the cities of the
   South, to Dongola, Khartoum, and Darfur and beyond; for there is
   trouble yonder, and war is near, unless it is given to me to bring
   peace. So I must bend to my study of Arabic, which I am thankful I
   learned long ago. And I must not forget to say that I shall take
   with me on my journey that faithful Muslim Ebn Ezra. Others I shall
   take also, but of them I shall write hereafter.

   “I shall henceforth be moving in the midst of things which I was
   taught to hate. I pray that I may not hate them less as time goes
   on. To-morrow I shall breathe the air of intrigue, shall hear
   footsteps of spies behind me wherever I go; shall know that even the
   roses in the garden have ears; that the ground under my feet will
   telegraph my thoughts. Shall I be true? Shall I at last whisper,
   and follow, and evade, believe in no one, much less in myself, steal
   in and out of men’s confidences to use them for my own purposes?
   Does any human being know what he can bear of temptation or of the
   daily pressure of the life around him? what powers of resistance
   are in his soul? how long the vital energy will continue to throw
   off the never-ending seduction, the freshening force of evil?
   Therein lies the power of evil, that it is ever new, ever fortified
   by continuous conquest and achievements. It has the rare fire of
   aggression; is ever more upon the offence than upon the defence;
   has, withal, the false lure of freedom from restraint, the throbbing
   force of sympathy.

   “Such things I dreamed not of in Soolsby’s but upon the hill, Faith,
   though, indeed, that seemed a time of trial and sore-heartedness.
   How large do small issues seem till we have faced the momentous
   things! It is true that the larger life has pleasures and expanding
   capacities; but it is truer still that it has perils, events which
   try the soul as it is never tried in the smaller life--unless,
   indeed, the soul be that of the Epicurean. The Epicurean I well
   understand, and in his way I might have walked with a wicked grace.
   I have in me some hidden depths of luxury, a secret heart of
   pleasure, an understanding for the forbidden thing. I could have
   walked the broad way with a laughing heart, though, in truth, habit
   of mind and desire have kept me in the better path. But offences
   must come, and woe to him from whom the offence cometh! I have
   begun now, and only now, to feel the storms that shake us to our
   farthest cells of life. I begin to see how near good is to evil;
   how near faith is to unfaith; and how difficult it is to judge from
   actions only; how little we can know to-day what we shall feel
   tomorrow. Yet one must learn to see deeper, to find motive, not in
   acts that shake the faith, but in character which needs no
   explanation, which--”

He paused, disturbed. Then he raised his head, as though not conscious
of what was breaking the course of his thoughts. Presently he realised
a low, hurried knocking at his door. He threw a hand over his eyes, and
sprang up. An instant later the figure of a woman, deeply veiled, stood
within the room, beside the table where he had been writing. There was
silence as they faced each other, his back against the door.

“Oh, do you not know me?” she said at last, and sank into the chair
where he had been sitting.

The question was unnecessary, and she knew it was so; but she could
not bear the strain of the silence. She seemed to have risen out of the
letter he had been writing; and had he not been writing of her--of what
concerned them both? How mean and small-hearted he had been, to have
thought for an instant that she had not the highest courage, though in
going she had done the discreeter, safer thing. But she had come--she
had come!

All this was in his eyes, though his face was pale and still. He
was almost rigid with emotion, for the ancient habit of repose and
self-command of the Quaker people was upon him.

“Can you not see--do you not know?” she repeated, her back upon him now,
her face still veiled, her hands making a swift motion of distress.

“Has thee found in the past that thee is so soon forgotten?”

“Oh, do not blame me!” She raised her veil suddenly, and showed a face
as pale as his own, and in the eyes a fiery brightness. “I did not know.
It was so hard to come--do not blame me. I went to Alexandria--I felt
that I must fly; the air around me seemed full of voices crying out. Did
you not understand why I went?”

“I understand,” he said, coming forward slowly. “Thee should not have
returned. In the way I go now the watchers go also.”

“If I had not come, you would never have understood,” she answered
quickly. “I am not sorry I went. I was so frightened, so shaken. My only
thought was to get away from the terrible Thing. But I should have been
sorry all my life long had I not come back to tell you what I feel, and
that I shall never forget. All my life I shall be grateful. You have
saved me from a thousand deaths. Ah, if I could give you but one life!
Yet--yet--oh, do not think but that I would tell you the whole truth,
though I am not wholly truthful. See, I love my place in the world more
than I love my life; and but for you I should have lost all.”

He made a protesting motion. “The debt is mine, in truth. But for you I
should never have known what, perhaps--” He paused.

His eyes were on hers, gravely speaking what his tongue faltered to say.
She looked and looked, but did not understand. She only saw troubled
depths, lighted by a soul of kindling purpose. “Tell me,” she said,
awed.

“Through you I have come to know--” He paused again. What he was going
to say, truthful though it was, must hurt her, and she had been sorely
hurt already. He put his thoughts more gently, more vaguely.

“By what happened I have come to see what matters in life. I was behind
the hedge. I have broken through upon the road. I know my goal now. The
highway is before me.”

She felt the tragedy in his words, and her voice shook as she spoke. “I
wish I knew life better. Then I could make a better answer. You are on
the road, you say. But I feel that it is a hard and cruel road--oh, I
understand that at least! Tell me, please, tell me the whole truth. You
are hiding from me what you feel. I have upset your life, have I not?
You are a Quaker, and Quakers are better than all other Christian
people, are they not? Their faith is peace, and for me, you--” She
covered her face with her hands for an instant, but turned quickly and
looked him in the eyes: “For me you put your hand upon the clock of a
man’s life, and stopped it.”

She got to her feet with a passionate gesture, but he put a hand gently
upon her arm, and she sank back again. “Oh, it was not you; it was I who
did it!” she said. “You did what any man of honour would have done, what
a brother would have done.”

“What I did is a matter for myself only,” he responded quickly. “Had
I never seen your face again it would have been the same. You were the
occasion; the thing I did had only one source, my own heart and mind.
There might have been another way; but for that way, or for the way I
did take, you could not be responsible.”

“How generous you are!” Her eyes swam with tears; she leaned over the
table where he had been writing, and the tears dropped upon his letter.
Presently she realised this, and drew back, then made as though to dry
the tears from the paper with her handkerchief. As she did so the words
that he had written met her eye: “‘But offences must come, and woe to
him from whom the offence cometh!’ I have begun now, and only now, to
feel the storms that shake us to our farthest cells of life.”

She became very still. He touched her arm and said heavily: “Come away,
come away.”

She pointed to the words she had read. “I could not help but see, and
now I know what this must mean to you.”

“Thee must go at once,” he urged. “Thee should not have come. Thee was
safe--none knew. A few hours and it would all have been far behind. We
might never have met again.”

Suddenly she gave a low, hysterical laugh. “You think you hide the real
thing from me. I know I’m ignorant and selfish and feeble-minded, but I
can see farther than you think. You want to tell the truth about--about
it, because you are honest and hate hiding things, because you want to
be punished, and so pay the price. Oh, I can understand! If it were not
for me you would not....” With a sudden wild impulse she got to her
feet. “And you shall not,” she cried. “I will not have it.” Colour came
rushing to her cheeks.

“I will not have it. I will not put myself so much in your debt. I will
not demand so much of you. I will face it all. I will stand alone.”

There was a touch of indignation in her voice. Somehow she seemed moved
to anger against him. Her hands were clasped at her side rigidly, her
pulses throbbing. He stood looking at her fixedly, as though trying
to realise her. His silence agitated her still further, and she spoke
excitedly:

“I could have, would have, killed him myself without a moment’s regret.
He had planned, planned--ah, God, can you not see it all! I would
have taken his life without a thought. I was mad to go upon such an
adventure, but I meant no ill. I had not one thought that I could not
have cried out from the housetops, and he had in his heart--he had what
you saw. But you repent that you killed him--by accident, it was by
accident. Do you realise how many times others have been trapped by him
as was I? Do you not see what he was--as I see now? Did he not say as
much to me before you came, when I was dumb with terror? Did he not make
me understand what his whole life had been? Did I not see in a flash
the women whose lives he had spoiled and killed? Would I have had pity?
Would I have had remorse? No, no, no! I was frightened when it was done,
I was horrified, but I was not sorry; and I am not sorry. It was to be.
It was the true end to his vileness. Ah!”

She shuddered, and buried her face in her hands for a moment, then went
on: “I can never forgive myself for going to the Palace with him. I was
mad for experience, for mystery; I wanted more than the ordinary share
of knowledge. I wanted to probe things. Yet I meant no wrong. I thought
then nothing of which I shall ever be ashamed. But I shall always be
ashamed because I knew him, because he thought that I--oh, if I were a
man, I should be glad that I had killed him, for the sake of all honest
women!”

He remained silent. His look was not upon her, he seemed lost in a
dream; but his face was fixed in trouble.

She misunderstood his silence. “You had the courage, the impulse to--to
do it,” she said keenly; “you have not the courage to justify it. I will
not have it so.

“I will tell the truth to all the world. I will not shrink I shrank
yesterday because I was afraid of the world; to-day I will face it, I
will--”

She stopped suddenly, and another look flashed into her face. Presently
she spoke in a different tone; a new light had come upon her mind. “But
I see,” she added. “To tell all is to make you the victim, too, of what
he did. It is in your hands; it is all in your hands; and I cannot speak
unless--unless you are ready also.”

There was an unintended touch of scorn in her voice. She had been
troubled and tried beyond bearing, and her impulsive nature revolted
at his silence. She misunderstood him, or, if she did not wholly
misunderstand him, she was angry at what she thought was a needless
remorse or sensitiveness. Did not the man deserve his end?

“There is only one course to pursue,” he rejoined quietly, “and that is
the course we entered upon last night. I neither doubted yourself nor
your courage. Thee must not turn back now. Thee must not alter the
course which was your own making, and the only course which thee could,
or I should, take. I have planned my life according to the word I gave
you. I could not turn back now. We are strangers, and we must remain so.
Thee will go from here now, and we must not meet again. I am--”

“I know who you are,” she broke in. “I know what your religion is; that
fighting and war and bloodshed is a sin to you.”

“I am of no family or place in England,” he went on calmly. “I come of
yeoman and trading stock; I have nothing in common with people of rank.
Our lines of life will not cross. It is well that it should be so. As
to what happened--that which I may feel has nothing to do with whether I
was justified or no. But if thee has thought that I have repented doing
what I did, let that pass for ever from your mind. I know that I should
do the same, yes, even a hundred times. I did according to my nature.
Thee must not now be punished cruelly for a thing thee did not do.
Silence is the only way of safety or of justice. We must not speak of
this again. We must each go our own way.”

Her eyes were moist. She reached out a hand to him timidly. “Oh, forgive
me,” she added brokenly, “I am so vain, so selfish, and that makes one
blind to the truth. It is all clearer now. You have shown me that I was
right in my first impulse, and that is all I can say for myself. I shall
pray all my life that it will do you no harm in the end.”

She remained silent, for a moment adjusting her veil, preparing to go.
Presently she spoke again: “I shall always want to know about you--what
is happening to you. How could it be otherwise?”

She was half realising one of the deepest things in existence, that the
closest bond between two human beings is a bond of secrecy upon a thing
which vitally, fatally concerns both or either. It is a power at once
malevolent and beautiful. A secret like that of David and Hylda will
do in a day what a score of years could not accomplish, will insinuate
confidences which might never be given to the nearest or dearest. In
neither was any feeling of the heart begotten by their experiences; and
yet they had gone deeper in each other’s lives than any one either
had known in a lifetime. They had struck a deeper note than love or
friendship. They had touched the chord of a secret and mutual experience
which had gone so far that their lives would be influenced by it for
ever after. Each understood this in a different way.

Hylda looked towards the letter lying on the table. It had raised in
her mind, not a doubt, but an undefined, undefinable anxiety. He saw the
glance, and said: “I was writing to one who has been as a sister to me.
She was my mother’s sister though she is almost as young as I. Her name
is Faith. There is nothing there of what concerns thee and me, though
it would make no difference if she knew.” Suddenly a thought seemed to
strike him. “The secret is of thee and me. There is safety. If it became
another’s, there might be peril. The thing shall be between us only, for
ever?”

“Do you think that I--”

“My instinct tells me a woman of sensitive mind might one day, out of an
unmerciful honesty, tell her husband--”

“I am not married-”

“But one day--”

She interrupted him. “Sentimental egotism will not rule me. Tell me,”
 she added, “tell me one thing before I go. You said that your course was
set. What is it?”

“I remain here,” he answered quietly. “I remain in the service of Prince
Kaid.”

“It is a dreadful government, an awful service--”

“That is why I stay.”

“You are going to try and change things here--you alone?”

“I hope not alone, in time.”

“You are going to leave England, your friends, your family, your
place--in Hamley, was it not? My aunt has read of you--my cousin--” she
paused.

“I had no place in Hamley. Here is my place. Distance has little to do
with understanding or affection. I had an uncle here in the East for
twenty-five years, yet I knew him better than all others in the world.
Space is nothing if minds are in sympathy. My uncle talked to me over
seas and lands. I felt him, heard him speak.”

“You think that minds can speak to minds, no matter what the
distance--real and definite things?”

“If I were parted from one very dear to me, I would try to say to him
or her what was in my mind, not by written word only, but by the flying
thought.”

She sat down suddenly, as though overwhelmed. “Oh, if that were
possible!” she said. “If only one could send a thought like that!” Then
with an impulse, and the flicker of a sad smile, she reached out a hand.
“If ever in the years to come you want to speak to me, will you try to
make me understand, as your uncle did with you?”

“I cannot tell,” he answered. “That which is deepest within us obeys
only the laws of its need. By instinct it turns to where help lies, as
a wild deer, fleeing, from captivity, makes for the veldt and the
watercourse.”

She got to her feet again. “I want to pay my debt,” she said solemnly.
“It is a debt that one day must be paid--so awful--so awful!” A swift
change passed over her. She shuddered, and grew white. “I said brave
words just now,” she added in a hoarse whisper, “but now I see him lying
there cold and still, and you stooping over him. I see you touch his
breast, his pulse. I see you close his eyes. One instant full of the
pulse of life, the next struck out into infinite space. Oh, I shall
never--how can I ever-forget!” She turned her head away from him, then
composed herself again, and said quietly, with anxious eyes: “Why was
nothing said or done? Perhaps they are only waiting. Perhaps they know.
Why was it announced that he died in his bed at home?”

“I cannot tell. When a man in high places dies in Egypt, it may be one
death or another. No one inquires too closely. He died in Kaid Pasha’s
Palace, where other men have died, and none has inquired too closely.
To-day they told me at the Palace that his carriage was seen to leave
with himself and Mizraim the Chief Eunuch. Whatever the object, he was
secretly taken to his house from the Palace, and his brother Nahoum
seized upon his estate in the early morning.

“I think that no one knows the truth. But it is all in the hands of
God. We can do nothing more. Thee must go. Thee should not have come.
In England thee will forget, as thee should forget. In Egypt I shall
remember, as I should remember.”

“Thee,” she repeated softly. “I love the Quaker thee. My grandmother was
an American Quaker. She always spoke like that. Will you not use thee
and thou in speaking to me, always?”

“We are not likely to speak together in any language in the future,” he
answered. “But now thee must go, and I will--”

“My cousin, Mr. Lacey, is waiting for me in the garden,” she answered.
“I shall be safe with him.” She moved towards the door. He caught the
handle to turn it, when there came the noise of loud talking, and the
sound of footsteps in the court-yard. He opened the door slightly and
looked out, then closed it quickly. “It is Nahoum Pasha,” he said.
“Please, the other room,” he added, and pointed to a curtain. “There is
a window leading on a garden. The garden-gate opens on a street leading
to the Ezbekiah Square and your hotel.”

“But, no, I shall stay here,” she said. She drew down her veil, then
taking from her pocket another, arranged it also, so that her face was
hidden.

“Thee must go,” he said--“go quickly.” Again he pointed.

“I will remain,” she rejoined, with determination, and seated herself in
a chair.



CHAPTER X. THE FOUR WHO KNEW

There was a knocking at the door. David opened it. Nahoum Pasha stepped
inside, and stood still a moment looking at Hylda. Then he made low
salutation to her, touched his hand to his lips and breast saluting
David, and waited.

“What is thy business, pasha?” asked David quietly, and motioned towards
a chair.

“May thy path be on the high hills, Saadat-el-basha. I come for a favour
at thy hands.” Nahoum sat down. “What favour is mine to give to Nahoum
Pasha?”

“The Prince has given thee supreme place--it was mine but yesterday. It
is well. To the deserving be the fruits of deserving.”

“Is merit, then, so truly rewarded here?” asked David quietly.

“The Prince saw merit at last when he chose your Excellency for
councillor.”

“How shall I show merit, then, in the eyes of Nahoum Pasha?”

“Even by urging the Prince to give me place under him again. Not as
heretofore--that is thy place--yet where it may be. I have capacity. I
can aid thee in the great task. Thou wouldst remake our Egypt--and my
heart is with you. I would rescue, not destroy. In years gone by I
tried to do good to this land, and I failed. I was alone. I had not the
strength to fight the forces around me. I was overcome. I had too little
faith. But my heart was with the right--I am an Armenian and a Christian
of the ancient faith. I am in sorrow. Death has humbled me. My brother
Foorgat Bey--may flowers bloom for ever on his grave!--he is dead,”--his
eyes were fixed on those of David, as with a perfectly assured
candour--“and my heart is like an empty house. But man must not be idle
and live--if Kaid lets me live. I have riches. Are not Foorgat’s riches
mine, his Palace, his gardens, his cattle, and his plantations, are they
not mine? I may sit in the court-yard and hear the singers, may listen
to the tale-tellers by the light of the moon; I may hear the tales of
Al-Raschid chanted by one whose tongue never falters, and whose voice
is like music; after the manner of the East I may give bread and meat
to the poor at sunset; I may call the dancers to the feast. But what
comfort shall it give? I am no longer a youth. I would work. I would
labour for the land of Egypt, for by work shall we fulfil ourselves,
redeem ourselves. Saadat, I would labour, but my master has taken away
from me the anvil, the fire, and the hammer, and I sit without the door
like an armless beggar. What work to do in Egypt save to help the land,
and how shall one help, save in the Prince’s service? There can be no
reform from outside. If I laboured for better things outside Kaid’s
Palace, how long dost thou think I should escape the Nile, or the
diamond-dust in my coffee? The work which I did, is it not so that it,
with much more, falls now to thy hands, Saadat, with a confidence from
Kaid that never was mine?”

“I sought not the office.”

“Have I a word of blame? I come to ask for work to do with thee. Do I
not know Prince Kaid? He had come to distrust us all. As stale water
were we in his taste. He had no pleasure in us, and in our deeds he
found only stones of stumbling. He knew not whom to trust. One by one we
all had yielded to ceaseless intrigue and common distrust of each other,
until no honest man was left; till all were intent to save their lives
by holding power; for in this land to lose power is to lose life. No man
who has been in high place, has had the secrets of the Palace and the
ear of the Prince, lives after he has lost favour. The Prince, for his
safety, must ensure silence, and the only silence in Egypt is the grave.
In thee, Saadat, Kaid has found an honest man. Men will call thee mad,
if thou remainest honest, but that is within thine own bosom and with
fate. For me, thou hast taken my place, and more. Malaish, it is the
decree of fate, and I have no anger. I come to ask thee to save my life,
and then to give me work.”

“How shall I save thy life?”

“By reconciling the Effendina to my living, and then by giving me
service, where I shall be near to thee; where I can share with thee,
though it be as the ant beside the beaver, the work of salvation in
Egypt. I am rich since my brother was--” He paused; no covert look was
in his eyes, no sign of knowledge, nothing but meditation and sorrowful
frankness--“since Foorgat passed away in peace, praise be to God! He lay
on his bed in the morning, when one came to wake him, like a sleeping
child, no sign of the struggle of death upon him.”

A gasping sound came from the chair where Hylda sat; but he took no
notice. He appeared to be unconscious of David’s pain-drawn face, as
he sat with hands upon his knees, his head bent forward listening, as
though lost to the world.

“So did Foorgat, my brother, die while yet in the fulness of his
manhood, life beating high in his veins, with years before him to
waste. He was a pleasure-lover, alas! he laid up no treasure of work
accomplished; and so it was meet that he should die as he lived, in a
moment of ease. And already he is forgotten. It is the custom here.
He might have died by diamond-dust, and men would have set down their
coffee-cups in surprise, and then would have forgotten; or he might have
been struck down by the hand of an assassin, and, unless it was in the
Palace, none would have paused to note it. And so the sands sweep over
his steps upon the shore of time.”

After the first exclamation of horror, Hylda had sat rigid, listening
as though under a spell. Through her veil she gazed at Nahoum with a
cramping pain at her heart, for he seemed ever on the verge of the truth
she dreaded; and when he spoke the truth, as though unconsciously, she
felt she must cry out and rush from the room. He recalled to her the
scene in the little tapestried room as vividly as though it was there
before her eyes, and it had for the moment all the effect of a hideous
nightmare. At last, however, she met David’s eyes, and they guided her,
for in them was a steady strength and force which gave her confidence.
At first he also had been overcome inwardly, but his nerves were cool,
his head was clear, and he listened to Nahoum, thinking out his course
meanwhile.

He owed this man much. He had taken his place, and by so doing had
placed his life in danger. He had killed the brother upon the same
day that he had dispossessed the favourite of office; and the debt was
heavy. In office Nahoum had done after his kind, after the custom of
the place and the people; and yet, as it would seem, the man had had
stirrings within him towards a higher path. He, at any rate, had not
amassed riches out of his position, and so much could not be said of
any other servant of the Prince Pasha. Much he had heard of Nahoum’s
powerful will, hidden under a genial exterior, and behind his friendly,
smiling blue eyes. He had heard also of cruelty--of banishment, and of
enemies removed from his path suddenly, never to be seen again; but,
on the whole, men spoke with more admiration of him than of any other
public servant, Armenian Christian in a Mahommedan country though he
was. That very day Kaid had said that if Nahoum had been less eager to
control the State, he might still have held his place. Besides, the man
was a Christian--of a mystic, half-legendary, obscure Christianity; yet
having in his mind the old faith, its essence and its meaning, perhaps.
Might not this Oriental mind, with that faith, be a power to redeem
the land? It was a wonderful dream, in which he found the way, as he
thought, to atone somewhat to this man for a dark injury done.

When Nahoum stopped speaking David said: “But if I would have it, if it
were well that it should be, I doubt I have the power to make it so.”

“Saadat-el-bdsha, Kaid believes in thee to-day; he will not believe
to-morrow if thou dost remain without initiative. Action, however
startling, will be proof of fitness. His Highness shakes a long spear.
Those who ride with him must do battle with the same valour. Excellency,
I have now great riches--since Death smote Foorgat Bey in the
forehead”--still his eyes conveyed no meaning, though Hylda shrank
back--“and I would use them for the good thou wouldst do here. Money
will be needed, and sufficient will not be at thy hand-not till new
ledgers be opened, new balances struck.”

He turned to Hylda quietly, and with a continued air of innocence said:
“Shall it not be so-madame? Thou, I doubt not, are of his kin. It would
seem so, though I ask pardon if it be not so--wilt thou not urge his
Excellency to restore me to Kaid’s favour? I know little of the English,
though I know them humane and honest; but my brother, Foorgat Bey, he
was much among them, lived much in England, was a friend to many great
English. Indeed, on the evening that he died I saw him in the gallery of
the banquet-room with an English lady--can one be mistaken in an English
face? Perhaps he cared for her; perhaps that was why he smiled as he lay
upon his bed, never to move again. Madame, perhaps in England thou mayst
have known my brother. If that is so, I ask thee to speak for me to his
Excellency. My life is in danger, and I am too young to go as my brother
went. I do not wish to die in middle age, as my brother died.”

He had gone too far. In David’s mind there was no suspicion that Nahoum
knew the truth. The suggestion in his words had seemed natural; but,
from the first, a sharp suspicion was in the mind of Hylda, and his last
words had convinced her that if Nahoum did not surely know the truth,
he suspected it all too well. Her instinct had pierced far; and as she
realised his suspicions, perhaps his certainty, and heard his words of
covert insult, which, as she saw, David did not appreciate, anger and
determination grew in her. Yet she felt that caution must mark her
words, and that nothing but danger lay in resentment. She felt the
everlasting indignity behind the quiet, youthful eyes, the determined
power of the man; but she saw also that, for the present, the course
Nahoum suggested was the only course to take. And David must not even
feel the suspicion in her own mind, that Nahoum knew or suspected the
truth. If David thought that Nahoum knew, the end of all would come at
once. It was clear, however, that Nahoum meant to be silent, or he would
have taken another course of action. Danger lay in every direction, but,
to her mind, the least danger lay in following Nahoum’s wish.

She slowly raised her veil, showing a face very still now, with eyes as
steady as David’s. David started at her action, he thought it rash; but
the courage of it pleased him, too.

“You are not mistaken,” she said slowly in French; “your brother was
known to me. I had met him in England. It will be a relief to all his
friends to know that he passed away peacefully.” She looked him in the
eyes determinedly. “Monsieur Claridge is not my kinsman, but he is my
fellow-countryman. If you mean well by monsieur, your knowledge and your
riches should help him on his way. But your past is no guarantee of good
faith, as you will acknowledge.”

He looked her in the eyes with a far meaning. “But I am giving
guarantees of good faith now,” he said softly. “Will you--not?”

She understood. It was clear that he meant peace, for the moment at
least.

“If I had influence I would advise him to reconcile you to Prince Kaid,”
 she said quietly, then turned to David with an appeal in her eyes.

David stood up. “I will do what I can,” he said. “If thee means as well
by Egypt as I mean by thee, all may be well for all.”

“Saadat! Saadat!” said Nahoum, with show of assumed feeling, and made
salutation. Then to Hylda, making lower salutation still, he said: “Thou
hast lifted from my neck the yoke. Thou hast saved me from the shadow
and the dust. I am thy slave.” His eyes were like a child’s, wide and
confiding.

He turned towards the door, and was about to open it, when there came
a knocking, and he stepped back. Hylda drew down her veil. David opened
the door cautiously and admitted Mizraim the Chief Eunuch. Mizraim’s
eyes searched the room, and found Nahoum.

“Pasha,” he said to Nahoum, “may thy bones never return to dust, nor the
light of thine eyes darken! There is danger.”

Nahoum nodded, but did not speak.

“Shall I speak, then?” He paused and made low salutation to David,
saying, “Excellency, I am thine ox to be slain.”

“Speak, son of the flowering oak,” said Nahoum, with a sneer in his
voice. “What blessing dost thou bring?”

“The Effendina has sent for thee.”

Nahoum’s eyes flashed. “By thee, lion of Abdin?” The lean, ghastly being
smiled. “He has sent a company of soldiers and Achmet Pasha.”

“Achmet! Is it so? They are here, Mizraim, watcher of the morning?”

“They are at thy palace--I am here, light of Egypt.”

“How knewest thou I was here?”

Mizraim salaamed. “A watch was set upon thee this morning early. The
watcher was of my slaves. He brought the word to me that thou wast here
now. A watcher also was set upon thee, Excellency”--he turned to David.
“He also was of my slaves. Word was delivered to his Highness that
thou”--he turned to Nahoum again--“wast in thy palace, and Achmet Pasha
went thither. He found thee not. Now the city is full of watchers, and
Achmet goes from bazaar to bazaar, from house to house which thou was
wont to frequent--and thou art here.”

“What wouldst thou have me do, Mizraim?”

“Thou art here; is it the house of a friend or a foe?” Nahoum did
not answer. His eyes were fixed in thought upon the floor, but he was
smiling. He seemed without fear.

“But if this be the house of a friend, is he safe here?” asked David.

“For this night, it may be,” answered Mizraim, “till other watchers be
set, who are no slaves of mine. Tonight, here, of all places in Cairo,
he is safe; for who could look to find him where thou art who hast taken
from him his place and office, Excellency--on whom the stars shine
for ever! But in another day, if my lord Nahoum be not forgiven by the
Effendina, a hundred watchers will pierce the darkest corner of the
bazaar, the smallest room in Cairo.”

David turned to Nahoum. “Peace be to thee, friend. Abide here till
to-morrow, when I will speak for thee to his Highness, and, I trust,
bring thee pardon. It shall be so--but I shall prevail,” he added, with
slow decision; “I shall prevail with him. My reasons shall convince his
Highness.”

“I can help thee with great reasons, Saadat,” said Nahoum. “Thou shalt
prevail. I can tell thee that which will convince Kaid.”

While they were speaking, Hylda had sat motionless watching. At first
it seemed to her that a trap had been set, and that David was to be the
victim of Oriental duplicity; but revolt, as she did, from the miserable
creature before them, she saw at last that he spoke the truth.

“Thee will remain under this roof to-night, pasha?” asked David.

“I will stay if thy goodness will have it so,” answered Nahoum slowly.
“It is not my way to hide, but when the storm comes it is well to
shelter.”

Salaaming low, Mizraim withdrew, his last glance being thrown towards
Hylda, who met his look with a repugnance which made her face rigid.
She rose and put on her gloves. Nahoum rose also, and stood watching her
respectfully.

“Thee will go?” asked David, with a movement towards her.

She inclined her head. “We have finished our business, and it is late,”
 she answered.

David looked at Nahoum. “Thee will rest here, pasha, in peace. In a
moment I will return.” He took up his hat.

There was a sudden flash of Nahoum’s eyes, as though he saw an outcome
of the intention which pleased him, but Hylda, saw the flash, and her
senses were at once alarmed.

“There is no need to accompany me,” she said. “My cousin waits for me.”

David opened the door leading into the court-yard. It was dark, save for
the light of a brazier of coals. A short distance away, near the outer
gate, glowed a star of red light, and the fragrance of a strong cigar
came over.

“Say, looking for me?” said a voice, and a figure moved towards David.
“Yours to command, pasha, yours to command.” Lacey from Chicago held out
his hand.

“Thee is welcome, friend,” said David.

“She’s ready, I suppose. Wonderful person, that. Stands on her own feet
every time. She don’t seem as though she came of the same stock as me,
does she?”

“I will bring her if thee will wait, friend.”

“I’m waiting.” Lacey drew back to the gateway again and leaned against
the wall, his cigar blazing in the dusk.

A moment later David appeared in the garden again, with the slim,
graceful figure of the girl who stood “upon her own feet.” David drew
her aside for a moment. “Thee is going at once to England?” he asked.

“To-morrow to Alexandria. There is a steamer next day for Marseilles. In
a fortnight more I shall be in England.”

“Thee must forget Egypt,” he said. “Remembrance is not a thing of the
will,” she answered.

“It is thy duty to forget. Thee is young, and it is spring with thee.
Spring should be in thy heart. Thee has seen a shadow; but let it not
fright thee.”

“My only fear is that I may forget,” she answered.

“Yet thee will forget.”

With a motion towards Lacey he moved to the gate. Suddenly she turned
to him and touched his arm. “You will be a great man herein Egypt,” she
said. “You will have enemies without number. The worst of your enemies
always will be your guest to-night.”

He did not, for a moment, understand. “Nahoum?” he asked. “I take his
place. It would not be strange; but I will win him to me.”

“You will never win him,” she answered. “Oh, trust my instinct in this!
Watch him. Beware of him.” David smiled slightly. “I shall have need to
beware of many. I am sure thee does well to caution me. Farewell,” he
added.

“If it should be that I can ever help you--” she said, and paused.

“Thee has helped me,” he replied. “The world is a desert. Caravans from
all quarters of the sun meet at the cross-roads. One gives the other
food or drink or medicine, and they move on again. And all grows dim
with time. And the camel-drivers are forgotten; but the cross-roads
remain, and the food and the drink and the medicine and the cattle
helped each caravan upon the way. Is it not enough?”

She placed her hand in his. It lay there for a moment. “God be with
thee, friend,” he said.

The next instant Thomas Tilman Lacey’s drawling voice broke the silence.

“There’s something catching about these nights in Egypt. I suppose it’s
the air. No wind--just the stars, and the ultramarine, and the nothing
to do but lay me down and sleep. It doesn’t give you the jim-jumps like
Mexico. It makes you forget the world, doesn’t it? You’d do things here
that you wouldn’t do anywhere else.”

The gate was opened by the bowab, and the two passed through. David was
standing by the brazier, his hand held unconsciously over the coals,
his eyes turned towards them. The reddish flame from the fire lit up his
face under the broad-brimmed hat. His head, slightly bowed, was thrust
forward to the dusk. Hylda looked at him steadily for a moment. Their
eyes met, though hers were in the shade. Again Lacey spoke. “Don’t be
anxious. I’ll see her safe back. Good-bye. Give my love to the girls.”

David stood looking at the closed gate with eyes full of thought and
wonder and trouble. He was not thinking of the girl. There was no
sentimental reverie in his look. Already his mind was engaged in
scrutiny of the circumstances in which he was set. He realised fully his
situation. The idealism which had been born with him had met its reward
in a labour herculean at the least, and the infinite drudgery of the
practical issues came in a terrible pressure of conviction to his mind.
The mind did not shrink from any thought of the dangers in which he
would be placed, from any vision of the struggle he must have with
intrigue, and treachery and vileness. In a dim, half-realised way he
felt that honesty and truth would be invincible weapons with a people
who did not know them. They would be embarrassed, if not baffled, by a
formula of life and conduct which they could not understand.

It was not these matters that vexed him now, but the underlying forces
of life set in motion by the blow which killed a fellow-man. This fact
had driven him to an act of redemption unparalleled in its intensity and
scope; but he could not tell--and this was the thought that shook his
being--how far this act itself, inspiring him to a dangerous and immense
work in life, would sap the best that was in him, since it must remain
a secret crime, for which he could not openly atone. He asked himself as
he stood by the brazier, the bowab apathetically rolling cigarettes at
his feet, whether, in the flow of circumstance, the fact that he could
not make open restitution, or take punishment for his unlawful act,
would undermine the structure of his character. He was on the threshold
of his career: action had not yet begun; he was standing like a swimmer
on a high shore, looking into depths beneath which have never been
plumbed by mortal man, wondering what currents, what rocks, lay beneath
the surface of the blue. Would his strength, his knowledge, his skill,
be equal to the enterprise? Would he emerge safe and successful, or be
carried away by some strong undercurrent, be battered on unseen rocks?

He turned with a calm face to the door behind which sat the displaced
favourite of the Prince, his mind at rest, the trouble gone out of his
eyes.

“Uncle Benn! Uncle Benn!” he said to himself, with a warmth at his heart
as he opened the door and stepped inside.

Nahoum sat sipping coffee. A cigarette was between his fingers. He
touched his hand to his forehead and his breast as David closed the door
and hung his hat upon a nail. David’s servant, Mahommed Hassan, whom
he had had since first he came to Egypt, was gliding from the room--a
large, square-shouldered fellow of over six feet, dressed in a plain
blue yelek, but on his head the green turban of one who had done a
pilgrimage to Mecca. Nahoum waved a hand after Mahommed and said:

“Whence came thy servant sadat?”

“He was my guide to Cairo. I picked him from the street.”

Nahoum smiled. There was no malice in the smile, only, as it might seem,
a frank humour. “Ah, your Excellency used independent judgment. Thou art
a judge of men. But does it make any difference that the man is a thief
and a murderer--a murderer?”

David’s eyes darkened, as they were wont to do when he was moved or
shocked.

“Shall one only deal, then, with those who have neither stolen nor
slain--is that the rule of the just in Egypt?”

Nahoum raised his eyes to the ceiling as though in amiable inquiry, and
began to finger a string of beads as a nun might tell her paternosters.
“If that were the rule,” he answered, after a moment, “how should any
man be served in Egypt? Hereabouts is a man’s life held cheap, else
I had not been thy guest to-night; and Kaid’s Palace itself would be
empty, if every man in it must be honest. But it is the custom of the
place for political errors to be punished by a hidden hand; we do not
call it murder.”

“What is murder, friend?”

“It is such a crime as that of Mahommed yonder, who killed--”

David interposed. “I do not wish to know his crime. That is no affair
between thee and me.”

Nahoum fingered his beads meditatively. “It was an affair of the
housetops in his town of Manfaloot. I have only mentioned it because I
know what view the English take of killing, and how set thou art to have
thy household above reproach, as is meet in a Christian home. So, I
took it, would be thy mind--which Heaven fill with light for Egypt’s
sake!--that thou wouldst have none about thee who were not above
reproach, neither liars, nor thieves, nor murderers.”

“But thee would serve with me, friend,” rejoined David quietly. “Thee
has men’s lives against thy account.”

“Else had mine been against their account.”

“Was it not so with Mahommed? If so, according to the custom of the
land, then Mahommed is as immune as thou art.”

“Saadat, like thee I am a Christian, yet am I also Oriental, and what
is crime with one race is none with another. At the Palace two days past
thou saidst thou hadst never killed a man; and I know that thy religion
condemns killing even in war. Yet in Egypt thou wilt kill, or thou
shalt thyself be killed, and thy aims will come to naught. When, as thou
wouldst say, thou hast sinned, hast taken a man’s life, then thou wilt
understand. Thou wilt keep this fellow Mahommed, then?”

“I understand, and I will keep him.”

“Surely thy heart is large and thy mind great. It moveth above small
things. Thou dost not seek riches here?”

“I have enough; my wants are few.”

“There is no precedent for one in office to withhold his hand from
profit and backsheesh.”

“Shall we not try to make a precedent?”

“Truthfulness will be desolate--like a bird blown to sea, beating
‘gainst its doom.”

“Truth will find an island in the sea.”

“If Egypt is that sea, Saadat, there is no island.”

David came over close to Nahoum, and looked him in the eyes.

“Surely I can speak to thee, friend, as to one understanding. Thou art
a Christian--of the ancient fold. Out of the East came the light. Thy
Church has preserved the faith. It is still like a lamp in the mist and
the cloud in the East. Thou saidst but now that thy heart was with my
purpose. Shall the truth that I would practise here not find an island
in this sea--and shall it not be the soul of Nahoum Pasha?”

“Have I not given my word? Nay, then, I swear it by the tomb of my
brother, whom Death met in the highway, and because he loved the sun,
and the talk of men, and the ways of women, rashly smote him out of the
garden of life into the void. Even by his tomb I swear it.”

“Hast thou, then, such malice against Death? These things cannot happen
save by the will of God.”

“And by the hand of man. But I have no cause for revenge. Foorgat died
in his sleep like a child. Yet if it had been the hand of man, Prince
Kaid or any other, I would not have held my hand until I had a life for
his.”

“Thou art a Christian, yet thou wouldst meet one wrong by another?”

“I am an Oriental.” Then, with a sudden change of manner, he added: “But
thou hast a Christianity the like of which I have never seen. I will
learn of thee, Saadat, and thou shalt learn of me also many things which
I know. They will help thee to understand Egypt and the place where thou
wilt be set--if so be my life is saved, and by thy hand.”

Mahommed entered, and came to David. “Where wilt thou sleep, Saadat?” he
asked.

“The pasha will sleep yonder,” David replied, pointing to another room.
“I will sleep here.” He laid a hand upon the couch where he sat.

Nahoum rose and, salaaming, followed Mahommed to the other room.

In a few moments the house was still, and remained so for hours. Just
before dawn the curtain of Nahoum’s room was drawn aside, the Armenian
entered stealthily, and moved a step towards the couch where David lay.
Suddenly he was stopped by a sound. He glanced towards a corner near
David’s feet. There sat Mahommed watching, a neboot of dom-wood across
his knees.

Their eyes remained fixed upon each other for a moment. Then Nahoum
passed back into his bedroom as stealthily as he had come.

Mahommed looked closely at David. He lay with an arm thrown over
his head, resting softly, a moisture on his forehead as on that of a
sleeping child.

“Saadat! Saadat!” said Mahommed softly to the sleeping figure, scarcely
above his breath, and then with his eyes upon the curtained room
opposite, began to whisper words from the Koran:

“In the name of Allah, the Compassionate, the Merciful--”



CHAPTER XI. AGAINST THE HOUR OF MIDNIGHT

Achmet the Ropemaker was ill at ease. He had been set a task in which
he had failed. The bright Cairene sun starkly glittering on the French
chandeliers and Viennese mirrors, and beating on the brass trays and
braziers by the window, irritated him. He watched the flies on the wall
abstractedly; he listened to the early peripatetic salesmen crying their
wares in the streets leading to the Palace; he stroked his cadaverous
cheek with yellow fingers; he listened anxiously for a footstep.
Presently he straightened himself up, and his fingers ran down the front
of his coat to make sure that it was buttoned from top to bottom.
He grew a little paler. He was less stoical and apathetic than most
Egyptians. Also he was absurdly vain, and he knew that his vanity would
receive rough usage.

Now the door swung open, and a portly figure entered quickly. For so
large a man Prince Kaid was light and subtle in his movements. His face
was mobile, his eye keen and human.

Achmet salaamed low. “The gardens of the First Heaven be thine, and the
uttermost joy, Effendina,” he said elaborately.

“A thousand colours to the rainbow of thy happiness,” answered Kaid
mechanically, and seated himself cross-legged on a divan, taking a
narghileh from the black slave who had glided ghostlike behind him.

“What hour didst thou find him? Where hast thou placed him?” he added,
after a moment.

Achmet salaamed once more. “I have burrowed without ceasing, but the
holes are empty, Effendina,” he returned, abjectly and nervously.

He had need to be concerned. The reply was full of amazement and anger.
“Thou hast not found him? Thou hast not brought Nahoum to me?” Kaid’s
eyes were growing reddish; no good sign for those around him, for any
that crossed him or his purposes.

“A hundred eyes failed to search him out. Ten thousand piastres did not
find him; the kourbash did not reveal him.”

Kaid’s frown grew heavier. “Thou shalt bring Nahoum to me by midnight
to-morrow!”

“But if he has escaped, Effendina?” Achmet asked desperately. He had a
peasant’s blood; fear of power was ingrained.

“What was thy business but to prevent escape? Son of a Nile crocodile,
if he has escaped, thou too shalt escape from Egypt--into Fazougli.
Fool, Nahoum is no coward. He would remain. He is in Egypt.”

“If he be in Egypt, I will find him, Effendina. Have I ever failed?
When thou hast pointed, have I not brought? Have there not been many,
Effendina? Should I not bring Nahoum, who has held over our heads the
rod?”

Kaid looked at him meditatively, and gave no answer to the question. “He
reached too far,” he muttered. “Egypt has one master only.”

The door opened softly and the black slave stole in. His lips moved, but
scarce a sound travelled across the room. Kaid understood, and made a
gesture. An instant afterwards the vast figure of Higli Pasha bulked
into the room. Again there were elaborate salutations and salaams, and
Kaid presently said:

“Foorgat?”

“Effendina,” answered High, “it is not known how he died. He was in this
Palace alive at night. In the morning he was found in bed at his own
home.”

“There was no wound?”

“None, Effendina.”

“The thong?”

“There was no mark, Effendina.”

“Poison?”

“There was no sign, Effendina.”

“Diamond-dust?”

“Impossible, Effendina. There was not time. He was alive and well here
at the Palace at eleven, and--” Kaid made an impatient gesture. “By the
stone in the Kaabah, but it is not reasonable that Foorgat should die in
his bed like a babe and sleep himself into heaven! Fate meant him for
a violent end; but ere that came there was work to do for me. He had
a gift for scenting treason--and he had treasure.” His eyes shut and
opened again with a look not pleasant to see. “But since it was that he
must die so soon, then the loan he promised must now be a gift from the
dead, if he be dead, if he be not shamming. Foorgat was a dire jester.”

“But now it is no jest, Effendina. He is in his grave.”

“In his grave! Bismillah! In his grave, dost thou say?”

High’s voice quavered. “Yesterday before sunset, Effendina. By Nahoum’s
orders.”

“I ordered the burial for to-day. By the gates of hell, but who shall
disobey me!”

“He was already buried when the Effendina’s orders came,” High pleaded
anxiously.

“Nahoum should have been taken yesterday,” he rejoined, with malice in
his eyes.

“If I had received the orders of the Effendina on the night when the
Effendina dismissed Nahoum--” Achmet said softly, and broke off.

“A curse upon thine eyes that did not see thy duty!” Kaid replied
gloomily. Then he turned to High. “My seal has been put upon Foorgat’s
doors? His treasure-places have been found? The courts have been
commanded as to his estate, the banks--”

“It was too late, Effendina,” replied High hopelessly. Kaid got to his
feet slowly, rage possessing him. “Too late! Who makes it too late when
I command?”

“When Foorgat was found dead, Nahoum at once seized the palace and the
treasures. Then he went to the courts and to the holy men, and claimed
succession. That was while it was yet early morning. Then he instructed
the banks. The banks hold Foorgat’s fortune against us, Effendina.”

“Foorgat had turned Mahommedan. Nahoum is a Christian. My will is law.
Shall a Christian dog inherit from a true believer? The courts, the
Wakfs shall obey me. And thou, son of a burnt father, shalt find Nahoum!
Kaid shall not be cheated. Foorgat pledged the loan. It is mine. Allah
scorch thine eyes!” he added fiercely to Achmet, “but thou shalt find
this Christian gentleman, Nahoum.”

Suddenly, with a motion of disgust, he sat down, and taking the stem of
the narghileh, puffed vigorously in silence. Presently in a red fury he
cried: “Go--go--go, and bring me back by midnight Nahoum, and Foorgat’s
treasures, to the last piastre. Let every soldier be a spy, if thine own
spies fail.”

As they turned to go, the door opened again, the black slave appeared,
and ushered David into the room. David salaamed, but not low, and stood
still.

On the instant Kaid changed, The rage left his face. He leaned forward
eagerly, the cruel and ugly look faded slowly from his eyes.

“May thy days of life be as a river with sands of gold, effendi,” he
said gently. He had a voice like music. “May the sun shine in thy heart
and fruits of wisdom flourish there, Effendina,” answered David quietly.
He saluted the others gravely, and his eyes rested upon Achmet in a way
which Higli Pasha noted for subsequent gossip.

Kaid pulled at his narghileh for a moment, mumbling good-humouredly to
himself and watching the smoke reel away; then, with half-shut eyes, he
said to David: “Am I master in Egypt or no, effendi?”

“In ruling this people the Prince of Egypt stands alone,” answered
David. “There is no one between him and the people. There is no
Parliament.”

“It is in my hand, then, to give or to withhold, to make or to break?”
 Kaid chuckled to have this tribute, as he thought, from a Christian, who
did not blink at Oriental facts, and was honest.

David bowed his head to Kaid’s words.

“Then if it be my hand that lifts up or casts down, that rewards or that
punishes, shall my arm not stretch into the darkest corner of Egypt to
bring forth a traitor? Shall it not be so?”

“It belongs to thy power,” answered David. “It is the ancient custom of
princes here. Custom is law, while it is yet the custom.”

Kaid looked at him enigmatically for a moment, then smiled grimly--he
saw the course of the lance which David had thrown. He bent his look
fiercely on Achmet and Higli. “Ye have heard. Truth is on his lips. I
have stretched out my arm. Ye are my arm, to reach for and gather in
Nahoum and all that is his.” He turned quickly to David again. “I have
given this hawk, Achmet, till to-morrow night to bring Nahoum to me,” he
explained.

“And if he fails--a penalty? He will lose his place?” asked David, with
cold humour.

“More than his place,” Kaid rejoined, with a cruel smile.

“Then is his place mine, Effendina,” rejoined David, with a look which
could give Achmet no comfort. “Thou will bring Nahoum--thou?” asked
Kaid, in amazement.

“I have brought him,” answered David. “Is it not my duty to know the
will of the Effendina and to do it, when it is just and right?”

“Where is he--where does he wait?” questioned Kaid eagerly.

“Within the Palace--here,” replied David. “He awaits his fate in thine
own dwelling, Effendina.” Kaid glowered upon Achmet. “In the years which
Time, the Scytheman, will cut from thy life, think, as thou fastest at
Ramadan or feastest at Beiram, how Kaid filled thy plate when thou wast
a beggar, and made thee from a dog of a fellah into a pasha. Go to thy
dwelling, and come here no more,” he added sharply. “I am sick of thy
yellow, sinful face.”

Achmet made no reply, but, as he passed beyond the door with Higli, he
said in a whisper: “Come--to Harrik and the army! He shall be deposed.
The hour is at hand.” High answered him faintly, however. He had not the
courage of the true conspirator, traitor though he was.

As they disappeared, Kaid made a wide gesture of friendliness to David,
and motioned to a seat, then to a narghileh. David seated himself, took
the stem of a narghileh in his mouth for an instant, then laid it down
again and waited.

“Nahoum--I do not understand,” Kaid said presently, his eyes gloating.

“He comes of his own will, Effendina.”

“Wherefore?” Kaid could not realise the truth. This truth was not
Oriental on the face of it. “Effendina, he comes to place his life in
thy hands. He would speak with thee.”

“How is it thou dost bring him?”

“He sought me to plead for him with thee, and because I knew his peril,
I kept him with me and brought him hither but now.”

“Nahoum went to thee?” Kaid’s eyes peered abstractedly into the distance
between the almost shut lids. That Nahoum should seek David, who had
displaced him from his high office, was scarcely Oriental, when his
every cue was to have revenge on his rival. This was a natural sequence
to his downfall. It was understandable. But here was David safe and
sound. Was it, then, some deeper scheme of future vengeance? The
Oriental instinctively pierced the mind of the Oriental. He could have
realised fully the fierce, blinding passion for revenge which had almost
overcome Nahoum’s calculating mind in the dark night, with his foe in
the next room, which had driven him suddenly from his bed to fall upon
David, only to find Mahommed Hassan watching--also with the instinct of
the Oriental.

Some future scheme of revenge? Kaid’s eyes gleamed red. There would
be no future for Nahoum. “Why did Nahoum go to thee?” he asked again
presently.

“That I might beg his life of thee, Highness, as I said,” David replied.

“I have not ordered his death.”

David looked meditatively at him. “It was agreed between us yesterday
that I should speak plainly--is it not so?”

Kaid nodded, and leaned back among the cushions.

“If what the Effendina intends is fulfilled, there is no other way but
death for Nahoum,” added David. “What is my intention, effendi?”

“To confiscate the fortune left by Foorgat Bey. Is it not so?”

“I had a pledge from Foorgat--a loan.”

“That is the merit of the case, Effendina. I am otherwise concerned.
There is the law. Nahoum inherits. Shouldst thou send him to Fazougli,
he would still inherit.”

“He is a traitor.”

“Highness, where is the proof?”

“I know. My friends have disappeared one by one--Nahoum. Lands have been
alienated from me--Nahoum. My income has declined--Nahoum. I have given
orders and they have not been fulfilled--Nahoum. Always, always some
rumour of assassination, or of conspiracy, or the influence and secret
agents of the Sultan--all Nahoum. He is a traitor. He has grown rich
while I borrow from Europe to pay my army and to meet the demands of the
Sultan.”

“What man can offer evidence in this save the Effendina who would profit
by his death?”

“I speak of what I know. I satisfy myself. It is enough.”

“Highness, there is a better way; to satisfy the people, for whom thee
lives. None should stand between. Is not the Effendina a father to
them?”

“The people! Would they not say Nahoum had got his due if he were
blotted from their sight?”

“None has been so generous to the poor, so it is said by all. His hand
has been upon the rich only. Now, Effendina, he has brought hither the
full amount of all he has received and acquired in thy service. He would
offer it in tribute.”

Kaid smiled sardonically. “It is a thin jest. When a traitor dies the
State confiscates his goods!”

“Thee calls him traitor. Does thee believe he has ever conspired against
thy life?”

Kaid shrugged his shoulders.

“Let me answer for thee, Effendina. Again and again he has defeated
conspiracy. He has blotted it out--by the sword and other means. He has
been a faithful servant to his Prince at least. If he has done after the
manner of all others in power here, the fault is in the system, not in
the man alone. He has been a friend to thee, Kaid.”

“I hope to find in thee a better.”

“Why should he not live?”

“Thou hast taken his place.”

“Is it, then, the custom to destroy those who have served thee, when
they cease to serve?” David rose to his feet quickly. His face was
shining with a strange excitement. It gave him a look of exaltation, his
lips quivered with indignation. “Does thee kill because there is silence
in the grave?”

Kaid blew a cloud of smoke slowly. “Silence in the grave is a fact
beyond dispute,” he said cynically.

“Highness, thee changes servants not seldom,” rejoined David meaningly.
“It may be that my service will be short. When I go, will the long arm
reach out for me in the burrows where I shall hide?”

Kaid looked at him with ill-concealed admiration. “Thou art an
Englishman, not an Egyptian, a guest, not a subject, and under no law
save my friendship.” Then he added scornfully: “When an Englishman in
England leaves office, no matter how unfaithful, though he be a friend
of any country save his own, they send him to the House of Lords--or so
I was told in France when I was there. What does it matter to thee what
chances to Nahoum? Thou hast his place with me. My secrets are thine.
They shall all be thine--for years I have sought an honest man. Thou art
safe whether to go or to stay.”

“It may be so. I heed it not. My life is as that of a gull--if the wind
carry it out to sea, it is lost. As my uncle went I shall go one day.
Thee will never do me ill; but do I not know that I shall have foes at
every corner, behind every mooshrabieh screen, on every mastaba, in the
pasha’s court-yard, by every mosque? Do I not know in what peril I serve
Egypt?”

“Yet thou wouldst keep alive Nahoum! He will dig thy grave deep, and
wait long.”

“He will work with me for Egypt, Effendina.” Kaid’s face darkened.

“What is thy meaning?”

“I ask Nahoum’s life that he may serve under me, to do those things thou
and I planned yesterday--the land, taxation, the army, agriculture, the
Soudan. Together we will make Egypt better and greater and richer--the
poor richer, even though the rich be poorer.”

“And Kaid--poorer?”

“When Egypt is richer, the Prince is richer, too. Is not the Prince
Egypt? Highness, yesterday--yesterday thee gave me my commission. If
thee will not take Nahoum again into service to aid me, I must not
remain. I cannot work alone.”

“Thou must have this Christian Oriental to work with thee?” He looked at
David closely, then smiled sardonically, but with friendliness to David
in his eyes. “Nahoum has prayed to work with thee, to be a slave where
he was master? He says to thee that he would lay his heart upon the
altar of Egypt?” Mordant, questioning humour was in his voice.

David inclined his head.

“He would give up all that is his?”

“It is so, Effendina.”

“All save Foorgat’s heritage?”

“It belonged to their father. It is a due inheritance.”

Kaid laughed sarcastically. “It was got in Mehemet Ali’s service.”

“Nathless, it is a heritage, Effendina. He would give that fortune back
again to Egypt in work with me, as I shall give of what is mine, and of
what I am, in the name of God, the all-merciful!”

The smile faded out of Kaid’s face, and wonder settled on it. What
manner of man was this? His life, his fortune for Egypt, a country alien
to him, which he had never seen till six months ago! What kind of being
was behind the dark, fiery eyes and the pale, impassioned face? Was
he some new prophet? If so, why should he not have cast a spell upon
Nahoum? Had he not bewitched himself, Kaid, one of the ablest princes
since Alexander or Amenhotep? Had Nahoum, then, been mastered and won?
Was ever such power? In how many ways had it not been shown! He had
fought for his uncle’s fortune, and had got it at last yesterday without
a penny of backsheesh. Having got his will, he was now ready to give
that same fortune to the good of Egypt--but not to beys and pashas and
eunuchs (and that he should have escaped Mizraim was the marvel beyond
all others!), or even to the Prince Pasha; but to that which would make
“Egypt better and greater and richer--the poor richer, even though the
rich be poorer!” Kaid chuckled to himself at that. To make the rich
poorer would suit him well, so long as he remained rich. And, if riches
could be got, as this pale Frank proposed, by less extortion from the
fellah and less kourbash, so much the happier for all.

He was capable of patriotism, and this Quaker dreamer had stirred it in
him a little. Egypt, industrial in a real sense; Egypt, paying her own
way without tyranny and loans: Egypt, without corvee, and with an army
hired from a full public purse; Egypt, grown strong and able to resist
the suzerainty and cruel tribute--that touched his native goodness of
heart, so long, in disguise; it appealed to the sense of leadership in
him; to the love of the soil deep in his bones; to regard for the common
people--for was not his mother a slave? Some distant nobleness trembled
in him, while yet the arid humour of the situation flashed into his
eyes, and, getting to his feet, he said to David: “Where is Nahoum?”

David told him, and he clapped his hands. The black slave entered,
received an order, and disappeared. Neither spoke, but Kaid’s face was
full of cheerfulness.

Presently Nahoum entered and salaamed low, then put his hand upon
his turban. There was submission, but no cringing or servility in his
manner. His blue eyes looked fearlessly before him. His face was not
paler than its wont. He waited for Kaid to speak.

“Peace be to thee,” Kaid murmured mechanically.

“And to thee, peace, O Prince,” answered Nahoum. “May the feet of Time
linger by thee, and Death pass thy house forgetful.”

There was silence for a moment, and then Kaid spoke again. “What are thy
properties and treasure?” he asked sternly.

Nahoum drew forth a paper from his sleeve, and handed it to Kaid without
a word. Kaid glanced at it hurriedly, then said: “This is but nothing.
What hast thou hidden from me?”

“It is all I have got in thy service, Highness,” he answered boldly.
“All else I have given to the poor; also to spies--and to the army.”

“To spies--and to the army?” asked Kaid slowly, incredulously.

“Wilt thou come with me to the window, Effendina?” Kaid, wondering, went
to the great windows which looked on to the Palace square. There, drawn
up, were a thousand mounted men as black as ebony, wearing shining white
metal helmets and fine chain-armour and swords and lances like medieval
crusaders. The horses, too, were black, and the mass made a barbaric
display belonging more to another period in the world’s history. This
regiment of Nubians Kaid had recruited from the far south, and had
maintained at his own expense. When they saw him at the window now,
their swords clashed on their thighs and across their breasts, and they
raised a great shout of greeting.

“Well?” asked Kaid, with a ring to the voice. “They are loyal,
Effendina, every man. But the army otherwise is honeycombed with
treason. Effendina, my money has been busy in the army paying
and bribing officers, and my spies were costly. There has been
sedition--conspiracy; but until I could get the full proofs I waited; I
could but bribe and wait. Were it not for the money I had spent, there
might have been another Prince of Egypt.”

Kald’s face darkened. He was startled, too. He had been taken unawares.
“My brother Harrik--!”

“And I should have lost my place, lost all for which I cared. I had no
love for money; it was but a means. I spent it for the State--for the
Effendina, and to keep my place. I lost my place, however, in another
way.”

“Proofs! Proofs!” Kaid’s voice was hoarse with feeling.

“I have no proofs against Prince Harrik, no word upon paper. But there
are proofs that the army is seditious, that, at any moment, it may
revolt.”

“Thou hast kept this secret?” questioned Kaid darkly and suspiciously.

“The time had not come. Read, Effendina,” he added, handing some papers
over.

“But it is the whole army!” said Kaid aghast, as he read. He was
convinced.

“There is only one guilty,” returned Nahoum. Their eyes met. Oriental
fatalism met inveterate Oriental distrust and then instinctively Kaid’s
eyes turned to David. In the eyes of the Inglesi was a different thing.
The test of the new relationship had come. Ferocity was in his heart,
a vitriolic note was in his voice as he said to David, “If this be
true--the army rotten, the officers disloyal, treachery under every
tunic--bismillah, speak!”

“Shall it not be one thing at a time, Effendina?” asked David. He made a
gesture towards Nahoum. Kaid motioned to a door. “Wait yonder,” he said
darkly to Nahoum. As the door opened, and Nahoum disappeared leisurely
and composedly, David caught a glimpse of a guard of armed Nubians in
leopard-skins filed against the white wall of the other room.

“What is thy intention towards Nahoum, Effendina?” David asked
presently.

Kaid’s voice was impatient. “Thou hast asked his life--take it; it
is thine; but if I find him within these walls again until I give him
leave, he shall go as Foorgat went.”

“What was the manner of Foorgat’s going?” asked David quietly.

“As a wind blows through a court-yard, and the lamp goes out, so he
went--in the night. Who can say? Wherefore speculate? He is gone. It is
enough. Were it not for thee, Egypt should see Nahoum no more.”

David sighed, and his eyes closed for an instant. “Effendina, Nahoum has
proved his faith--is it not so?” He pointed to the documents in Kaid’s
hands.

A grim smile passed over Kaid’s face. Distrust of humanity, incredulity,
cold cynicism, were in it. “Wheels within wheels, proofs within proofs,”
 he said. “Thou hast yet to learn the Eastern heart. When thou seest
white in the East, call it black, for in an instant it will be black.
Malaish, it is the East! Have I not trusted--did I not mean well by all?
Did I not deal justly? Yet my justice was but darkness of purpose, the
hidden terror to them all. So did I become what thou findest me and dost
believe me--a tyrant, in whose name a thousand do evil things of which I
neither hear nor know. Proof! When a woman lies in your arms, it is not
the moment to prove her fidelity. Nahoum has crawled back to my feet
with these things, and by the beard of the Prophet they are true!” He
looked at the papers with loathing. “But what his purpose was when he
spied upon and bribed my army I know not. Yet, it shall be said, he has
held Harrik back--Harrik, my brother. Son of Sheitan and slime of the
Nile, have I not spared Harrik all these years!”

“Hast thou proof, Effendina?”

“I have proof enough; I shall have more soon. To save their lives,
these, these will tell. I have their names here.” He tapped the papers.
“There are ways to make them tell. Now, speak, effendi, and tell me what
I shall do to Harrik.”

“Wouldst thou proclaim to Egypt, to the Sultan, to the world that
the army is disloyal? If these guilty men are seized, can the army
be trusted? Will it not break away in fear? Yonder Nubians are not
enough--a handful lost in the melee. Prove the guilt of him who
perverted the army and sought to destroy thee. Punish him.”

“How shall there be proof save through those whom he has perverted?
There is no writing.”

“There is proof,” answered David calmly.

“Where shall I find it?” Kaid laughed contemptuously.

“I have the proof,” answered David gravely. “Against Harrik?”

“Against Prince Harrik Pasha.”

“Thou--what dost thou know?”

“A woman of the Prince heard him give instructions for thy disposal,
Effendina, when the Citadel should turns its guns upon Cairo and the
Palace. She was once of thy harem. Thou didst give her in marriage, and
she came to the harem of Prince Harrik at last. A woman from without who
sang to her--a singing girl, an al’mah--she trusted with the paper to
warn thee, Effendina, in her name. Her heart had remembrance of thee.
Her foster-brother Mahommed Hassan is my servant. Him she told, and
Mahommed laid the matter before me this morning. Here is a sign by which
thee will remember her, so she said. Zaida she was called here.” He
handed over an amulet which had one red gem in the centre.

Kaid’s face had set into fierce resolution, but as he took the amulet
his eyes softened.

“Zaida. Inshallah! Zaida, she was called. She has the truth almost of
the English. She could not lie ever. My heart smote me concerning her,
and I gave her in marriage.” Then his face darkened again, and his teeth
showed in malice. A demon was roused in him. He might long ago have
banished the handsome and insinuating Harrik, but he had allowed him
wealth and safety--and now...

His intention was unmistakable.

“He shall die the death,” he said. “Is it not so?” he added fiercely to
David, and gazed at him fixedly. Would this man of peace plead for the
traitor, the would-be fratricide?

“He is a traitor; he must die,” answered David slowly.

Kald’s eyes showed burning satisfaction. “If he were thy brother, thou
wouldst kill him?”

“I would give a traitor to death for the country’s sake. There is no
other way.”

“To-night he shall die.”

“But with due trial, Effendina?”

“Trial--is not the proof sufficient?”

“But if he confess, and give evidence himself, and so offer himself to
die?”

“Is Harrik a fool?” answered Kaid, with scorn.

“If there be a trial and sentence is given, the truth concerning the
army must appear. Is that well? Egypt will shake to its foundations--to
the joy of its enemies.”

“Then he shall die secretly.”

“The Prince Pasha of Egypt will be called a murderer.”

Kaid shrugged his shoulders.

“The Sultan--Europe--is it well?”

“I will tell the truth,” Kaid rejoined angrily.

“If the Effendina will trust me, Prince Harrik shall confess his crime
and pay the penalty also.”

“What is thy purpose?”

“I will go to his palace and speak with him.”

“Seize him?”

“I have no power to seize him, Effendina.”

“I will give it. My Nubians shall go also.”

“Effendina, I will go alone. It is the only way. There is great danger
to the throne. Who can tell what a night will bring forth?”

“If Harrik should escape--”

“If I were an Egyptian and permitted Harrik to escape, my life would pay
for my failure. If I failed, thou wouldst not succeed. If I am to serve
Egypt, there must be trust in me from thee, or it were better to pause
now. If I go, as I shall go, alone, I put my life in danger--is it not
so?”

Suddenly Kaid sat down again among his cushions. “Inshallah! In the name
of God, be it so. Thou art not as other men. There is something in thee
above my thinking. But I will not sleep till I see thee again.”

“I shall see thee at midnight, Effendina. Give me the ring from thy
finger.”

Kaid passed it over, and David put it in his pocket. Then he turned to
go.

“Nahoum?” he asked.

“Take him hence. Let him serve thee if it be thy will. Yet I cannot
understand it. The play is dark. Is he not an Oriental?”

“He is a Christian.”

Kaid laughed sourly, and clapped his hands for the slave.

In a moment David and Nahoum were gone. “Nahoum, a Christian!
Bismillah!” murmured Kaid scornfully, then fell to pondering darkly over
the evil things he had heard.

Meanwhile the Nubians in their glittering armour waited without in the
blistering square.



CHAPTER XII. THE JEHAD AND THE LIONS

“Allah hu Achbar! Allah hu Achbar! Ashhadu an la illaha illalla!”
 The sweetly piercing, resonant voice of the Muezzin rang far and
commandingly on the clear evening air, and from bazaar and crowded
street the faithful silently hurried to the mosques, leaving their
slippers at the door, while others knelt where the call found them, and
touched their foreheads to the ground.

In his palace by the Nile, Harrik, the half-brother of the Prince Pasha,
heard it, and breaking off from conversation with two urgent visitors,
passed to an alcove near, dropping a curtain behind him. Kneeling
reverently on the solitary furniture of the room--a prayer-rug from
Medina--he lost himself as completely in his devotions as though his
life were an even current of unforbidden acts and motives.

Cross-legged on the great divan of the room he had left, his less pious
visitors, unable to turn their thoughts from the dark business on which
they had come, smoked their cigarettes, talking to each other in tones
so low as would not have been heard by a European, and with apparent
listlessness.

Their manner would not have indicated that they were weighing matters of
life and death, of treason and infamy, of massacre and national shame.
Only the sombre, smouldering fire of their eyes was evidence of the
lighted fuse of conspiracy burning towards the magazine. One look of
surprise had been exchanged when Harrik Pasha left them suddenly--time
was short for what they meant to do; but they were Muslims, and they
resigned themselves.

“The Inglesi must be the first to go; shall a Christian dog rule over
us?”

It was Achmet the Ropemaker who spoke, his yellow face wrinkling with
malice, though his voice but murmured hoarsely.

“Nahoum will kill him.” Higli Pasha laughed low--it was like the gurgle
of water in the narghileh--a voice of good nature and persuasiveness
from a heart that knew no virtue. “Bismillah! Who shall read the meaning
of it? Why has he not already killed?”

“Nahoum would choose his own time--after he has saved his life by the
white carrion. Kaid will give him his life if the Inglesi asks. The
Inglesi, he is mad. If he were not mad, he would see to it that Nahoum
was now drying his bones in the sands.”

“What each has failed to do for the other shall be done for them,”
 answered Achmet, a hateful leer on his immobile features. “To-night many
things shall be made right. To-morrow there will be places empty and
places filled. Egypt shall begin again to-morrow.”

“Kaid?”

Achmet stopped smoking for a moment. “When the khamsin comes, when the
camels stampede, and the children of the storm fall upon the caravan,
can it be foretold in what way Fate shall do her work? So but the end be
the same--malaish! We shall be content tomorrow.”

Now he turned and looked at his companion as though his mind had chanced
on a discovery. “To him who first brings word to a prince who inherits,
that the reigning prince is dead, belong honour and place,” he said.

“Then shall it be between us twain,” said High, and laid his hot palm
against the cold, snaky palm of the other. “And he to whom the honour
falls shall help the other.”

“Aiwa, but it shall be so,” answered Achmet, and then they spoke in
lower tones still, their eyes on the curtain behind which Harrik prayed.

Presently Harrik entered, impassive, yet alert, his slight, handsome
figure in sharp contrast to the men lounging in the cushions before him,
who salaamed as he came forward. The features were finely chiselled, the
forehead white and high, the lips sensuous, the eyes fanatical, the look
concentrated yet abstracted. He took a seat among the cushions, and,
after a moment, said to Achmet, in a voice abnormally deep and powerful:
“Diaz--there is no doubt of Diaz?”

“He awaits the signal. The hawk flies not swifter than Diaz will act.”

“The people--the bazaars--the markets?”

“As the air stirs a moment before the hurricane comes, so the whisper
has stirred them. From one lip to another, from one street to another,
from one quarter to another, the word has been passed--‘Nahoum was
a Christian, but Nahoum was an Egyptian whose heart was Muslim. The
stranger is a Christian and an Inglesi. Reason has fled from the Prince
Pasha, the Inglesi has bewitched him. But the hour of deliverance
draweth nigh. Be ready! To-night!’ So has the whisper gone.”

Harrik’s eyes burned. “God is great,” he said. “The time has come. The
Christians spoil us. From France, from England, from Austria--it is
enough. Kaid has handed us over to the Greek usurers, the Inglesi and
the Frank are everywhere. And now this new-comer who would rule Kaid,
and lay his hand upon Egypt like Joseph of old, and bring back Nahoum,
to the shame of every Muslim--behold, the spark is to the tinder, it
shall burn.”

“And the hour, Effendina?”

“At midnight. The guns to be trained on the Citadel, the Palace
surrounded. Kaid’s Nubians?”

“A hundred will be there, Effendina, the rest a mile away at their
barracks.” Achmet rubbed his cold palms together in satisfaction.

“And Prince Kaid, Effendina?” asked Higli cautiously.

The fanatical eyes turned away. “The question is foolish--have ye no
brains?” he said impatiently.

A look of malignant triumph flashed from Achmet to High, and he said,
scarce above a whisper: “May thy footsteps be as the wings of the eagle,
Effendina. The heart of the pomegranate is not redder than our hearts
are red for thee. Cut deep into our hearts, and thou shalt find the last
beat is for thee--and for the Jehad!”

“The Jehad--ay, the Jehad! The time is at hand,” answered Harrik,
glowering at the two. “The sword shall not be sheathed till we have
redeemed Egypt. Go your ways, effendis, and peace be on you and on all
the righteous worshippers of God!”

As High and Achmet left the palace, the voice of a holy man--admitted
everywhere and treated with reverence--chanting the Koran, came
somnolently through the court-yard: “Bismillah hirrahmah, nirraheem.
Elhamdu lillahi sabbila!”

Rocking his body backwards and forwards and dwelling sonorously on each
vowel, the holy man seemed the incarnation of Muslim piety; but as the
two conspirators passed him with scarce a glance, and made their way to
a small gate leading into the great garden bordering on the Nile, his
eyes watched them sharply. When they had passed through, he turned
towards the windows of the harem, still chanting. For a long time he
chanted. An occasional servant came and went, but his voice ceased not,
and he kept his eyes fixed ever on the harem windows.

At last his watching had its reward. Something fluttered from a window
to the ground. Still chanting, he rose and began walking round the great
court-yard. Twice he went round, still chanting, but the third time he
stooped to pick up a little strip of linen which had fallen from the
window, and concealed it in his sleeve. Presently he seated himself
again, and, still chanting, spread out the linen in his palm and read
the characters upon it. For an instant there was a jerkiness to the
voice, and then it droned on resonantly again. Now the eyes of the holy
man were fixed on the great gates through which strangers entered, and
he was seated in the way which any one must take who came to the palace
doors.

It was almost dark, when he saw the bowab, after repeated knocking,
sleepily and grudgingly open the gates to admit a visitor. There seemed
to be a moment’s hesitation on the bowab’s part, but he was presently
assured by something the visitor showed him, and the latter made his way
deliberately to the palace doors. As the visitor neared the holy man,
who chanted on monotonously, he was suddenly startled to hear between
the long-drawn syllables the quick words in Arabic:

“Beware, Saadat! See, I am Mahommed Hassan, thy servant! At midnight
they surround Kaid’s palace--Achmet and Higli--and kill the Prince
Pasha. Return, Saadat. Harrik will kill thee.”

David made no sign, but with a swift word to the faithful Mahommed
Hassan, passed on, and was presently admitted to the palace. As the
doors closed behind him, he would hear the voice of the holy man still
chanting: “Waladalleen--Ameen-Ameen! Waladalleen--Ameen!”

The voice followed him, fainter and fainter, as he passed through the
great bare corridors with the thick carpets on which the footsteps made
no sound, until it came, soft and undefined, as it were from a great
distance. Then suddenly there fell upon him a sense of the peril of his
enterprise. He had been left alone in the vast dim hall while a slave,
made obsequious by the sight of the ring of the Prince Pasha, sought
his master. As he waited he was conscious that people were moving about
behind the great screens of mooshrabieh which separated this room from
others, and that eyes were following his every motion. He had gained
easy ingress to this place; but egress was a matter of some speculation.
The doors which had closed behind him might swing one way only! He had
voluntarily put himself in the power of a man whose fatal secret he
knew. He only felt a moment’s apprehension, however. He had been moved
to come from a whisper in his soul; and he had the sure conviction of
the predestinarian that he was not to be the victim of “The Scytheman”
 before his appointed time. His mind resumed its composure, and he
watchfully waited the return of the slave.

Suddenly he was conscious of some one behind him, though he had heard
no one approach. He swung round and was met by the passive face of the
black slave in personal attendance on Harrik. The slave did not speak,
but motioned towards a screen at the end of the room, and moved towards
it. David followed. As they reached it, a broad panel opened, and they
passed through, between a line of black slaves. Then there was a sudden
darkness, and a moment later David was ushered into a room blazing with
light. Every inch of the walls was hung with red curtains. No door was
visible. He was conscious of this as the panel clicked behind him, and
the folds of the red velvet caught his shoulder in falling. Now he saw
sitting on a divan on the opposite side of the room Prince Harrik.

David had never before seen him, and his imagination had fashioned a
different personality. Here was a combination of intellect, refinement,
and savagery. The red, sullen lips stamped the delicate, fanatical face
with cruelty and barbaric indulgence, while yet there was an intensity
in the eyes that showed the man was possessed of an idea which
mastered him--a root-thought. David was at once conscious of a complex
personality, of a man in whom two natures fought. He understood it.
By instinct the man was a Mahdi, by heredity he was a voluptuary, that
strange commingling of the religious and the evil found in so many
criminals. In some far corner of his nature David felt something akin.
The rebellion in his own blood against the fine instinct of his Quaker
faith and upbringing made him grasp the personality before him. Had he
himself been born in these surroundings, under these influences! The
thought flashed through his mind like lightning, even as he bowed before
Harrik, who salaamed and said: “Peace be unto thee!” and motioned him to
a seat on a divan near and facing him.

“What is thy business with me, effendi?” asked Harrik.

“I come on the business of the Prince Pasha,” answered David.

Harrik touched his fez mechanically, then his breast and lips, and a
cruel smile lurked at the corners of his mouth as he rejoined:

“The feet of them who wear the ring of their Prince wait at no man’s
door. The carpet is spread for them. They go and they come as the feet
of the doe in the desert. Who shall say, They shall not come; who shall
say, They shall not return!”

Though the words were spoken with an air of ingenuous welcome, David
felt the malignity in the last phrase, and knew that now was come
the most fateful moment of his life. In his inner being he heard the
dreadful challenge of Fate. If he failed in his purpose with this
man, he would never begin his work in Egypt. Of his life he did not
think--his life was his purpose, and the one was nothing without the
other. No other man would have undertaken so Quixotic an enterprise,
none would have exposed himself so recklessly to the dreadful accidents
of circumstance. There had been other ways to overcome this crisis, but
he had rejected them for a course fantastic and fatal when looked at in
the light of ordinary reason. A struggle between the East and the West
was here to be fought out between two wills; between an intellectual
libertine steeped in Oriental guilt and cruelty and self-indulgence, and
a being selfless, human, and in an agony of remorse for a life lost by
his hand.

Involuntarily David’s eyes ran round the room before he replied. How
many slaves and retainers waited behind those velvet curtains?

Harrik saw the glance and interpreted it correctly. With a look of
dark triumph he clapped his hands. As if by magic fifty black slaves
appeared, armed with daggers. They folded their arms and waited like
statues.

David made no sign of discomposure, but said slowly: “Dost thou think I
did not know my danger, Eminence? Do I seem to thee such a fool? I came
alone as one would come to the tent of a Bedouin chief whose son one had
slain, and ask for food and safety. A thousand men were mine to command,
but I came alone. Is thy guest imbecile? Let them go. I have that to say
which is for Prince Harrik’s ear alone.”

An instant’s hesitation, and Harrik motioned the slaves away. “What is
the private word for my ear?” he asked presently, fingering the stem of
the narghileh.

“To do right by Egypt, the land of thy fathers and thy land; to do right
by the Prince Pasha, thy brother.”

“What is Egypt to thee? Why shouldst thou bring thine insolence here?
Couldst thou not preach in thine own bazaars beyond the sea?”

David showed no resentment. His reply was composed and quiet. “I am come
to save Egypt from the work of thy hands.”

“Dog of an unbeliever, what hast thou to do with me, or the work of my
hands?”

David held up Kaid’s ring, which had lain in his hand. “I come from the
master of Egypt--master of thee, and of thy life, and of all that is
thine.”

“What is Kaid’s message to me?” Harrik asked, with an effort at
unconcern, for David’s boldness had in it something chilling to his
fierce passion and pride.

“The word of the Effendina is to do right by Egypt, to give thyself to
justice and to peace.”

“Have done with parables. To do right by Egypt wherein, wherefore?” The
eyes glinted at David like bits of fiery steel.

“I will interpret to thee, Eminence.”

“Interpret.” Harrik muttered to himself in rage. His heart was dark, he
thirsted for the life of this arrogant Inglesi. Did the fool not see his
end? Midnight was at hand! He smiled grimly.

“This is the interpretation, O Prince! Prince Harrik has conspired
against his brother the Prince Pasha, has treacherously seduced officers
of the army, has planned to seize Cairo, to surround the Palace and take
the life of the Prince of Egypt. For months, Prince, thee has done this:
and the end of it is that thee shall do right ere it be too late. Thee
is a traitor to thy country and thy lawful lord.”

Harrik’s face turned pale; the stem of the narghileh shook in his
fingers. All had been discovered, then! But there was a thing of dark
magic here. It was not a half-hour since he had given the word to strike
at midnight, to surround the Palace, and to seize the Prince Pasha.
Achmet--Higli, had betrayed him, then! Who other? No one else knew save
Zaida, and Zaida was in the harem. Perhaps even now his own palace was
surrounded. If it was so, then, come what might, this masterful Inglesi
should pay the price. He thought of the den of lions hard by, of the
cage of tigers-the menagerie not a thousand feet away. He could hear the
distant roaring now, and his eyes glittered. The Christian to the wild
beasts! That at least before the end. A Muslim would win heaven by
sending a Christian to hell.

Achmet--Higli! No others knew. The light of a fateful fanaticism was in
his eyes. David read him as an open book, and saw the madness come upon
him.

“Neither Higli, nor Achmet, nor any of thy fellow-conspirators has
betrayed thee,” David said. “God has other voices to whisper the truth
than those who share thy crimes. I have ears, and the air is full of
voices.”

Harrik stared at him. Was this Inglesi, then, with the grey coat,
buttoned to the chin, and the broad black hat which remained on his head
unlike the custom of the English--was he one of those who saw visions
and dreamed dreams, even as himself! Had he not heard last night a voice
whisper through the dark “Harrik, Harrik, flee to the desert! The lions
are loosed upon thee!” Had he not risen with the voice still in his ears
and fled to the harem, seeking Zaida, she who had never cringed before
him, whose beauty he had conquered, but whose face turned from him when
he would lay his lips on hers? And, as he fled, had he not heard, as it
were, footsteps lightly following him--or were they going before him?
Finding Zaida, had he not told her of the voice, and had she not said:
“In the desert all men are safe--safe from themselves and safe from
others; from their own acts and from the acts of others”? Were the
lions, then, loosed upon him? Had he been betrayed?

Suddenly the thought flashed into his mind that his challenger would not
have thrust himself into danger, given himself to the mouth of the Pit,
if violence were intended. There was that inside his robe, than which
lightning would not be more quick to slay. Had he not been a hunter of
repute? Had he not been in deadly peril with wild beasts, and was he
not quicker than they? This man before him was like no other he had ever
met. Did voices speak to him? Were there, then, among the Christians
such holy men as among the Muslims, who saw things before they happened,
and read the human mind? Were there sorcerers among them, as among the
Arabs?

In any case his treason was known. What were to be the consequences?
Diamond-dust in his coffee? To be dropped into the Nile like a dog?
To be smothered in his sleep?--For who could be trusted among all his
slaves and retainers when it was known he was disgraced, and that the
Prince Pasha would be happier if Harrik were quiet for ever?

Mechanically he drew out his watch and looked at it. It was nine
o’clock. In three hours more would have fallen the coup. But from this
man’s words he knew that the stroke was now with the Prince Pasha.
Yet, if this pale Inglesi, this Christian sorcerer, knew the truth in
a vision only, and had not declared it to Kaid, there might still be
a chance of escape. The lions were near--it would be a joy to give a
Christian to the lions to celebrate the capture of Cairo and the throne.
He listened intently to the distant rumble of the lions. There was one
cage dedicated to vengeance. Five human beings on whom his terrible
anger fell in times past had been thrust into it alive. Two were slaves,
one was an enemy, one an invader of his harem, and one was a woman, his
wife, his favourite, the darling of his heart. When his chief eunuch
accused her of a guilty love, he had given her paramour and herself
to that awful death. A stroke of the vast paw, a smothered roar as the
teeth gave into the neck of the beautiful Fatima, and then--no more.
Fanaticism had caught a note of savage music that tuned it to its
height.

“Why art thou here? For what hast thou come? Do the spirit voices give
thee that counsel?” he snarled.

“I am come to ask Prince Harrik to repair the wrong he has done. When
the Prince Pasha came to know of thy treason--”

Harrik started. “Kaid believes thy tale of treason?” he burst out.

“Prince Kaid knows the truth,” answered David quietly. “He might have
surrounded this palace with his Nubians, and had thee shot against the
palace walls. That would have meant a scandal in Egypt and in Europe. I
besought him otherwise. It may be the scandal must come, but in another
way, and--”

“That I, Harrik, must die?” Harrik’s voice seemed far away. In his own
ears it sounded strange and unusual. All at once the world seemed to be
a vast vacuum in which his brain strove for air, and all his senses were
numbed and overpowered. Distempered and vague, his soul seemed spinning
in an aching chaos. It was being overpowered by vast elements, and life
and being were atrophied in a deadly smother. The awful forces behind
visible being hung him in the middle space between consciousness
and dissolution. He heard David’s voice, at first dimly, then
understandingly.

“There is no other way. Thou art a traitor. Thou wouldst have been a
fratricide. Thou wouldst have put back the clock in Egypt by a
hundred years, even to the days of the Mamelukes--a race of slaves and
murderers. God ordained that thy guilt should be known in time. Prince,
thou art guilty. It is now but a question how thou shalt pay the debt of
treason.”

In David’s calm voice was the ring of destiny. It was dispassionate,
judicial; it had neither hatred nor pity. It fell on Harrik’s ear as
though from some far height. Destiny, the controller--who could escape
it?

Had he not heard the voices in the night--“The lions are loosed upon
thee”? He did not answer David now, but murmured to himself like one in
a dream.

David saw his mood, and pursued the startled mind into the pit of
confusion. “If it become known to Europe that the army is disloyal,
that its officers are traitors like thee, what shall we find? England,
France, Turkey, will land an army of occupation. Who shall gainsay
Turkey if she chooses to bring an army here and recover control, remove
thy family from Egypt, and seize upon its lands and goods? Dost thou not
see that the hand of God has been against thee? He has spoken, and thy
evil is discovered.”

He paused. Still Harrik did not reply, but looked at him with dilated,
fascinated eyes. Death had hypnotised him, and against death and destiny
who could struggle? Had not a past Prince Pasha of Egypt safeguarded
himself from assassination all his life, and, in the end, had he not
been smothered in his sleep by slaves?

“There are two ways only,” David continued--“to be tried and die
publicly for thy crimes, to the shame of Egypt, its present peril, and
lasting injury; or to send a message to those who conspired with thee,
commanding them to return to their allegiance, and another to the Prince
Pasha, acknowledging thy fault, and exonerating all others. Else, how
many of thy dupes shall die! Thy choice is not life or death, but how
thou shalt die, and what thou shalt do for Egypt as thou diest. Thou
didst love Egypt, Eminence?”

David’s voice dropped low, and his last words had a suggestion which
went like an arrow to the source of all Harrik’s crimes, and that also
which redeemed him in a little. It got into his inner being. He roused
himself and spoke, but at first his speech was broken and smothered.

“Day by day I saw Egypt given over to the Christians,” he said. “The
Greek, the Italian, the Frenchman, the Englishman, everywhere they
reached out, their hands and took from us our own. They defiled our
mosques; they corrupted our life; they ravaged our trade, they stole
our customers, they crowded us from the streets where once the faithful
lived alone. Such as thou had the ear of the Prince, and such as Nahoum,
also an infidel, who favoured the infidels of Europe. And now thou hast
come, the most dangerous of them all! Day by day the Muslim has loosed
his hold on Cairo, and Alexandria, and the cities of Egypt. Street upon
street knows him no more. My heart burned within me. I conspired for
Egypt’s sake. I would have made her Muslim once again. I would have
fought the Turk and the Frank, as did Mehemet Ali; and if the infidels
came, I would have turned them back; or if they would not go, I would
have destroyed them here. Such as thou should have been stayed at the
door. In my own house I would have been master. We seek not to take up
our abode in other nations and in the cities of the infidel. Shall we
give place to them on our own mastaba, in our own court-yard--hand to
them the keys of our harems? I would have raised the Jehad if they vexed
me with their envoys and their armies.” He paused, panting.

“It would not have availed,” was David’s quiet answer. “This land may
not be as Tibet--a prison for its own people. If the door opens outward,
then must it open inward also. Egypt is the bridge between the East and
the West. Upon it the peoples of all nations pass and repass. Thy plan
was folly, thy hope madness, thy means to achieve horrible. Thy dream is
done. The army will not revolt, the Prince will not be slain. Now only
remains what thou shalt do for Egypt--”

“And thou--thou wilt be left here to lay thy will upon Egypt. Kaid’s ear
will be in thy hand--thou hast the sorcerer’s eye. I know thy meaning.
Thou wouldst have me absolve all, even Achmet, and Higli, and Diaz, and
the rest, and at thy bidding go out into the desert”--he paused--“or
into the grave.”

“Not into the desert,” rejoined David firmly. “Thou wouldst not rest.
There, in the desert, thou wouldst be a Mahdi. Since thou must die, wilt
thou not order it after thine own choice? It is to die for Egypt.”

“Is this the will of Kaid?” asked Harrik, his voice thick with wonder,
his brain still dulled by the blow of Fate.

“It was not the Effendina’s will, but it hath his assent. Wilt thou
write the word to the army and also to the Prince?”

He had conquered. There was a moment’s hesitation, then Harrik picked
up paper and ink that lay near, and said: “I will write to Kaid. I will
have naught to do with the army.”

“It shall be the whole, not the part,” answered David determinedly. “The
truth is known. It can serve no end to withhold the writing to the army.
Remember what I have said to thee. The disloyalty of the army must not
be known. Canst thou not act after the will of Allah, the all-powerful,
the all-just, the all-merciful?”

There was an instant’s pause, and then suddenly Harrik placed the paper
in his palm and wrote swiftly and at some length to Kaid. Laying it
down, he took another and wrote but a few words--to Achmet and Diaz.
This message said in brief, “Do not strike. It is the will of Allah.
The army shall keep faithful until the day of the Mahdi be come. I spoke
before the time. I go to the bosom of my Lord Mahomet.”

He threw the papers on the floor before David, who picked them up, read
them, and put them into his pocket.

“It is well,” he said. “Egypt shall have peace. And thou, Eminence?”

“Who shall escape Fate? What I have written I have written.”

David rose and salaamed. Harrik rose also. “Thou wouldst go, having
accomplished thy will?” Harrik asked, a thought flashing to his mind
again, in keeping with his earlier purpose. Why should this man be left
to trouble Egypt?

David touched his breast. “I must bear thy words to the Palace and the
Citadel.”

“Are there not slaves for messengers?” Involuntarily Harrik turned his
eyes to the velvet curtains. No fear possessed David, but he felt the
keenness of the struggle, and prepared for the last critical moment of
fanaticism.

“It were a foolish thing to attempt my death,” he said calmly. “I have
been thy friend to urge thee to do that which saves thee from public
shame, and Egypt from peril. I came alone, because I had no fear that
thou wouldst go to thy death shaming hospitality.”

“Thou wast sure I would give myself to death?”

“Even as that I breathe. Thou wert mistaken; a madness possessed thee;
but thou, I knew, wouldst choose the way of honour. I too have had
dreams--and of Egypt. If it were for her good, I would die for her.”

“Thou art mad. But the mad are in the hands of God, and--”

Suddenly Harrik stopped. There came to his ears two distant sounds--the
faint click of horses’ hoofs and that dull rumble they had heard as they
talked, a sound he loved, the roar of his lions.

He clapped his hands twice, the curtains parted opposite, and a slave
slid silently forward.

“Quick! The horses! What are they? Bring me word,” he said.

The slave vanished. For a moment there was silence. The eyes of the two
men met. In the minds of both was the same thing.

“Kaid! The Nubians!” Harrik said, at last. David made no response.

The slave returned, and his voice murmured softly, as though the matter
were of no concern: “The Nubians--from the Palace.” In an instant he was
gone again.

“Kaid had not faith in thee,” Harrik said grimly. “But see, infidel
though thou art, thou trustest me, and thou shalt go thy way. Take them
with thee, yonder jackals of the desert. I will not go with them. I did
not choose to live; others chose for me; but I will die after my own
choice. Thou hast heard a voice, even as I. It is too late to flee to
the desert. Fate tricks me. ‘The lions are loosed on thee’--so the
voice said to me in the night. Hark! dost thou not hear them--the lions,
Harrik’s lions, got out of the uttermost desert?”

David could hear the distant roar, for the menagerie was even part of
the palace itself.

“Go in peace,” continued Harrik soberly and with dignity, “and when
Egypt is given to the infidel and Muslims are their slaves, remember
that Harrik would have saved it for his Lord Mahomet, the Prophet of
God.”

He clapped his hands, and fifty slaves slid from behind the velvet
curtains.

“I have thy word by the tomb of thy mother that thou wilt take the
Nubians hence, and leave me in peace?” he asked.

David raised a hand above his head. “As I have trusted thee, trust thou
me, Harrik, son of Mahomet.” Harrik made a gesture of dismissal, and
David salaamed and turned to go. As the curtains parted for his exit, he
faced Harrik again. “Peace be to thee,” he said.

But, seated in his cushions, the haggard, fanatical face of Harrik was
turned from him, the black, flaring eyes fixed on vacancy. The curtain
dropped behind David, and through the dim rooms and corridors he passed,
the slaves gliding beside him, before him, and behind him, until they
reached the great doors. As they swung open and the cool night breeze
blew in his face, a great suspiration of relief passed from him. What
he had set out to do would be accomplished in all. Harrik would keep his
word. It was the only way.

As he emerged from the doorway some one fell at his feet, caught his
sleeve and kissed it. It was Mahommed Hassan. Behind Mahommed was a
little group of officers and a hundred stalwart Nubians. David motioned
them towards the great gates, and, without speaking, passed swiftly down
the pathway and emerged upon the road without. A moment later he was
riding towards the Citadel with Harrik’s message to Achmet. In the
red-curtained room Harrik sat alone, listening until he heard the far
clatter of hoofs, and knew that the Nubians were gone. Then the other
distant sound which had captured his ear came to him again. In his fancy
it grew louder and louder. With it came the voice that called him in the
night, the voice of a woman--of the wife he had given to the lions for
a crime against him which she did not commit, which had haunted him all
the years. He had seen her thrown to the king of them all, killed in one
swift instant, and dragged about the den by her warm white neck--this
slave wife from Albania, his adored Fatima. And when, afterwards, he
came to know the truth, and of her innocence, from the chief eunuch who
with his last breath cleared her name, a terrible anger and despair had
come upon him. Time and intrigue and conspiracy had distracted his mind,
and the Jehad became the fixed aim and end of his life. Now this was
gone. Destiny had tripped him up. Kaid and the infidel Inglesi had won.

As the one great passion went out like smoke, the woman he loved, whom
he had given to the lions, the memory of her, some haunting part of
her, possessed him, overcame him. In truth, he had heard a voice in the
night, but not the voice of a spirit. It was the voice of Zaida, who,
preying upon his superstitious mind--she knew the hallucination which
possessed him concerning her he had cast to the lions--and having given
the terrible secret to Kaid, whom she had ever loved, would still save
Harrik from the sure vengeance which must fall upon him. Her design had
worked, but not as she intended. She had put a spell of superstition on
him, and the end would be accomplished, but not by flight to the desert.

Harrik chose the other way. He had been a hunter.

He was without fear. The voice of the woman he loved called him. It came
to him through the distant roar of the lions as clear as when, with one
cry of “Harrik!” she had fallen beneath the lion’s paw. He knew now why
he had kept the great beast until this hour, though tempted again and
again to slay him.

Like one in a dream, he drew a dagger from the cushions where he sat,
and rose to his feet. Leaving the room and passing dark groups of
waiting slaves, he travelled empty chambers and long corridors, the
voices of the lions growing nearer and nearer. He sped faster now, and
presently came to two great doors, on which he knocked thrice. The doors
opened, and two slaves held up lights for him to enter. Taking a torch
from one of them, he bade them retire, and the doors clanged behind
them.

Harrik held up the torch and came nearer. In the centre of the room was
a cage in which one great lion paced to and fro in fury. It roared
at him savagely. It was his roar which had come to Harrik through the
distance and the night. He it was who had carried Fatima, the beloved,
about his cage by that neck in which Harrik had laid his face so often.

The hot flush of conflict and the long anger of the years were on him.
Since he must die, since Destiny had befooled him, left him the victim
of the avengers, he would end it here. Here, against the thing of savage
hate which had drunk of the veins and crushed the bones of his fair
wife, he would strike one blow deep and strong and shed the blood of
sacrifice before his own was shed.

He thrust the torch into the ground, and, with the dagger grasped
tightly, carefully opened the cage and stepped inside. The door clicked
behind him. The lion was silent now, and in a far corner prepared to
spring, crouching low.

“Fatima!” Harrik cried, and sprang forward as the wild beast rose at
him. He struck deep, drew forth the dagger--and was still.



CHAPTER XIII. ACHMET THE ROPEMAKER STRIKES

War! War! The chains of the conscripts clanked in the river villages;
the wailing of the women affrighted the pigeons in a thousand dovecotes
on the Nile; the dust of despair was heaped upon the heads of the old,
who knew that their young would no more return, and that the fields of
dourha would go ungathered, the water-channels go unattended, and
the onion-fields be bare. War! War! War! The strong, the
broad-shouldered--Aka, Mahmoud, Raschid, Selim, they with the bodies
of Seti and the faces of Rameses, in their blue yeleks and unsandalled
feet--would go into the desert as their forefathers did for the Shepherd
Kings. But there would be no spoil for them--no slaves with swelling
breasts and lips of honey; no straight-limbed servants of their pleasure
to wait on them with caressing fingers; no rich spoils carried back from
the fields of war to the mud hut, the earth oven, and the thatched roof;
no rings of soft gold and necklaces of amber snatched from the fingers
and bosoms of the captive and the dead. Those days were no more. No
vision of loot or luxury allured these. They saw only the yellow sand,
the ever-receding oasis, the brackish, undrinkable water, the withered
and fruitless date-tree, handfuls of dourha for their food by day, and
the keen, sharp night to chill their half-dead bodies in a half-waking
sleep. And then the savage struggle for life--with all the gain to the
pashas and the beys, and those who ruled over them; while their own
wounds grew foul, and, in the torturing noon-day heat of the white
waste, Death reached out and dragged them from the drooping lines
to die. Fighting because they must fight--not patriot love, nor
understanding, nor sacrifice in their hearts. War! War! War! War!

David had been too late to stop it. It had grown to a head with
revolution and conspiracy. For months before he came conscripts had
been gathered in the Nile country from Rosetta to Assouan, and here and
there, far south, tribes had revolted. He had come to power too late
to devise another course. One day, when this war was over, he would go
alone, save for a faithful few, to deal with these tribes and peoples
upon another plane than war; but here and now the only course was that
which had been planned by Kaid and those who counselled him. Troubled by
a deep danger drawing near, Kaid had drawn him into his tough service,
half-blindly catching at his help, with a strange, almost superstitious
belief that luck and good would come from the alliance; seeing in him
a protection against wholesale robbery and debt--were not the English
masters of finance, and was not this Englishman honest, and with a brain
of fire and an eye that pierced things?

David had accepted the inevitable. The war had its value. It would draw
off to the south--he would see that it was so--Achmet and Higli and Diaz
and the rest, who were ever a danger. Not to himself: he did not think
of that; but to Kaid and to Egypt. They had been out-manoeuvred,
beaten, foiled, knew who had foiled them and what they had escaped;
congratulated themselves, but had no gratitude to him, and still plotted
his destruction. More than once his death had been planned, but the dark
design had come to light--now from the workers of the bazaars, whose
wires of intelligence pierced everywhere; now from some hungry fellah
whose yelek he had filled with cakes of dourha beside a bread-shop;
now from Mahommed Hassan, who was for him a thousand eyes and feet and
hands, who cooked his food, and gathered round him fellaheen or Copts
or Soudanese or Nubians whom he himself had tested and found true, and
ruled them with a hand of plenty and a rod of iron. Also, from Nahoum’s
spies he learned of plots and counterplots, chiefly on Achmet’s part;
and these he hid from Kaid, while he trusted Nahoum--and not without
reason, as yet.

The day of Nahoum’s wrath and revenge was not yet come; it was his deep
design to lay the foundation for his own dark actions strong on a
rock of apparent confidence and devotion. A long torture and a great
over-whelming was his design. He knew himself to be in the scheme of
a master-workman, and by-and-by he would blunt the chisel and bend the
saw; but not yet. Meanwhile, he hated, admired, schemed, and got a sweet
taste on his tongue from aiding David to foil Achmet--Higli and Diaz
were of little account; only the injury they felt in seeing the sluices
being closed on the stream of bribery and corruption kept them in the
toils of Achmet’s conspiracy. They had saved their heads, but they had
not learned their lesson yet; and Achmet, blinded by rage, not at all.
Achmet did not understand clemency. One by one his plots had failed,
until the day came when David advised Kaid to send him and his friends
into the Soudan, with the punitive expedition under loyal generals. It
was David’s dream that, in the field of war, a better spirit might enter
into Achmet and his friends; that patriotism might stir in them.

The day was approaching when the army must leave. Achmet threw dice once
more.

Evening was drawing down. Over the plaintive pink and golden glow of
sunset was slowly being drawn a pervasive silver veil of moonlight. A
caravan of camels hunched alone in the middle distance, making for the
western desert. Near by, village life manifested itself in heavily laden
donkeys; in wolfish curs stealing away with refuse into the waste; in
women, upright and modest, bearing jars of water on their heads; in
evening fires, where the cover of the pot clattered over the boiling
mass within; in the voice of the Muezzin calling to prayer.

Returning from Alexandria to Cairo in the special train which Kaid had
sent for him, David watched the scene with grave and friendly interest.
There was far, to go before those mud huts of the thousand years would
give place to rational modern homes; and as he saw a solitary horseman
spread his sheepskin on the ground and kneel to say his evening prayer,
as Mahomet had done in his flight between Mecca and Medina, the distance
between the Egypt of his desire and the ancient Egypt that moved round
him sharply impressed his mind, and the magnitude of his task settled
heavily on his spirit.

“But it is the beginning--the beginning,” he said aloud to himself,
looking out upon the green expanses of dourha and Lucerne, and eyeing
lovingly the cotton-fields here and there, the origin of the industrial
movement he foresaw--“and some one had to begin. The rest is as it must
be--”

There was a touch of Oriental philosophy in his mind--was it not Galilee
and the Nazarene, that Oriental source from which Mahomet also drew? But
he added to the “as it must be” the words, “and as God wills.” He was
alone in the compartment with Lacey, whose natural garrulity had had a
severe discipline in the months that had passed since he had asked to
be allowed to black David’s boots. He could now sit for an hour silent,
talking to himself, carrying on unheard conversations. Seeing David’s
mood, he had not spoken twice on this journey, but had made notes in a
little “Book of Experience,”--as once he had done in Mexico. At last,
however, he raised his head, and looked eagerly out of the window as
David did, and sniffed.

“The Nile again,” he said, and smiled. The attraction of the Nile was
upon him, as it grows on every one who lives in Egypt. The Nile and
Egypt--Egypt and the Nile--its mystery, its greatness, its benevolence,
its life-giving power, without which Egypt is as the Sahara, it conquers
the mind of every man at last.

“The Nile, yes,” rejoined David, and smiled also. “We shall cross it
presently.”

Again they relapsed into silence, broken only by the clang, clang of the
metal on the rails, and then presently another, more hollow sound--the
engine was upon the bridge. Lacey got up and put his head out of the
window. Suddenly there was a cry of fear and horror over his head, a
warning voice shrieking:

“The bridge is open--we are lost. Effendi--master--Allah!” It was the
voice of Mahommed Hassan, who had been perched on the roof of the car.

Like lightning Lacey realised the danger, and saw the only way of
escape. He swung open the door, even as the engine touched the edge
of the abyss and shrieked its complaint under the hand of the
terror-stricken driver, caught David’s shoulder, and cried: “Jump-jump
into the river--quick!”

As the engine toppled, David jumped--there was no time to think,
obedience was the only way. After him sprang, far down into the
grey-blue water, Lacey and Mahommed. When they came again to the
surface, the little train with its handful of human freight had
disappeared.

Two people had seen the train plunge to destruction--the solitary
horseman whom David had watched kneel upon his sheepskin, and who now
from a far hill had seen the disaster, but had not seen the three jump
for their lives, and a fisherman on the bank, who ran shouting towards a
village standing back from the river.

As the fisherman sped shrieking and beckoning to the villagers, David,
Lacey, and Mahommed fought for their lives in the swift current,
swimming at an angle upstream towards the shore; for, as Mahommed warned
them, there were rocks below. Lacey was a good swimmer, but he was
heavy, and David was a better, but Mahommed had proved his merit in the
past on many an occasion when the laws of the river were reaching out
strong hands for him. Now, as Mahommed swam, he kept moaning to himself,
cursing his father and his father’s son, as though he himself were to
blame for the crime which had been committed. Here was a plot, and
he had discovered more plots than one against his master. The
bridge-opener--when he found him he would take him into the desert and
flay him alive; and find him he would. His watchful eyes were on the hut
by the bridge where this man should be. No one was visible. He cursed
the man and all his ancestry and all his posterity, sleeping and waking,
until the day when he, Mahommed, would pinch his flesh with red hot
irons. But now he had other and nearer things to occupy him, for in
the fierce struggle towards the shore Lacey found himself failing, and
falling down the stream. Presently both Mahommed and David were beside
him, Lacey angrily protesting to David that he must save himself.

“Say, think of Egypt and all the rest. You’ve got to save yourself--let
me splash along!” he spluttered, breathing hard, his shoulders low in
the water, his mouth almost submerged.

But David and Mahommed fought along beside him, each determined that it
must be all or none; and presently the terror-stricken fisherman who
had roused the village, still shrieking deliriously, came upon them in a
flat-bottomed boat manned by four stalwart fellaheen, and the tragedy of
the bridge was over. But not the tragedy of Achmet the Ropemaker.



CHAPTER XIV. BEYOND THE PALE

Mahommed Hassan had vowed a vow in the river, and he kept it in so far
as was seemly. His soul hungered for the face of the bridge-opener, and
the hunger grew. He was scarce passed from the shivering Nile into a dry
yelek, had hardly taken a juicy piece from the cooking-pot at the house
of the village sheikh, before he began to cultivate friends who could
help him, including the sheikh himself; for what money Mahommed lacked
was supplied by Lacey, who had a reasoned confidence in him, and by
the fiercely indignant Kaid himself, to whom Lacey and Mahommed went
secretly, hiding their purpose from David. So, there were a score of
villages where every sheikh, eager for gold, listened for the whisper
of the doorways, and every slave and villager listened at the sheikh’s
door. But neither to sheikh nor to villager was it given to find the
man.

But one evening there came a knocking at the door of the house which
Mahommed still kept in the lowest Muslim quarter of the town, a woman
who hid her face and was of more graceful figure than was familiar in
those dark purlieus. The door was at once opened, and Mahommed, with a
cry, drew her inside.

“Zaida--the peace of God be upon thee,” he said, and gazed lovingly yet
sadly upon her, for she had greatly changed.

“And upon thee peace, Mahommed,” she answered, and sat upon the floor,
her head upon her breast.

“Thou hast trouble at,” he said, and put some cakes of dourha and a
meated cucumber beside her. She touched the food with her fingers, but
did not eat. “Is thy grief, then, for thy prince who gave himself to the
lions?” he asked.

“Inshallah! Harrik is in the bosom of Allah. He is with Fatima in the
fields of heaven--was I as Fatima to him? Nay, the dead have done with
hurting.”

“Since that night thou hast been lost, even since Harrik went. I
searched for thee, but thou wert hid. Surely, thou knewest mine eyes
were aching and my heart was cast down--did not thou and I feed at the
same breast?”

“I was dead, and am come forth from the grave; but I shall go again into
the dark where all shall forget, even I myself; but there is that which
I would do, which thou must do for me, even as I shall do good to thee,
that which is the desire of my heart.”

“Speak, light of the morning and blessing of thy mother’s soul,” he
said, and crowded into his mouth a roll of meat and cucumber. “Against
thy feddan shall be set my date-tree; it hath been so ever.”

“Listen then, and by the stone of the Kaabah, keep the faith which has
been throe and mine since my mother, dying, gave me to thy mother, whose
milk gave me health and, in my youth, beauty--and, in my youth, beauty!”
 Suddenly she buried her face in her veil, and her body shook with sobs
which had no voice. Presently she continued: “Listen, and by Abraham and
Christ and all the Prophets, and by Mahomet the true revealer, give me
thine aid. When Harrik gave his life to the lions, I fled to her whom I
had loved in the house of Kaid--Laka the Syrian, afterwards the wife of
Achmet Pasha. By Harrik’s death I was free--no more a slave. Once Laka
had been the joy of Achmet’s heart, but, because she had no child, she
was despised and forgotten. Was it not meet I should fly to her whose
sorrow would hide my loneliness? And so it was--I was hidden in the
harem of Achmet. But miserable tongues--may God wither them!--told
Achmet of my presence. And though I was free, and not a bondswoman, he
broke upon my sleep....”

Mahommed’s eyes blazed, his dark skin blackened like a coal, and he
muttered maledictions between his teeth. “... In the morning there was
a horror upon me, for which there is no name. But I laughed also when
I took a dagger and stole from the harem to find him in the quarters
beyond the women’s gate. I found him, but I held my hand, for one was
with him who spake with a tone of anger and of death, and I listened.
Then, indeed, I rejoiced for thee, for I have found thee a road to
honour and fortune. The man was a bridge-opener--” “Ah!--O, light of a
thousand eyes, fruit of the tree of Eden!” cried Mahommed, and fell on
his knees at her feet, and would have kissed them, but that, with a cry,
she said: “Nay, nay, touch me not. But listen.... Ay, it was Achmet who
sought to drown thy Pasha in the Nile. Thou shalt find the man in the
little street called Singat in the Moosky, at the house of Haleel the
date-seller.”

Mahommed rocked backwards and forwards in his delight. “Oh, now art thou
like a lamp of Paradise, even as a star which leadeth an army of stars,
beloved,” he said. He rubbed his hands together. “Thy witness and
his shall send Achmet to a hell of scorpions, and I shall slay the
bridge-opener with my own hand--hath not the Effendina secretly said so
to me, knowing that my Pasha, the Inglesi, upon whom be peace for ever
and forever, would forgive him. Ah, thou blossom of the tree of trees--”

She rose hastily, and when he would have kissed her hand she drew back
to the wall. “Touch me not--nay, then, Mahommed, touch me not--”

“Why should I not pay thee honour, thou princess among women? Hast thou
not the brain of a man, and thy beauty, like thy heart, is it not--”

She put out both her hands and spoke sharply. “Enough, my brother,” she
said. “Thou hast thy way to great honour. Thou shalt yet have a thousand
feddans of well-watered land and slaves to wait upon thee. Get thee to
the house of Haleel. There shall the blow fall on the head of Achmet,
the blow which was mine to strike, but that Allah stayed my hand that
I might do thee and thy Pasha good, and to give the soul-slayer and the
body-slayer into the hands of Kaid, upon whom be everlasting peace!” Her
voice dropped low. “Thou saidst but now that I had beauty. Is there yet
any beauty in my face?” She lowered her yashmak and looked at him with
burning eyes.

“Thou art altogether beautiful,” he answered, “but there is a
strangeness to thy beauty like none I have seen; as if upon the face of
an angel there fell a mist--nay, I have not words to make it plain to
thee.”

With a great sigh, and yet with the tenseness gone from her eyes, she
slowly drew the veil up again till only her eyes were visible. “It is
well,” she answered. “Now, I have heard that to-morrow night Prince Kaid
will sit in the small court-yard of the blue tiles by the harem to feast
with his friends, ere the army goes into the desert at the next sunrise.
Achmet is bidden to the feast.”

“It is so, O beloved!”

“There will be dancers and singers to make the feast worthy?”

“At such a time it will be so.”

“Then this thou shalt do. See to it that I shall be among the singers,
and when all have danced and sung, that I shall sing, and be brought
before Kaid.”

“Inshallah! It shall be so. Thou dost desire to see Kaid--in truth, thou
hast memory, beloved.”

She made a gesture of despair. “Go upon thy business. Dost thou not
desire the blood of Achmet and the bridge-opener?”

Mahommed laughed, and joyfully beat his breast, with whispered
exclamations, and made ready to go. “And thou?” he asked.

“Am I not welcome here?” she replied wearily. “O, my sister, thou art
the master of my life and all that I have,” he exclaimed, and a moment
afterwards he was speeding towards Kaid’s Palace.

For the first time since the day of his banishment Achmet the Ropemaker
was invited to Kaid’s Palace. Coming, he was received with careless
consideration by the Prince. Behind his long, harsh face and sullen eyes
a devil was raging, because of all his plans that had gone awry, and
because the man he had sought to kill still served the Effendina,
putting a blight upon Egypt. To-morrow he, Achmet, must go into the
desert with the army, and this hated Inglesi would remain behind to have
his will with Kaid. The one drop of comfort in his cup was the fact that
the displeasure of the Effendina against himself was removed, and that
he had, therefore, his foot once more inside the Palace. When he came
back from the war he would win his way to power again. Meanwhile, he
cursed the man who had eluded the death he had prepared for him. With
his own eyes had he not seen, from the hill top, the train plunge to
destruction, and had he not once more got off his horse and knelt upon
his sheepskin and given thanks to Allah--a devout Arab obeying the
sunset call to prayer, as David had observed from the train?

One by one, two by two, group by group, the unveiled dancers came and
went; the singers sang behind the screen provided for them, so that none
might see their faces, after the custom. At last, however, Kaid and his
guests grew listless, and smoked and talked idly. Yet there was in the
eyes of Kaid a watchfulness unseen by any save a fellah who squatted in
a corner eating sweetmeats, and a hidden singer waiting until she should
be called before the Prince Pasha. The singer’s glances continually
flashed between Kaid and Achmet. At last, with gleaming eyes, she saw
six Nubian slaves steal silently behind Achmet. One, also, of great
strength, came suddenly and stood before him. In his hands was a
leathern thong.

Achmet saw, felt the presence of the slaves behind him, and shrank back
numbed and appalled. A mist came before his eyes; the voice he heard
summoning him to stand up seemed to come from infinite distances. The
hand of doom had fallen like a thunderbolt. The leathern thong in the
hands of the slave was the token of instant death. There was no chance
of escape. The Nubians had him at their mercy. As his brain struggled
to regain its understanding, he saw, as in a dream, David enter the
court-yard and come towards Kaid.

Suddenly David stopped in amazement, seeing Achmet. Inquiringly he
looked at Kaid, who spoke earnestly to him in a low tone. Whereupon
David turned his head away, but after a moment fixed his eyes on Achmet.

Kaid motioned all his startled guests to come nearer. Then in strong,
unmerciful voice he laid Achmet’s crime before them, and told the story
of the bridge-opener, who had that day expiated his crime in the desert
by the hands of Mahommed--but not with torture, as Mahommed had hoped
might be.

“What shall be his punishment--so foul, so wolfish?” Kaid asked of them
all. A dozen voices answered, some one terrible thing, some another.

“Mercy!” moaned Achmet aghast. “Mercy, Saadat!” he cried to David.

David looked at him calmly. There was little mercy in his eyes as he
answered: “Thy crimes sent to their death in the Nile those who never
injured thee. Dost thou quarrel with justice? Compose thy soul, and I
pray only the Effendina to give thee that seemly death thou didst deny
thy victims.” He bowed respectfully to Kaid.

Kaid frowned. “The ways of Egypt are the ways of Egypt, and not of the
land once thine,” he answered shortly. Then, under the spell of that
influence which he had never yet been able to resist, he added to the
slaves: “Take him aside. I will think upon it. But he shall die at
sunrise ere the army goes. Shall not justice be the gift of Kaid for an
example and a warning? Take him away a little. I will decide.”

As Achmet and the slaves disappeared into a dark corner of the
court-yard, Kaid rose to his feet, and, upon the hint, his guests,
murmuring praises of his justice and his mercy and his wisdom, slowly
melted from the court-yard; but once outside they hastened to proclaim
in the four quarters of Cairo how yet again the English Pasha had picked
from the Tree of Life an apple of fortune.

The court-yard was now empty, save for the servants of the Prince, David
and Mahommed, and two officers in whom David had advised Kaid to put
trust. Presently one of these officers said: “There is another singer,
and the last. Is it the Effendina’s pleasure?”

Kaid made a gesture of assent, sat down, and took the stem of a
narghileh between his lips. For a moment there was silence, and then,
out upon the sweet, perfumed night, over which the stars hung brilliant
and soft and near, a voice at first quietly, then fully, and palpitating
with feeling, poured forth an Eastern love song:

     “Take thou thy flight, O soul! Thou hast no more
     The gladness of the morning! Ah, the perfumed roses
     My love laid on my bosom as I slept!
     How did he wake me with his lips upon mine eyes,
     How did the singers carol--the singers of my soul
     That nest among the thoughts of my beloved!...
     All silent now, the choruses are gone,
     The windows of my soul are closed; no more
     Mine eyes look gladly out to see my lover come.
     There is no more to do, no more to say:
     Take flight, my soul, my love returns no more!”

At the first note Kaid started, and his eyes fastened upon the screen
behind which sat the singer. Then, as the voice, in sweet anguish,
filled the court-yard, entrancing them all, rose higher and higher, fell
and died away, he got to his feet, and called out hoarsely: “Come--come
forth!”

Slowly a graceful, veiled figure came from behind the great screen. He
took a step forward.

“Zaida! Zaida!” he said gently, amazedly.

She salaamed low. “Forgive me, O my lord!” she said, in a whispering
voice, drawing her veil about her head. “It was my soul’s desire to look
upon thy face once more.”

“Whither didst thou go at Harrik’s death? I sent to find thee, and give
thee safety; but thou wert gone, none knew where.”

“O my lord, what was I but a mote in thy sun, that thou shouldst seek
me?”

Kaid’s eyes fell, and he murmured to himself a moment, then he said
slowly: “Thou didst save Egypt, thou and my friend”--he gestured towards
David”--and my life also, and all else that is worth. Therefore bounty,
and safety, and all thy desires were thy due. Kaid is no ingrate--no, by
the hand of Moses that smote at Sinai!”

She made a pathetic motion of her hands. “By Harrik’s death I am free, a
slave no longer. O my lord, where I go bounty and famine are the same.”

Kaid took a step forward. “Let me see thy face,” he said, something
strange in her tone moving him with awe.

She lowered her veil and looked him in the eyes. Her wan beauty smote
him, conquered him, the exquisite pain in her face filled Kaid’s eyes
with foreboding, and pierced his heart.

“O cursed day that saw thee leave these walls! I did it for thy
good--thou wert so young; thy life was all before thee! But now--come,
Zaida, here in Kaid’s Palace thou shalt have a home, and be at peace,
for I see that thou hast suffered. Surely it shall be said that Kaid
honours thee.” He reached out to take her hand.

She had listened like one in a dream, but, as he was about to touch her,
she suddenly drew back, veiled her face, save for the eyes, and said in
a voice of agony: “Unclean, unclean! My lord, I am a leper!”

An awed and awful silence fell upon them all. Kaid drew back as though
smitten by a blow.

Presently, upon the silence, her voice sharp with agony said: “I am a
leper, and I go to that desert place which my lord has set apart for
lepers, where, dead to the world, I shall watch the dreadful years come
and go. Behold, I would die, but that I have a sister there these many
years, and her sick soul lives in loneliness. O my lord, forgive me!
Here was I happy; here of old I did sing to thee, and I came to sing to
thee once more a death-song. Also, I came to see thee do justice, ere I
went from thy face for ever.”

Kaid’s head was lowered on his breast. He shuddered. “Thou art so
beautiful--thy voice, all! Thou wouldst see justice--speak! Justice
shall be made plain before thee.”

Twice she essayed to speak, and could not; but from his sweetmeats and
the shadows Mahommed crept forward, kissed the ground before Kaid, and
said: “Effendina, thou knowest me as the servant of thy high servant,
Claridge Pasha.”

“I know thee--proceed.”

“Behold, she whom God has smitten, man smote first. I am her
foster-brother--from the same breast we drew the food of life. Thou
wouldst do justice, O Effendina; but canst thou do double justice--ay,
a thousandfold? Then”--his voice raised almost shrilly--“then do it
upon Achmet Pasha. She--Zaida--told me where I should find the
bridge-opener.”

“Zaida once more!” Kaid murmured.

“She had learned all in Achmet’s harem--hearing speech between Achmet
and the man whom thou didst deliver to my hands yesterday.”

“Zaida-in Achmet’s harem?” Kaid turned upon her.

Swiftly she told her dreadful tale, how, after Achmet had murdered all
of her except her body, she rose up to kill herself; but fainting, fell
upon a burning brazier, and her hand thrust accidentally in the live
coals felt no pain. “And behold, O my lord, I knew I was a leper; and I
remembered my sister and lived on.” So she ended, in a voice numbed and
tuneless.

Kaid trembled with rage, and he cried in a loud voice: “Bring Achmet
forth.”

As the slave sped upon the errand, David laid a hand on Kaid’s arm, and
whispered to him earnestly. Kaid’s savage frown cleared away, and his
rage calmed down; but an inflexible look came into his face, a look
which petrified the ruined Achmet as he salaamed before him.

“Know thy punishment, son of a dog with a dog’s heart, and prepare for
a daily death,” said Kaid. “This woman thou didst so foully wrong, even
when thou didst wrong her, she was a leper.”

A low cry broke from Achmet, for now when death came he must go unclean
to the after-world, forbidden Allah’s presence. Broken and abject he
listened.

“She knew not, till thou wert gone,” continued Kaid. “She is innocent
before the law. But thou--beast of the slime--hear thy sentence. There
is in the far desert a place where lepers live. There, once a year, one
caravan comes, and, at the outskirts of the place unclean, leaves food
and needful things for another year, and returns again to Egypt after
many days. From that place there is no escape--the desert is as the sea,
and upon that sea there is no ghiassa to sail to a farther shore. It is
the leper land. Thither thou shalt go to wait upon this woman thou hast
savagely wronged, and upon her kind, till thou diest. It shall be so.”

“Mercy! Mercy!” Achmet cried, horror-stricken, and turned to David.
“Thou art merciful. Speak for me, Saadat.”

“When didst thou have mercy?” asked David. “Thy crimes are against
humanity.”

Kaid made a motion, and, with dragging feet, Achmet passed from the
haunts of familiar faces.

For a moment Kaid stood and looked at Zaida, rigid and stricken in that
awful isolation which is the leper’s doom. Her eyes were closed, but her
head was high. “Wilt thou not die?” Kaid asked her gently.

She shook her head slowly, and her hands folded on her breast. “My
sister is there,” she said at last. There was an instant’s stillness,
then Kaid added with a voice of grief: “Peace be upon thee, Zaida.
Life is but a spark. If death comes not to-day, it will tomorrow, for
thee--for me. Inshallah, peace be upon thee!”

She opened her eyes and looked at him. Seeing what was in his face, they
lighted with a great light for a moment.

“And upon thee peace, O my lord, for ever and for ever!” she said
softly, and, turning, left the court-yard, followed at a distance by
Mahommed Hassan.

Kaid remained motionless looking after her.

David broke in on his abstraction. “The army at sunrise--thou wilt speak
to it, Effendina?”

Kaid roused himself. “What shall I say?” he asked anxiously.

“Tell them they shall be clothed and fed, and to every man or his family
three hundred piastres at the end.”

“Who will do this?” asked Kaid incredulously. “Thou, Effendina--Egypt
and thou and I.”

“So be it,” answered Kaid.

As they left the court-yard, he said suddenly to an officer behind him:

“The caravan to the Place of Lepers--add to the stores fifty camel-loads
this year, and each year hereafter. Have heed to it. Ere it starts, come
to me. I would see all with mine own eyes.”



CHAPTER XV. SOOLSBY’S HAND UPON THE CURTAIN

Faith raised her eyes from the paper before her and poised her head
meditatively.

“How long is it, friend, since--”

“Since he went to Egypt?”

“Nay, since thee--”

“Since I went to Mass?” he grumbled humorously.

She laughed whimsically. “Nay, then, since thee made the promise--”

“That I would drink no more till his return--ay, that was my bargain;
till then and no longer! I am not to be held back then, unless I change
my mind when I see him. Well, ‘tis three years since--”

“Three years! Time hasn’t flown. Is it not like an old memory, his
living here in this house, Soolsby, and all that happened then?”

Soolsby looked at her over his glasses, resting his chin on the back
of the chair he was caning, and his lips worked in and out with a
suppressed smile.

“Time’s got naught to do with you. He’s afeard of you,” he continued.
“He lets you be.”

“Friend, thee knows I am almost an old woman now.” She made marks
abstractedly upon the corner of a piece of paper. “Unless my hair turns
grey presently I must bleach it, for ‘twill seem improper it should
remain so brown.”

She smoothed it back with her hand. Try as she would to keep it trim
after the manner of her people, it still waved loosely on her forehead
and over her ears. And the grey bonnet she wore but added piquancy to
its luxuriance, gave a sweet gravity to the demure beauty of the face it
sheltered.

“I am thirty now,” she murmured, with a sigh, and went on writing.

The old man’s fingers moved quickly among the strips of cane, and, after
a silence, without raising his head, he said: “Thirty, it means naught.”

“To those without understanding,” she rejoined drily.

“‘Tis tough understanding why there’s no wedding-ring on yonder finger.
There’s been many a man that’s wanted it, that’s true--the Squire’s son
from Bridgley, the lord of Axwood Manor, the long soldier from Shipley
Wood, and doctors, and such folk aplenty. There’s where understanding
fails.”

Faith’s face flushed, then it became pale, and her eyes, suffused,
dropped upon the paper before her. At first it seemed as though she must
resent his boldness; but she had made a friend of him these years past,
and she knew he meant no rudeness. In the past they had talked of things
deeper and more intimate still. Yet there was that in his words which
touched a sensitive corner of her nature.

“Why should I be marrying?” she asked presently. “There was my sister’s
son all those years. I had to care for him.”

“Ay, older than him by a thimbleful!” he rejoined.

“Nay, till he came to live in this hut alone older by many a year. Since
then he is older than me by fifty. I had not thought of marriage before
he went away. Squire’s son, soldier, or pillman, what were they to me!
He needed me. They came, did they? Well, and if they came?”

“And since the Egyptian went?”

A sort of sob came into her throat. “He does not need me, but he may--he
will one day; and then I shall be ready. But now--”

Old Soolsby’s face turned away. His house overlooked every house in
the valley beneath: he could see nearly every garden; he could even
recognise many in the far streets. Besides, there hung along two nails
on the wall a telescope, relic of days when he sailed the main. The
grounds of the Cloistered House and the fruit-decked garden-wall of the
Red Mansion were ever within his vision. Once, twice, thrice, he had
seen what he had seen, and dark feelings, harsh emotions, had been
roused in him.

“He will need us both--the Egyptian will need us both one day,” he
answered now; “you more than any, me because I can help him, too--ay,
I can help him. But married or single you could help him; so why waste
your days here?”

“Is it wasting my days to stay with my father? He is lonely, most lonely
since our Davy went away; and troubled, too, for the dangers of that
life yonder. His voice used to shake when he prayed, in those days when
Davy was away in the desert, down at Darfur and elsewhere among the
rebel tribes. He frightened me then, he was so stern and still. Ah, but
that day when we knew he was safe, I was eighteen, and no more!” she
added, smiling. “But, think you, I could marry while my life is so tied
to him and to our Egyptian?”

No one looking at her limpid, shining blue eyes but would have set
her down for twenty-three or twenty-four, for not a line showed on
her smooth face; she was exquisite of limb and feature, and had the
lissomeness of a girl of fifteen. There was in her eyes, however, an
unquiet sadness; she had abstracted moments when her mind seemed fixed
on some vexing problem. Such a mood suddenly came upon her now. The
pen lay by the paper untouched, her hands folded in her lap, and a long
silence fell upon them, broken only by the twanging of the strips of
cane in Soolsby’s hands. At last, however, even this sound ceased; and
the two scarce moved as the sun drew towards the middle afternoon. At
last they were roused by the sound of a horn, and, looking down, they
saw a four-in-hand drawing smartly down the road to the village over the
gorse-spread common, till it stopped at the Cloistered House. As Faith
looked, her face slightly flushed. She bent forward till she saw one
figure get down and, waving a hand to the party on the coach as it moved
on, disappear into the gateway of the Cloistered House.

“What is the office they have given him?” asked Soolsby, disapproval in
his tone, his eyes fixed on the disappearing figure.

“They have made Lord Eglington Under-Secretary for Foreign Affairs,” she
answered.

“And what means that to a common mind?”

“That what his Government does in Egypt will mean good or bad to our
Egyptian,” she returned.

“That he can do our man good or ill?” Soolsby asked sharply--“that he,
yonder, can do that?”

She inclined her head.

“When I see him doing ill--well, when I see him doing that”--he snatched
up a piece of wood from the floor--“then I will break him, so!”

He snapped the stick across his knee, and threw the pieces on the
ground. He was excited. He got to his feet and walked up and down the
little room, his lips shut tight, his round eyes flaring.

Faith watched him in astonishment. In the past she had seen his face
cloud over, his eyes grow sulky, at the mention of Lord Eglington’s
name; she knew that Soolsby hated him; but his aversion now was more
definite and violent than he had before shown, save on that night long
ago when David went first to Egypt, and she had heard hard words between
them in this same hut. She supposed it one of those antipathies which
often grow in inverse ratio to the social position of those concerned.
She replied in a soothing voice:

“Then we shall hope that he will do our Davy only good.”

“You would not wish me to break his lordship? You would not wish it?” He
came over to her, and looked sharply at her. “You would not wish it?” he
repeated meaningly.

She evaded his question. “Lord Eglington will be a great man one day
perhaps,” she answered. “He has made his way quickly. How high he has
climbed in three years--how high!”

Soolsby’s anger was not lessened. “Pooh! Pooh! He is an Earl. An Earl
has all with him at the start--name, place, and all. But look at our
Egyptian! Look at Egyptian David--what had he but his head and an honest
mind? What is he? He is the great man of Egypt. Tell me, who helped
Egyptian David? That second-best lordship yonder, he crept about coaxing
this one and wheedling that. I know him--I know him. He wheedles and
wheedles. No matter whether ‘tis a babe or an old woman, he’ll talk, and
talk, and talk, till they believe in him, poor folks! No one’s too small
for his net. There’s Martha Higham yonder. She’s forty five. If he sees
her, as sure as eggs he’ll make love to her, and fill her ears with
words she’d never heard before, and ‘d never hear at all if not from
him. Ay, there’s no man too sour and no woman too old that he’ll not
blandish, if he gets the chance.”

As he spoke Faith shut her eyes, and her fingers clasped tightly
together--beautiful long, tapering fingers, like those in Romney’s
pictures. When he stopped, her eyes opened slowly, and she gazed before
her down towards that garden by the Red Mansion where her lifetime had
been spent.

“Thee says hard words, Soolsby,” she rejoined gently. “But maybe thee
is right.” Then a flash of humour passed over her face. “Suppose we
ask Martha Higham if the Earl has ‘blandished’ her. If the Earl has
blandished Martha, he is the very captain of deceit. Why, he has himself
but twenty-eight years. Will a man speak so to one older than himself,
save in mockery? So, if thee is right in this, then--then if he speak
well to deceive and to serve his turn, he will also speak ill; and he
will do ill when it may serve his turn; and so he may do our Davy ill,
as thee says, Soolsby.”

She rose to her feet and made as if to go, but she kept her face from
him. Presently, however, she turned and looked at him. “If he does ill
to Davy, there will be those like thee, Soolsby, who will not spare
him.”

His fingers opened and shut maliciously, he nodded dour assent. After an
instant, while he watched her, she added: “Thee has not heard my lord is
to marry?”

“Marry--who is the blind lass?”

“Her name is Maryon, Miss Hylda Maryon: and she has a great fortune. But
within a month it is to be.”

“Thee remembers the woman of the cross-roads, her that our Davy--”

“Her the Egyptian kissed, and put his watch in her belt--ay, Kate
Heaver!”

“She is now maid to her Lord Eglington will wed. She is to spend
to-night with us.”

“Where is her lad that was, that the Egyptian rolled like dough in a
trough?”

“Jasper Kimber? He is at Sheffield. He has been up and down, now sober
for a year, now drunken for a month, now in, now out of a place, until
this past year. But for this whole year he has been sober, and he
may keep his pledge. He is working in the trades-unions. Among his
fellow-workers he is called a politician--if loud speaking and boasting
can make one. Yet if these doings give him stimulant instead of drink,
who shall complain?”

Soolsby’s head was down. He was looking out over the far hills, while
the strips of cane were idle in his hands. “Ay, ‘tis true--‘tis true,”
 he nodded. “Give a man an idee which keeps him cogitating, makes him
think he’s greater than he is, and sets his pulses beating, why, that’s
the cure to drink. Drink is friendship and good company and big thoughts
while it lasts; and it’s lonely without it, if you’ve been used to it.
Ay, but Kimber’s way is best. Get an idee in your noddle, to do a thing
that’s more to you than work or food or bed, and ‘twill be more than
drink, too.”

He nodded to himself, then began weaving the strips of cane furiously.
Presently he stopped again, and threw his head back with a chuckle.
“Now, wouldn’t it be a joke, a reg’lar first-class joke, if Kimber
and me both had the same idee, if we was both workin’ for the same
thing--an’ didn’t know it? I reckon it might be so.”

“What end is thee working for, friend? If the public prints speak true,
Kimber is working to stand for Parliament against Lord Eglington.”

Soolsby grunted and laughed in his throat. “Now, is that the game of
Mister Kimber? Against my Lord Eglington! Hey, but that’s a joke, my
lord!”

“And what is thee working for, Soolsby?”

“What do I be working for? To get the Egyptian back to England--what
else?”

“That is no joke.”

“Ay, but ‘tis a joke.” The old man chuckled. “‘Tis the best joke in the
boilin’.” He shook his head and moved his body backwards and forwards
with glee. “Me and Kimber! Me and Kimber!” he roared, “and neither of us
drunk for a year--not drunk for a whole year. Me and Kimber--and him!”

Faith put her hand on his shoulder. “Indeed, I see no joke, but only
that which makes my heart thankful, Soolsby.”

“Ay, you will be thankful, you will be thankful, by-and-by,” he said,
still chuckling, and stood up respectfully to show her out.



CHAPTER XVI. THE DEBT AND THE ACCOUNTING

His forehead frowning, but his eyes full of friendliness, Soolsby
watched Faith go down the hillside and until she reached the main road.
Here, instead of going to the Red Mansion, she hesitated a moment, and
then passed along a wooded path leading to the Meetinghouse, and the
graveyard. It was a perfect day of early summer, the gorse was in full
bloom, and the may and the hawthorn were alive with colour. The path
she had taken led through a narrow lane, overhung with blossoms and
greenery. By bearing away to the left into another path, and making a
detour, she could reach the Meeting-house through a narrow lane leading
past a now disused mill and a small, strong stream flowing from the hill
above.

As she came down the hill, other eyes than Soolsby’s watched her. From
his laboratory--the laboratory in which his father had worked, in which
he had lost his life--Eglington had seen the trim, graceful figure. He
watched it till it moved into the wooded path. Then he left his garden,
and, moving across a field, came into the path ahead of her. Walking
swiftly, he reached the old mill, and waited.

She came slowly, now and again stooping to pick a flower and place it in
her belt. Her bonnet was slung on her arm, her hair had broken a little
loose and made a sort of hood round the face, so still, so composed,
into which the light of steady, soft, apprehending eyes threw a gentle
radiance. It was a face to haunt a man when the storm of life was
round him. It had, too, a courage which might easily become a delicate
stubbornness, a sense of duty which might become sternness, if roused by
a sense of wrong to herself or others.

She reached the mill and stood and listened towards the stream and
the waterfall. She came here often. The scene quieted her in moods of
restlessness which came from a feeling that her mission was interrupted,
that half her life’s work had been suddenly taken from her. When David
went, her life had seemed to shrivel; for with him she had developed as
he had developed; and when her busy care of him was withdrawn, she had
felt a sort of paralysis which, in a sense, had never left her. Then
suitors had come--the soldier from Shipley Wood, the lord of Axwood
Manor, and others, and, in a way, a new sense was born in her, though
she was alive to the fact that the fifteen thousand pounds inherited
from her Uncle Benn had served to warm the air about her into a wider
circle. Yet it was neither to soldier, nor squire, nor civil engineer,
nor surgeon that the new sense stirring in her was due. The spring was
too far beneath to be found by them.

When, at last, she raised her head, Lord Eglington was in the path,
looking at her with a half-smile. She did not start, but her face turned
white, and a mist came before her eyes.

Quickly, however, as though fearful lest he should think he could
trouble her composure, she laid a hand upon herself.

He came near to her and held out his hand. “It has been a long six
months since we met here,” he said.

She made no motion to take his hand. “I find days grow shorter as I
grow older,” she rejoined steadily, and smoothed her hair with her hand,
making ready to put on her bonnet.

“Ah, do not put it on,” he urged quickly, with a gesture. “It becomes
you so--on your arm.”

She had regained her self-possession. Pride, the best weapon of a woman,
the best tonic, came to her resource. “Thee loves to please thee at any
cost,” she replied. She fastened the grey strings beneath her chin.

“Would it be costly to keep the bonnet on your arm?”

“It is my pleasure to have it on my head, and my pleasure has some value
to myself.”

“A moment ago,” he rejoined laughing, “it was your pleasure to have it
on your arm.”

“Are all to be monotonous except Lord Eglington? Is he to have the only
patent of change?”

“Do I change?” He smiled at her with a sense of inquisition, with an air
that seemed to say, “I have lifted the veil of this woman’s heart; I am
the master of the situation.”

She did not answer to the obvious meaning of his words, but said:

“Thee has done little else but change, so far as eye can see. Thee and
thy family were once of Quaker faith, but thee is a High Churchman now.
Yet they said a year ago thee was a sceptic or an infidel.”

“There is force in what you say,” he replied. “I have an inquiring mind;
I am ever open to reason. Confucius said: ‘It is only the supremely wise
or the deeply ignorant who never alter.’”

“Thee has changed politics. Thee made a ‘sensation, but that was not
enough. Thee that was a rebel became a deserter.”

He laughed. “Ah, I was open to conviction! I took my life in my hands,
defied consequences.” He laughed again.

“It brought office.”

“I am Under-Secretary for Foreign Affairs,” he murmured complacently.

“Change is a policy with thee, I think. It has paid thee well, so it
would seem.”

“Only a fair rate of interest for the capital invested and the risks
I’ve taken,” he answered with an amused look.

“I do not think that interest will increase. Thee has climbed quickly,
but fast climbing is not always safe climbing.”

His mood changed. His voice quickened, his face lowered. “You think I
will fail? You wish me to fail?”

“In so far as thee acts uprightly, I wish thee well. But if, out of
office, thee disregards justice and conscience and the rights of others,
can thee be just and faithful in office? Subtlety will not always avail.
The strong man takes the straight course. Subtlety is not intellect.”

He flushed. She had gone to the weakest point in his defences. His
vanity was being hurt. She had an advantage now.

“You are wrong,” he protested. “You do not understand public life, here
in a silly Quaker village.”

“Does thee think that all that happens in ‘public life’ is of
consequence? That is not sensible. Thee is in the midst of a thousand
immaterial things, though they have importance for the moment. But the
chief things that matter to all, does thee not know that a ‘silly Quaker
village’ may realise them to the full--more fully because we see them
apart from the thousand little things that do not matter? I remember a
thing in political life that mattered. It was at Heddington after the
massacre at Damascus. Does thee think that we did not know thee spoke
without principle then, and only to draw notice?”

“You would make me into a demagogue,” he said irritably.

“Thee is a demagogue,” she answered candidly.

“Why did you never say all this to me long ago? Years have passed since
then, and since then you and I have--have been friends. You have--”

He paused, for she made a protesting motion, and a fire sprang into her
eyes. Her voice got colder. “Thee made me believe--ah, how many times
did we speak together? Six times it was, not more. Thee made me believe
that what I thought or said helped thee to see things better. Thee
said I saw things truly like a child, with the wisdom of a woman. Thee
remembers that?”

“It was so,” he put in hastily.

“No, not for a moment so, though I was blinded to think for an instant
that it was. Thee subtly took the one way which could have made me
listen to thee. Thee wanted help, thee said; and if a word of mine could
help thee now and then, should I withhold it, so long as I thought thee
honest?”

“Do you think I was not honest in wanting your friendship?”

“Nay, it was not friendship thee wanted, for friendship means a giving
and a getting. Thee was bent on getting what was, indeed, of but little
value save to the giver; but thee gave nothing; thee remembered nothing
of what was given thee.”

“It is not so, it is not so,” he urged eagerly, nervously. “I gave, and
I still give.”

“In those old days, I did not understand,” she went on, “what it
was thee wanted. I know now. It was to know the heart and mind of a
woman--of a woman older than thee. So that thee should have such sort
of experience, though I was but a foolish choice of the experiment.
They say thee has a gift for chemistry like thy father; but if thee
experiments no more wisely in the laboratory than with me, thee will not
reach distinction.”

“Your father hated my father and did not believe in him, I know not why,
and you are now hating and disbelieving me.”

“I do not know why my father held the late Earl in abhorrence; I know he
has no faith in thee; and I did ill in listening to thee, in believing
for one moment there was truth in thee. But no, no, I think I never
believed it. I think that even when thee said most, at heart I believed
least.”

“You doubt that? You doubt all I said to you?” he urged softly, coming
close to her.

She drew aside slightly. She had steeled herself for this inevitable
interview, and there was no weakening of her defences; but a great
sadness came into her eyes, and spread over her face, and to this was
added, after a moment, a pity which showed the distance she was from
him, the safety in which she stood.

“I remember that the garden was beautiful, and that thee spoke as though
thee was part of the garden. Thee remembers that, at our meeting in the
Cloistered House, when the woman was ill, I had no faith in thee; but
thee spoke with grace, and turned common things round about, so that
they seemed different to the ear from any past hearing; and I listened.
I did not know, and I do not know now, why it is my duty to shun any
of thy name, and above all thyself; but it has been so commanded by my
father all my life; and though what he says may be in a little wrong, in
much it must ever be right.”

“And so, from a hatred handed down, your mind has been tuned to shun
even when your heart was learning to give me a home--Faith?”

She straightened herself. “Friend, thee will do me the courtesy to
forget to use my Christian name. I am not a child-indeed, I am well
on in years”--he smiled--“and thee has no friendship or kinship for
warrant. If my mind was tuned to shun thee, I gave proof that it was
willing to take thee at thine own worth, even against the will of my
father, against the desire of David, who knew thee better than I--he
gauged thee at first glance.”

“You have become a philosopher and a statesman,” he said ironically.
“Has your nephew, the new Joseph in Egypt, been giving you instructions
in high politics? Has he been writing the Epistles of David to the
Quakers?”

“Thee will leave his name apart,” she answered with dignity. “I have
studied neither high politics nor statesmanship, though in the days when
thee did flatter me thee said I had a gift for such things. Thee did
not speak the truth. And now I will say that I do not respect thee. No
matter how high thee may climb, still I shall not respect thee; for thee
will ever gain ends by flattery, by subtlety, and by using every man and
every woman for selfish ends. Thee cannot be true-not even to that which
by nature is greatest in thee.”.

He withered under her words.

“And what is greatest in me?” he asked abruptly, his coolness and
self-possession striving to hold their own.

“That which will ruin thee in the end.” Her eyes looked beyond his
into the distance, rapt and shining; she seemed scarcely aware of
his presence. “That which will bring thee down--thy hungry spirit of
discovery. It will serve thee no better than it served the late Earl.
But thee it will lead into paths ending in a gulf of darkness.”

“Deborah!” he answered, with a rasping laugh. “Continuez! Forewarned is
forearmed.”

“No, do not think I shall be glad,” she answered, still like one in a
dream. “I shall lament it as I lament--as I lament now. All else fades
away into the end which I see for thee. Thee will live alone without a
near and true friend, and thee will die alone, never having had a true
friend. Thee will never be a true friend, thee will never love truly
man or woman, and thee will never find man or woman who will love thee
truly, or will be with thee to aid thee in the dark and falling days.”

“Then,” he broke in sharply, querulously, “then, I will stand alone. I
shall never come whining that I have been ill-used, to fate or fortune,
to men or to the Almighty.”

“That I believe. Pride will build up in thee a strength which will be
like water in the end. Oh, my lord,” she added, with a sudden change in
her voice and manner, “if thee could only be true--thee who never has
been true to any one!”

“Why does a woman always judge a man after her own personal experience
with him, or what she thinks is her own personal experience?”

A robin hopped upon the path before her. She watched it for a moment
intently, then lifted her head as the sound of a bell came through
the wood to her. She looked up at the sun, which was slanting towards
evening. She seemed about to speak, but with second thought, moved on
slowly past the mill and towards the Meeting-house. He stepped on beside
her. She kept her eyes fixed in front of her, as though oblivious of his
presence.

“You shall hear me speak. You shall listen to what I have to say, though
it is for the last time,” he urged stubbornly. “You think ill of me. Are
you sure you are not pharisaical?”

“I am honest enough to say that which hurts me in the saying. I do not
forget that to believe thee what I think is to take all truth from what
thee said to me last year, and again this spring when the tulips first
came and there was good news from Egypt.”

“I said,” he rejoined boldly, “that I was happier with you than with any
one else alive. I said that what you thought of me meant more to me than
what any one else in the world thought; and that I say now, and will
always say it.”

The old look of pity came into her face. “I am older than thee by two
years,” she answered quaintly, “and I know more of real life, though I
have lived always here. I have made the most of the little I have seen;
thee has made little of the much that thee has seen. Thee does not know
the truth concerning thee. Is it not, in truth, vanity which would have
me believe in thee? If thee was happier with me than with any one
alive, why then did thee make choice of a wife even in the days thee was
speaking to me as no man shall ever speak again? Nothing can explain so
base a fact. No, no, no, thee said to me what thee said to others, and
will say again without shame. But--but see, I will forgive; yes, I will
follow thee with good wishes, if thee will promise to help David, whom
thee has ever disliked, as, in the place held by thee, thee can do now.
Will thee offer this one proof, in spite of all else that disproves,
that thee spoke any words of truth to me in the Cloistered House, in
the garden by my father’s house, by yonder mill, and hard by the
Meeting-house yonder-near to my sister’s grave by the willow-tree? Will
thee do that for me?”

He was about to reply, when there appeared in the path before them Luke
Claridge. His back was upon them, but he heard their footsteps and
swung round. As though turned to stone, he waited for them. As they
approached, his lips, dry and pale, essayed to speak, but no sound came.
A fire was in his eyes which boded no good. Amazement, horror, deadly
anger, were all there, but, after a moment, the will behind the tumult
commanded it, the wild light died away, and he stood calm and still
awaiting them. Faith was as pale as when she had met Eglington. As she
came nearer, Luke Claridge said, in a low voice:

“How do I find thee in this company, Faith?” There was reproach
unutterable in his voice, in his face. He seemed humiliated and shamed,
though all the while a violent spirit in him was struggling for the
mastery.

“As I came this way to visit my sister’s grave I met my lord by the
mill. He spoke to me, and, as I wished a favour of him, I walked with
him thither--but a little way. I was going to visit my sister’s grave.”

“Thy sister’s grave!” The fire flamed up again, but the masterful will
chilled it down, and he answered: “What secret business can thee have
with any of that name which I have cast out of knowledge or notice?”

Ignorant as he was of the old man’s cause for quarrel or dislike,
Eglington felt himself aggrieved, and, therefore, with an advantage.

“You had differences with my father, sir,” he said. “I do not know
what they were, but they lasted his lifetime, and all my life you have
treated me with aversion. I am not a pestilence. I have never wronged
you. I have lived your peaceful neighbour under great provocation, for
your treatment would have done me harm if my place were less secure. I
think I have cause for complaint.”

“I have never acted in haste concerning thee, or those who went before
thee. What business had thee with him, Faith?” he asked again. His voice
was dry and hard.

Her impulse was to tell the truth, and so for ever have her conscience
clear, for there would never be any more need for secrecy. The wheel of
understanding between Eglington and herself had come full circle, and
there was an end. But to tell the truth would be to wound her father, to
vex him against Eglington even as he had never yet been vexed. Besides,
it was hard, while Eglington was there, to tell what, after all, was
the sole affair of her own life. In one literal sense, Eglington was
not guilty of deceit. Never in so many words had he said to her: “I love
you;” never had he made any promise to her or exacted one; he had done
no more than lure her to feel one thing, and then to call it another
thing. Also there was no direct and vital injury, for she had never
loved him; though how far she had travelled towards that land of light
and trial she could never now declare. These thoughts flashed through
her mind as she stood looking at her father. Her tongue seemed
imprisoned, yet her soft and candid eyes conquered the austerity in the
old man’s gaze.

Eglington spoke for her.

“Permit me to answer, neighbour,” he said. “I wished to speak with
your daughter, because I am to be married soon, and my wife will, at
intervals, come here to live. I wished that she should not be shunned
by you and yours as I have been. She would not understand, as I do not.
Yours is a constant call to war, while all your religion is an appeal
for peace. I wished to ask your daughter to influence you to make it
possible for me and mine to live in friendship among you. My wife will
have some claims upon you. Her mother was an American, of a Quaker
family from Derbyshire. She has done nothing to merit your aversion.”

Faith listened astonished and baffled. Nothing of this had he said to
her. Had he meant to say it to her? Had it been in his mind? Or was it
only a swift adaptation to circumstances, an adroit means of working
upon the sympathies of her father, who, she could see, was in a
quandary? Eglington had indeed touched the old man as he had not been
touched in thirty years and more by one of his name. For a moment the
insinuating quality of the appeal submerged the fixed idea in a mind to
which the name of Eglington was anathema.

Eglington saw his advantage. He had felt his way carefully, and he
pursued it quickly. “For the rest, your daughter asked what I was ready
to offer--such help as, in my new official position, I can give to
Claridge Pasha in Egypt. As a neighbour, as Minister in the Government,
I will do what I can to aid him.”

Silent and embarrassed, the old man tried to find his way. Presently
he said tentatively: “David Claridge has a title to the esteem of all
civilised people.” Eglington was quick with his reply. “If he succeeds,
his title will become a concrete fact. There is no honour the Crown
would not confer for such remarkable service.”

The other’s face darkened. “I did not speak, I did not think, of handles
to his name. I find no good in them, but only means for deceiving and
deluding the world. Such honours as might make him baronet, or duke,
would add not a cubit to his stature. If he had such a thing by
right”--his voice hardened, his eyes grew angry once again--“I would
wish it sunk into the sea.”

“You are hard on us, sir, who did not give ourselves our titles, but
took them with our birth as a matter of course. There was nothing
inspiring in them. We became at once distinguished and respectable by
patent.”

He laughed good-humouredly. Then suddenly he changed, and his eyes took
on a far-off look which Faith had seen so often in the eyes of David,
but in David’s more intense and meaning, and so different. With what
deftness and diplomacy had he worked upon her father! He had crossed a
stream which seemed impassable by adroit, insincere diplomacy.

She saw that it was time to go, while yet Eglington’s disparagement of
rank and aristocracy was ringing in the old man’s ears; though she knew
there was nothing in Eglington’s equipment he valued more than his
title and the place it gave him. Grateful, however, for his successful
intervention, Faith now held out her hand.

“I must take my father away, or it will be sunset before we reach the
Meeting-house,” she said. “Goodbye-friend,” she added gently.

For an instant Luke Claridge stared at her, scarce comprehending that
his movements were being directed by any one save himself. Truth was,
Faith had come to her cross-roads in life. For the first time in her
memory she had seen her father speak to an Eglington without harshness;
and, as he weakened for a moment, she moved to take command of that
weakness, though she meant it to seem like leading. While loving her
and David profoundly, her father had ever been quietly imperious. If she
could but gain ascendency even in a little, it might lead to a more open
book of life for them both.

Eglington held out his hand to the old man. “I have kept you too long,
sir. Good-bye--if you will.”

The offered hand was not taken, but Faith slid hers into the old man’s
palm, and pressed it, and he said quietly to Eglington:

“Good evening, friend.”

“And when I bring my wife, sir?” Eglington added, with a smile.

“When thee brings the lady, there will be occasion to consider--there
will be occasion then.”

Eglington raised his hat, and turned back upon the path he and Faith had
travelled.

The old man stood watching him until he was out of view. Then he seemed
more himself. Still holding Faith’s hand, he walked with her on the
gorse-covered hill towards the graveyard.

“Was it his heart spoke or his tongue--is there any truth in him?” he
asked at last.

Faith pressed his hand. “If he help Davy, father--”

“If he help Davy; ay, if he help Davy! Nay, I cannot go to the
graveyard, Faith. Take me home,” he said with emotion.

His hand remained in hers. She had conquered. She was set upon a new
path of influence. Her hand was upon the door of his heart.

“Thee is good to me, Faith,” he said, as they entered the door of the
Red Mansion.

She glanced over towards the Cloistered House. Smoke was coming from the
little chimney of the laboratory.



CHAPTER XVII. THE WOMAN OF THE CROSS-ROADS

The night came down slowly. There was no moon, the stars were few, but
a mellow warmth was in the air. At the window of her little sitting-room
up-stairs Faith sat looking out into the stillness. Beneath was the
garden with its profusion of flowers and fruit; away to the left was the
common; and beyond-far beyond--was a glow in the sky, a suffused light,
of a delicate orange, merging away into a grey-blueness, deepening
into a darker blue; and then a purple depth, palpable and heavy with a
comforting silence.

There was something alluring and suggestive in the soft, smothered
radiance. It had all the glamour of some distant place of pleasure and
quiet joy, of happiness and ethereal being. It was, in fact, the far-off
mirror of the flaming furnace of the great Heddington factories. The
light of the sky above was a soft radiance, as of a happy Arcadian
land; the fire of the toil beneath was the output of human striving, an
intricate interweaving of vital forces which, like some Titanic machine,
wrought out in pain--a vast destiny.

As Faith looked, she thought of the thousands beneath struggling and
striving, none with all desires satisfied, some in an agony of want and
penury, all straining for the elusive Enough; like Sisyphus ever rolling
the rock of labour up a hill too steep for them.

Her mind flew to the man Kimber and his task of organising labour for
its own advance. What a life-work for a man! Here might David have spent
his days, here among his own countrymen, instead of in that far-off land
where all the forces of centuries were fighting against him. Here the
forces would have been fighting for him; the trend was towards the
elevation of the standards of living and the wider rights of labour,
to the amelioration of hard conditions of life among the poor. David’s
mind, with its equity, its balance, and its fire--what might it not have
accomplished in shepherding such a cause, guiding its activity?

The gate of the garden clicked. Kate Heaver had arrived. Faith got to
her feet and left the room.

A few minutes later the woman of the cross-roads was seated opposite
Faith at the window. She had changed greatly since the day David had
sent her on her way to London and into the unknown. Then there had been
recklessness, something of coarseness, in the fine face. Now it was
strong and quiet, marked by purpose and self-reliance.

Ignorance had been her only peril in the past, as it had been the cause
of her unhappy connection with Jasper Kimber. The atmosphere in which
she was raised had been unmoral; it had not been consciously immoral.
Her temper and her indignation against her man for drinking had been the
means of driving them apart. He would have married her in those days, if
she had given the word, for her will was stronger than his own; but she
had broken from him in an agony of rage and regret and despised love.

She was now, again, as she had been in those first days before she went
with Jasper Kimber; when she was the rose-red angel of the quarters;
when children were lured by the touch of her large, shapely hands; when
she had been counted a great nurse among her neighbours. The old simple
untutored sympathy was in her face.

They sat for a long time in silence, and at length Faith said: “Thee is
happy now with her who is to marry Lord Eglington?”

Kate nodded, smiling. “Who could help but be happy with her! Yet a
temper, too--so quick, and then all over in a second. Ah, she is one
that’d break her heart if she was treated bad; but I’d be sorry for him
that did it. For the like of her goes mad with hurting, and the mad cut
with a big scythe.”

“Has thee seen Lord Eglington?”

“Once before I left these parts and often in London.” Her voice was
constrained; she seemed not to wish to speak of him.

“Is it true that Jasper Kimber is to stand against him for Parliament?”

“I do not know. They say my lord has to do with foreign lands now. If he
helps Mr. Claridge there, then it would be a foolish thing for Jasper to
fight him; and so I’ve told him. You’ve got to stand by those that stand
by you. Lord Eglington has his own way of doing things. There’s not
a servant in my lady’s house that he hasn’t made his friend. He’s one
that’s bound to have his will. I heard my lady say he talks better than
any one in England, and there’s none she doesn’t know from duchesses
down.”

“She is beautiful?” asked Faith, with hesitation.

“Taller than you, but not so beautiful.”

Faith sighed, and was silent for a moment, then she laid a hand upon the
other’s shoulder. “Thee has never said what happened when thee first got
to London. Does thee care to say?”

“It seems so long ago,” was the reply.... “No need to tell of the
journey to London. When I got there it frightened me at first. My head
went round. But somehow it came to me what I should do. I asked my
way to a hospital. I’d helped a many that was hurt at Heddington and
thereabouts, and doctors said I was as good as them that was trained. I
found a hospital at last, and asked for work, but they laughed at me--it
was the porter at the door. I was not to be put down, and asked to see
some one that had rights to say yes or no. So he opened the door and
told me to go. I said he was no man to treat a woman so, and I would not
go. Then a fine white-haired gentleman came forward. He had heard all we
had said, standing in a little room at one side. He spoke a kind word
or two, and asked me to go into the little room. Before I had time to
think, he came to me with the matron, and left me with her. I told her
the whole truth, and she looked at first as if she’d turn me out. But
the end of it was I stayed there for the night, and in the morning the
old gentleman came again, and with him his lady, as kind and sharp of
tongue as himself, and as big as three. Some things she said made my
tongue ache to speak back to her; but I choked it down. I went to her to
be a sort of nurse and maid. She taught me how to do a hundred things,
and by-and-by I couldn’t be too thankful she had taken me in. I was with
her till she died. Then, six months ago I went to Miss Maryon, who
knew about me long before from her that died. With her I’ve been ever
since--and so that’s all.”

“Surely God has been kind to thee.”

“I’d have gone down--down--down, if it hadn’t been for Mr. Claridge at
the cross-roads.”

“Does thee think I shall like her that will live yonder?” She nodded
towards the Cloistered House. “There’s none but likes her. She will want
a friend, I’m thinking. She’ll be lonely by-and-by. Surely, she will be
lonely.”

Faith looked at her closely, and at last leaned over, and again laid a
soft hand on her shoulder. “Thee thinks that--why?”

“He cares only what matters to himself. She will be naught to him but
one that belongs. He’ll never try to do her good. Doing good to any but
himself never comes to his mind.”

“How does thee know him, to speak so surely?”

“When, at the first, he gave me a letter for her one day, and slipped a
sovereign into my hand, and nodded, and smiled at me, I knew him right
enough. He never could be true to aught.”

“Did thee keep the sovereign?” Faith asked anxiously.

“Ay, that I did. If he was for giving his money away, I’d take it fast
enough. The gold gave father boots for a year. Why should I mind?”

Faith’s face suffused. How low was Eglington’s estimate of humanity!

In the silence that followed the door of her room opened, and her father
entered. He held in one hand a paper, in the other a candle. His face
was passive, but his eyes were burning.

“David--David is coming,” he cried, in a voice that rang. “Does thee
hear, Faith? Davy is coming home!” A woman laughed exultantly. It was
not Faith. But still two years passed before David came.



CHAPTER XVIII. TIME, THE IDOL-BREAKER

Lord Windlehurst looked meditatively round the crowded and brilliant
salon. His host, the Foreign Minister, had gathered in the vast golden
chamber the most notable people of a most notable season, and in as
critical a period of the world’s politics as had been known for a
quarter of a century. After a moment’s survey, the ex-Prime-Minister
turned to answer the frank and caustic words addressed to him by the
Duchess of Snowdon concerning the Under-Secretary for Foreign Affairs.
Presently he said:

“But there is method in his haste, dear lady. He is good at his
dangerous game. He plays high, he plunges; but, somehow, he makes it
do. I’ve been in Parliament a generation or so, and I’ve never known an
amateur more daring and skilful. I should have given him office had I
remained in power. Look at him, and tell me if he wouldn’t have been
worth the backing.”

As Lord Windlehurst uttered the last word with an arid smile, he looked
quizzically at the central figure of a group of people gaily talking.

The Duchess impatiently tapped her knee with a fan. “Be thankful you
haven’t got him on your conscience,” she rejoined. “I call Eglington
unscrupulous and unreliable. He has but one god--getting on; and he
has got on, with a vengeance. Whenever I look at that dear thing he’s
married, I feel there’s no trusting Providence, who seems to make the
deserving a footstool for the undeserving. I’ve known Hylda since she
was ten, and I’ve known him since the minute he came into the world, and
I’ve got the measure of both. She is the finest essence the middle class
can distil, and he, oh, he’s paraffin-vin ordinaire, if you like it
better, a selfish, calculating adventurer!”

Lord Windlehurst chuckled mordantly. “Adventurer! That’s what they
called me--with more reason. I spotted him as soon as he spoke in the
House. There was devilry in him, and unscrupulousness, as you say; but,
I confess, I thought it would give way to the more profitable habit of
integrity, and that some cause would seize him, make him sincere and
mistaken, and give him a few falls. But in that he was more original
than I thought. He is superior to convictions. You don’t think he
married yonder Queen of Hearts from conviction, do you?”

He nodded towards a corner where Hylda, under a great palm, and backed
by a bank of flowers, stood surrounded by a group of people palpably
amused and interested; for she had a reputation for wit--a wit that
never hurt, and irony that was only whimsical.

“No, there you are wrong,” the Duchess answered. “He married from
conviction, if ever a man did. Look at her beauty, look at her fortune,
listen to her tongue. Don’t you think conviction was easy?”

Lord Windlehurst looked at Hylda approvingly. She has the real
gift--little information, but much knowledge, the primary gift of public
life. “Information is full of traps; knowledge avoids them, it
reads men; and politics is men--and foreign affairs, perhaps! She is
remarkable. I’ve made some hay in the political world, not so much as
the babblers think, but I hadn’t her ability at twenty-five.”

“Why didn’t she see through Eglington?”

“My dear Betty, he didn’t give her time. He carried her off her feet.
You know how he can talk.”

“That’s the trouble. She was clever, and liked a clever man, and he--!”

“Quite so. He’d disprove his own honest parentage, if it would help him
on--as you say.”

“I didn’t say it. Now don’t repeat that as from me. I’m not clever
enough to think of such things. But that Eglington lot--I knew his
father and his grandfather. Old Broadbrim they called his grandfather
after he turned Quaker, and he didn’t do that till he had had his
fling, so my father used to say. And Old Broadbrim’s father was called
I-want-to-know. He was always poking his nose into things, and playing
at being a chemist-like this one and the one before. They all fly off.
This one’s father used to disappear for two or three years at a time.
This one will fly off, too. You’ll see!

“He is too keen on Number One for that, I fancy. He calculates like a
mathematician. As cool as a cracksman of fame and fancy.”

The Duchess dropped the fan in her lap. “My dear, I’ve said nothing as
bad as that about him. And there he is at the Foreign Office!”

“Yet, what has he done, Betty, after all? He has never cheated at cards,
or forged a cheque, or run away with his neighbour’s wife.”

“There’s no credit in not doing what you don’t want to do. There’s no
virtue in not falling, when you’re not tempted. Neighbour’s wife! He
hasn’t enough feeling to face it. Oh no, he’ll not break the heart of
his neighbour’s wife. That’s melodrama, and he’s a cold-blooded artist.
He will torture that sweet child over there until she poisons him, or
runs away.”

“Isn’t he too clever for that? She has a million!”

“He’ll not realise it till it’s all over. He’s too selfish to see--how I
hate him!”

Lord Windlehurst smiled indulgently at her. “Ah, you never hated any
one--not even the Duke.”

“I will not have you take away my character. Of course I’ve hated, or
I wouldn’t be worth a button. I’m not the silly thing you’ve always
thought me.”

His face became gentler. “I’ve always thought you one of the wisest
women of this world--adventurous, but wise. If it weren’t too late, if
my day weren’t over, I’d ask the one great favour, Betty, and--”

She tapped his arm sharply with her fan. “What a humbug you are--the
Great Pretender! But tell me, am I not right about Eglington?”

Windlehurst became grave. “Yes, you are right--but I admire him, too. He
is determined to test himself to the full. His ambition is boundless and
ruthless, but his mind has a scientific turn--the obligation of energy
to apply itself, of intelligence to engage itself to the farthest limit.
But service to humanity--”

“Service to humanity!” she sniffed.

“Of course he would think it ‘flap-doodle’--except in a speech; but I
repeat, I admire him. Think of it all. He was a poor Irish peer, with
no wide circle of acquaintance, come of a family none too popular.
He strikes out a course for himself--a course which had its dangers,
because it was original. He determines to become celebrated--by becoming
notorious first. He uses his title as a weapon for advancement as though
he were a butter merchant. He plans carefully and adroitly. He writes
a book of travel. It is impudent, and it traverses the observations of
authorities, and the scientific geographers prance with rage. That was
what he wished. He writes a novel. It sets London laughing at me, his
political chief. He knew me well enough to be sure I would not resent
it. He would have lampooned his grandmother, if he was sure she
would not, or could not, hurt him. Then he becomes more audacious. He
publishes a monograph on the painters of Spain, artificial, confident,
rhetorical, acute: as fascinating as a hide-and-seek drawing-room
play--he is so cleverly escaping from his ignorance and indiscretions
all the while. Connoisseurs laugh, students of art shriek a little, and
Ruskin writes a scathing letter, which was what he had played for. He
had got something for nothing cheaply. The few who knew and despised him
did not matter, for they were able and learned and obscure, and, in
the world where he moves, most people are superficial, mediocre,
and ‘tuppence coloured.’ It was all very brilliant. He pursued his
notoriety, and got it.”

“Industrious Eglington!”

“But, yes, he is industrious. It is all business. It was an enormous
risk, rebelling against his party, and leaving me, and going over; but
his temerity justified itself, and it didn’t matter to him that people
said he went over to get office as we were going out. He got the
office-and people forget so soon. Then, what does he do--”

“He brings out another book, and marries a wife, and abuses his old
friends--and you.”

“Abuse? With his tongue in his cheek, hoping that I should reply.
Dev’lishly ingenious! But on that book of Electricity and Disease he
scored. In most other things he’s a barber-shop philosopher, but in
science he has got a flare, a real talent. So he moves modestly in this
thing, for which he had a fine natural gift and more knowledge than he
ever had before in any department, whose boundaries his impertinent and
ignorant mind had invaded. That book gave him a place. It wasn’t full
of new things, but it crystallised the discoveries, suggestions, and
expectations of others; and, meanwhile, he had got a name at no cost.
He is so various. Look at it dispassionately, and you will see much to
admire in his skill. He pleases, he amuses, he startles, he baffles, he
mystifies.”

The Duchess made an impatient exclamation. “The silly newspapers call
him a ‘remarkable man, a personality.’ Now, believe me, Windlehurst,
he will overreach himself one of these days, and he’ll come down like a
stick.”

“There you are on solid ground. He thinks that Fate is with him, and
that, in taking risks, he is infallible. But the best system breaks at
political roulette sooner or later. You have got to work for something
outside yourself, something that is bigger than the game, or the end is
sickening.”

“Eglington hasn’t far to go, if that’s the truth.”

“Well, well, when it comes, we must help him--we must help him up
again.”

The Duchess nervously adjusted her wig, with ludicrously tiny fingers
for one so ample, and said petulantly: “You are incomprehensible. He has
been a traitor to you and to your party, he has thrown mud at you, he
has played with principles as my terrier plays with his rubber ball, and
yet you’ll run and pick him up when he falls, and--”

“‘And kiss the spot to make it well,’” he laughed softly, then added
with a sigh: “Able men in public life are few; ‘far too few, for half
our tasks; we can spare not one.’ Besides, my dear Betty, there is his
pretty lass o’ London.”

The Duchess was mollified at once. “I wish she had been my girl,” she
said, in a voice a little tremulous. “She never needed looking after.
Look at the position she has made for herself. Her father wouldn’t go
into society, her mother knew a mere handful of people, and--”

“She knew you, Betty.”

“Well, suppose I did help her a little--I was only a kind of reference.
She did the rest. She’s set a half-dozen fashions herself--pure genius.
She was born to lead. Her turnouts were always a little smarter, her
horses travelled a little faster, than other people’s. She took risks,
too, but she didn’t play a game; she only wanted to do things well. We
all gasped when she brought Adelaide to recite from ‘Romeo and Juliet’
at an evening party, but all London did the same the week after.”

“She discovered, and the Duchess of Snowdon applied the science. Ah,
Betty, don’t think I don’t agree. She has the gift. She has temperament.
No woman should have temperament. She hasn’t scope enough to wear it out
in some passion for a cause. Men are saved in spite of themselves by the
law of work. Forty comes to a man of temperament, and then a passion for
a cause seizes him, and he is safe. A woman of temperament at forty is
apt to cut across the bows of iron-clad convention and go down. She has
temperament, has my lady yonder, and I don’t like the look of her eyes
sometimes. There’s dark fire smouldering in them. She should have a
cause; but a cause to a woman now-a-days means ‘too little of pleasure,
too much of pain,’ for others.”

“What was your real cause, Windlehurst? You had one, I suppose, for
you’ve never had a fall.”

“My cause? You ask that? Behold the barren figtree! A lifetime in my
country’s service, and you who have driven me home from the House in
your own brougham, and told me that you understood--oh, Betty!”

She laughed. “You’ll say something funny as you’re dying, Windlehurst.”

“Perhaps. But it will be funny to know that presently I’ll have a secret
that none of you know, who watch me ‘launch my pinnace into the dark.’
But causes? There are hundreds, and all worth while. I’ve come here
to-night for a cause--no, don’t start, it’s not you, Betty, though
you are worth any sacrifice. I’ve come here to-night to see a modern
Paladin, a real crusader:

“‘Then felt I like some watcher of the skies, When a new planet swims
into his ken.’”

“Yes, that’s poetry, Windlehurst, and you know I love it-I’ve always
kept yours. But who’s the man--the planet?”

“Egyptian Claridge.”

“Ah, he is in England?”

“He will be here to-night; you shall see him.”

“Really! What is his origin?”

He told her briefly, adding: “I’ve watched the rise of Claridge Pasha.
I’ve watched his cause grow, and now I shall see the man--ah, but here
comes our lass o’ London!”

The eyes of both brightened, and a whimsical pleasure came to the
mask-like face of Lord Windlehurst. There was an eager and delighted
look in Hylda’s face also as she quickly came to them, her cavaliers
following.

The five years that had passed since that tragic night in Cairo had been
more than kind to her. She was lissome, radiant, and dignified, her face
was alive with expression, and a delicate grace was in every movement.
The dark lashes seemed to have grown longer, the brown hair fuller, the
smile softer and more alluring.

“She is an invaluable asset to the Government,” Lord Windlehurst
murmured as she came. “No wonder the party helped the marriage on.
London conspired for it, her feet got tangled in the web--and he gave
her no time to think. Thinking had saved her till he came.”

By instinct Lord Windlehurst knew. During the first year after the
catastrophe at Kaid’s Palace Hylda could scarcely endure the advances
made by her many admirers, the greatly eligible and the eager
ineligible, all with as real an appreciation of her wealth as of her
personal attributes. But she took her place in London life with more
than the old will to make for herself, with the help of her aunt
Conyngham, an individual position.

The second year after her visit to Egypt she was less haunted by the
dark episode of the Palace, memory tortured her less; she came to think
of David and the part he had played with less agitation. At first the
thought of him had moved her alternately to sympathy and to revolt. His
chivalry had filled her with admiration, with a sense of confidence,
of dependence, of touching and vital obligation; but there was, too,
another overmastering feeling. He had seen her life naked, as it
were, stripped of all independence, with the knowledge of a dangerous
indiscretion which, to say the least, was a deformity; and she inwardly
resented it, as one would resent the exposure of a long-hidden physical
deformity, even by the surgeon who saved one’s life. It was not a very
lofty attitude of mind, but it was human--and feminine.

These moods had been always dissipated, however, when she recalled,
as she did so often, David as he stood before Nahoum Pasha, his soul
fighting in him to make of his enemy--of the man whose brother he had
killed--a fellow-worker in the path of altruism he had mapped out for
himself. David’s name had been continually mentioned in telegraphic
reports and journalistic correspondence from Egypt; and from this source
she had learned that Nahoum Pasha was again high in the service of
Prince Kaid. When the news of David’s southern expedition to the
revolting slave-dealing tribes began to appear, she was deeply roused.
Her agitation was the more intense because she never permitted
herself to talk of him to others, even when his name was discussed at
dinner-tables, accompanied by strange legends of his origin and stranger
romances regarding his call to power by Kaid.

She had surrounded him with romance; he seemed more a hero of history
than of her own real and living world, a being apart. Even when there
came rumblings of disaster, dark dangers to be conquered by the Quaker
crusader, it all was still as of another life. True it was, that when
his safe return to Cairo was announced she had cried with joy and
relief; but there was nothing emotional or passionate in her feeling;
it was the love of the lower for the higher, the hero-worship of an
idealist in passionate gratitude.

And, amid it all, her mind scarcely realised that they would surely meet
again. At the end of the second year the thought had receded into an
almost indefinite past. She was beginning to feel that she had lived
two lives, and that this life had no direct or vital bearing upon her
previous existence, in which David had moved. Yet now and then the
perfume of the Egyptian garden, through which she had fled to escape
from tragedy, swept over her senses, clouded her eyes in the daytime,
made them burn at night.

At last she had come to meet and know Eglington. From the first moment
they met he had directed his course towards marriage. He was the man
of the moment. His ambition seemed but patriotism, his ardent and
overwhelming courtship the impulse of a powerful nature. As Lord
Windlehurst had said, he carried her off her feet, and, on a wave of
devotion and popular encouragement, he had swept her to the altar.

The Duchess held both her hands for a moment, admiring her, and,
presently, with a playful remark upon her unselfishness, left her alone
with Lord Windlehurst.

As they talked, his mask-like face became lighted from the brilliant
fire in the inquisitorial eyes, his lips played with topics of the
moment in a mordant fashion, which drew from her flashing replies.
Looking at her, he was conscious of the mingled qualities of three races
in her--English, Welsh, and American-Dutch of the Knickerbocker strain;
and he contrasted her keen perception and her exquisite sensitiveness
with the purebred Englishwomen round him, stately, kindly, handsome, and
monotonously intelligent.

“Now I often wonder,” he said, conscious of, but indifferent to, the
knowledge that he and the brilliant person beside him were objects of
general attention--“I often wonder, when I look at a gathering like
this, how many undiscovered crimes there are playing about among us.
They never do tell--or shall I say, we never do tell?”

All day, she knew not why, Hylda had been nervous and excited. Without
reason his words startled her. Now there flashed before her eyes a room
in a Palace at Cairo, and a man lying dead before her. The light slowly
faded out of her eyes, leaving them almost lustreless, but her face was
calm, and the smile on her lips stayed. She fanned herself slowly, and
answered nonchalantly: “Crime is a word of many meanings. I read in the
papers of political crimes--it is a common phrase; yet the criminals
appear to go unpunished.”

“There you are wrong,” he answered cynically. “The punishment is, that
political virtue goes unrewarded, and in due course crime is the only
refuge to most. Yet in politics the temptation to be virtuous is great.”

She laughed now with a sense of relief. The intellectual stimulant
had brought back the light to her face. “How is it, then, with
you--inveterate habit or the strain of the ages? For they say you have
not had your due reward.”

He smiled grimly. “Ah, no, with me virtue is the act of an inquiring
mind--to discover where it will lead me. I began with political crime--I
was understood! I practise political virtue: it embarrasses the world,
it fogs them, it seems original, because so unnecessary. Mine is the
scientific life. Experiment in old substances gives new--well, say, new
precipitations. But you are scientific, too. You have a laboratory, and
have much to do--with retorts.”

“No, you are thinking of my husband. The laboratory is his.”

“But the retorts are yours.”

“The precipitations are his.”

“Ah, well, at least you help him to fuse the constituents!... But now,
be quite confidential to an old man who has experimented too. Is your
husband really an amateur scientist, or is he a scientific amateur? Is
it a pose or a taste? I fiddled once--and wrote sonnets; one was a pose,
the other a taste.”

It was mere persiflage, but it was a jest which made an unintended
wound. Hylda became conscious of a sudden sharp inquiry going on in her
mind. There flashed into it the question, Does Eglington’s heart ever
really throb for love of any object or any cause? Even in moments of
greatest intimacy, soon after marriage, when he was most demonstrative
towards her, he had seemed preoccupied, except when speaking about
himself and what he meant to do. Then he made her heart throb in
response to his confident, ardent words--concerning himself. But his own
heart, did it throb? Or was it only his brain that throbbed?

Suddenly, with an exclamation, she involuntarily laid a hand upon
Windlehurst’s arm. She was looking down the room straight before her
to a group of people towards which other groups were now converging,
attracted by one who seemed to be a centre of interest.

Presently the eager onlookers drew aside, and Lord Windlehurst observed
moving up the room a figure he had never seen before. The new-comer was
dressed in a grey and blue official dress, unrelieved save by silver
braid at the collar and at the wrists. There was no decoration, but
on the head was a red fez, which gave prominence to the white,
broad forehead, with the dark hair waving away behind the ears. Lord
Windlehurst held his eye-glass to his eye in interested scrutiny. “H’m,”
 he said, with lips pursed out, “a most notable figure, a most remarkable
face! My dear, there’s a fortune in that face. It’s a national asset.”

He saw the flush, the dumb amazement, the poignant look in Lady
Eglington’s face, and registered it in his mind. “Poor thing,” he said
to himself, “I wonder what it is all about--I wonder. I thought she had
no unregulated moments. She gave promise of better things.” The Foreign
Minister was bringing his guest towards them. The new-comer did not look
at them till within a few steps of where they stood. Then his eyes met
those of Lady Eglington. For an instant his steps were arrested. A swift
light came into his face, softening its quiet austerity and strength.

It was David.



CHAPTER XIX. SHARPER THAN A SWORD

A glance of the eye was the only sign of recognition between David and
Hylda; nothing that others saw could have suggested that they had ever
met before. Lord Windlehurst at once engaged David in conversation.

At first when Hylda had come back from Egypt, those five years ago, she
had often wondered what she would think or do if she ever were to see
this man again; whether, indeed, she could bear it. Well, the moment and
the man had come. Her eyes had gone blind for an instant; it had seemed
for one sharp, crucial moment as though she could not bear it; then the
gulf of agitation was passed, and she had herself in hand.

While her mind was engaged subconsciously with what Lord Windlehurst and
David said, comprehending it all, and, when Lord Windlehurst appealed
to her, offering by a word contribution to the ‘pourparler’, she was
studying David as steadily as her heated senses would permit her.

He seemed to her to have put on twenty years in the steady force of his
personality--in the composure of his bearing, in the self-reliance of
his look, though his face and form were singularly youthful. The face
was handsome and alight, the look was that of one who weighed things;
yet she was conscious of a great change. The old delicate quality of
the features was not so marked, though there was nothing material in the
look, and the head had not a sordid line, while the hand that he now
and again raised, brushing his forehead meditatively, had gained much in
strength and force. Yet there was something--something different, that
brought a slight cloud into her eyes. It came to her now, a certain
melancholy in the bearing of the figure, erect and well-balanced as it
was. Once the feeling came, the certainty grew. And presently she found
a strange sadness in the eyes, something that lurked behind all that he
did and all that he was, some shadow over the spirit. It was even more
apparent when he smiled.

As she was conscious of this new reading of him, a motion arrested her
glance, a quick lifting of the head to one side, as though the mind had
suddenly been struck by an idea, the glance flying upward in abstracted
questioning. This she had seen in her husband, too, the same brisk
lifting of the head, the same quick smiling. Yet this face, unlike
Eglington’s, expressed a perfect single-mindedness; it wore the look of
a self-effacing man of luminous force, a concentrated battery of energy.
Since she had last seen him every sign of the provincial had vanished.
He was now the well-modulated man of affairs, elegant in his simplicity
of dress, with the dignified air of the intellectual, yet with the
decision of a man who knew his mind.

Lord Windlehurst was leaving. Now David and she were alone. Without
a word they moved on together through the throng, the eyes of all
following them, until they reached a quiet room at one end of the salon,
where were only a few people watching the crowd pass the doorway.

“You will be glad to sit,” he said, motioning her to a chair beside some
palms. Then, with a change of tone, he added: “Thee is not sorry I am
come?”

Thee--the old-fashioned simple Quaker word! She put her fingers to her
eyes. Her senses were swimming with a distant memory. The East was in
her brain, the glow of the skies, the gleam of the desert, the swish of
the Nile, the cry of the sweet-seller, the song of the dance-girl,
the strain of the darabukkeh, the call of the skis. She saw again the
ghiassas drifting down the great river, laden with dourha; she saw the
mosque of the blue tiles with its placid fountain, and its handful of
worshippers praying by the olive-tree. She watched the moon rise above
the immobile Sphinx, she looked down on the banqueters in the Palace,
David among them, and Foorgat Bey beside her. She saw Foorgat Bey again
lying dead at her feet. She heard the stir of the leaves; she caught the
smell of the lime-trees in the Palace garden as she fled. She recalled
her reckless return to Cairo from Alexandria. She remembered the little
room where she and David, Nahoum and Mizraim, crossed a bridge over a
chasm, and stood upon ground which had held good till now--till this
hour, when the man who had played a most vital part in her life had
come again out of a land which, by some forced obliquity of mind and
stubbornness of will, she had assured herself she would never see again.

She withdrew her hand from her eyes, and saw him looking at her calmly,
though his face was alight. “Thee is fatigued,” he said. “This is labour
which wears away the strength.” He made a motion towards the crowd.

She smiled a very little, and said: “You do not care for such things as
this, I know. Your life has its share of it, however, I suppose.”

He looked out over the throng before he answered. “It seems an eddy of
purposeless waters. Yet there is great depth beneath, or there were no
eddy; and where there is depth and the eddy there is danger--always.” As
he spoke she became almost herself again. “You think that deep natures
have most perils?”

“Thee knows it is so. Human nature is like the earth: the deeper the
plough goes into the soil unploughed before, the more evil substance is
turned up--evil that becomes alive as soon as the sun and the air fall
upon it.”

“Then, women like me who pursue a flippant life, who ride in this
merry-go-round”--she made a gesture towards the crowd beyond--“who
have no depth, we are safest, we live upon the surface.” Her gaiety was
forced; her words were feigned.

“Thee has passed the point of danger, thee is safe,” he answered
meaningly.

“Is that because I am not deep, or because the plough has been at work?”
 she asked. “In neither case I am not sure you are right.”

“Thee is happily married,” he said reflectively; “and the prospect is
fair.”

“I think you know my husband,” she said in answer, and yet not in
answer.

“I was born in Hamley where he has a place--thee has been there?” he
asked eagerly.

“Not yet. We are to go next Sunday, for the first time to the Cloistered
House. I had not heard that my husband knew you, until I saw in
the paper a few days ago that your home was in Hamley. Then I asked
Eglington, and he told me that your family and his had been neighbours
for generations.”

“His father was a Quaker,” David rejoined, “but he forsook the faith.”

“I did not know,” she answered, with some hesitation. There was no
reason why, when she and Eglington had talked of Hamley, he should not
have said his own father had once been a Quaker; yet she had dwelt so
upon the fact that she herself had Quaker blood, and he had laughed
so much over it, with the amusement of the superior person, that his
silence on this one point struck her now with a sense of confusion.

“You are going to Hamley--we shall meet there?” she continued.

“To-day I should have gone, but I have business at the Foreign Office
to-morrow. One needs time to learn that all ‘private interests and
partial affections’ must be sacrificed to public duty.”

“But you are going soon? You will be there on Sunday?”

“I shall be there to-morrow night, and Sunday, and for one long week at
least. Hamley is the centre of the world, the axle of the universe--you
shall see. You doubt it?” he added, with a whimsical smile.

“I shall dispute most of what you say, and all that you think, if you do
not continue to use the Quaker ‘thee’ and ‘thou’--ungrammatical as you
are so often.”

“Thee is now the only person in London, or in England, with whom I use
‘thee’ and ‘thou.’ I am no longer my own master, I am a public servant,
and so I must follow custom.”

“It is destructive of personality. The ‘thee’ and ‘thou’ belong to you.
I wonder if the people of Hamley will say ‘thee’ and ‘thou’ to me. I
hope, I do hope they will.”

“Thee may be sure they will. They are no respecters of persons there.
They called your husband’s father Robert--his name was Robert. Friend
Robert they called him, and afterwards they called him Robert Denton
till he died.”

“Will they call me Hylda?” she asked, with a smile. “More like they will
call thee Friend Hylda; it sounds simple and strong,” he replied.

“As they call Claridge Pasha Friend David,” she answered, with a smile.
“David is a good name for a strong man.”

“That David threw a stone from a sling and smote a giant in the
forehead. The stone from this David’s sling falls into the ocean and is
lost beneath the surface.”

His voice had taken on a somewhat sombre tone, his eyes looked away
into the distance; yet he smiled too, and a hand upon his knee suddenly
closed in sympathy with an inward determination.

A light of understanding came into her face. They had been keeping
things upon the surface, and, while it lasted, he seemed a lesser man
than she had thought him these past years. But now--now there was the
old unschooled simplicity, the unique and lonely personality, the homely
soul and body bending to one root-idea, losing themselves in a wave
of duty. Again he was to her, once more, the dreamer, the worker, the
conqueror--the conqueror of her own imagination. She had in herself the
soul of altruism, the heart of the crusader. Touched by the fire of
a great idea, she was of those who could have gone out into the world
without wallet or scrip, to work passionately for some great end.

And she had married the Earl of Eglington!

She leaned towards David, and said eagerly: “But you are satisfied--you
are satisfied with your work for poor Egypt?”

“Thee says ‘poor Egypt,’” he answered, “and thee says well. Even now she
is not far from the day of Rameses and Joseph. Thee thinks perhaps thee
knows Egypt--none knows her.”

“You know her--now?”

He shook his head slowly. “It is like putting one’s ear to the mouth of
the Sphinx. Yet sometimes, almost in despair, when I have lain down in
the desert beside my camel, set about with enemies, I have got a message
from the barren desert, the wide silence, and the stars.” He paused.

“What is the message that comes?” she asked softly. “It is always the
same: Work on! Seek not to know too much, nor think that what you do is
of vast value. Work, because it is yours to be adjusting the machinery
in your own little workshop of life to the wide mechanism of the
universe and time. One wheel set right, one flying belt adjusted, and
there is a step forward to the final harmony--ah, but how I preach!” he
added hastily.

His eyes were fixed on hers with a great sincerity, and they were
clear and shining, yet his lips were smiling--what a trick they had of
smiling! He looked as though he should apologise for such words in such
a place.

She rose to her feet with a great suspiration, with a light in her eyes
and a trembling smile.

“But no, no, no, you inspire one. Thee inspires me,” she said, with a
little laugh, in which there was a note of sadness. “I may use ‘thee,’
may I not, when I will? I am a little a Quaker also, am I not? My people
came from Derbyshire, my American people, that is--and only forty years
ago. Almost thee persuades me to be a Quaker now,” she added. “And
perhaps I shall be, too,” she went on, her eyes fixed on the crowd
passing by, Eglington among them.

David saw Eglington also, and moved forward with her.

“We shall meet in Hamley,” she said composedly, as she saw her husband
leave the crush and come towards her. As Eglington noticed David, a
curious enigmatical glance flashed from his eyes. He came forward,
however, with outstretched hand.

“I am sorry I was not at the Foreign Office when you called to-day.
Welcome back to England, home--and beauty.” He laughed in a rather
mirthless way, but with a certain empressement, conscious, as he always
was, of the onlookers. “You have had a busy time in Egypt?” he continued
cheerfully, and laughed again.

David laughed slightly, also, and Hylda noticed that it had a certain
resemblance in its quick naturalness to that of her husband.

“I am not sure that we are so busy there as we ought to be,” David
answered. “I have no real standards. I am but an amateur, and have known
nothing of public life. But you should come and see.”

“It has been in my mind. An ounce of eyesight is worth a ton of print.
My lady was there once, I believe”--he turned towards her--“but before
your time, I think. Or did you meet there, perhaps?” He glanced at both
curiously. He scarcely knew why a thought flashed into his mind--as
though by some telepathic sense; for it had never been there before, and
there was no reason for its being there now.

Hylda saw what David was about to answer, and she knew instinctively
that he would say they had never met. It shamed her. She intervened as
she saw he was about to speak.

“We were introduced for the first time to-night,” she said; “but
Claridge Pasha is part of my education in the world. It is a miracle
that Hamley should produce two such men,” she added gaily, and laid
her fan upon her husband’s arm lightly. “You should have been a Quaker,
Harry, and then you two would have been--”

“Two Quaker Don Quixotes,” interrupted Eglington ironically.

“I should not have called you a Don Quixote,” his wife lightly rejoined,
relieved at the turn things had taken. “I cannot imagine you tilting at
wind-mills--”

“Or saving maidens in distress? Well, perhaps not; but you do not
suggest that Claridge Pasha tilts at windmills either--or saves maidens
in distress. Though, now I come to think, there was an episode.” He
laughed maliciously. “Some time ago it was--a lass of the cross-roads. I
think I heard of such an adventure, which did credit to Claridge Pasha’s
heart, though it shocked Hamley at the time. But I wonder, was the
maiden really saved?”

Lady Eglington’s face became rigid. “Well, yes,” she said slowly, “the
maiden was saved. She is now my maid. Hamley may have been shocked, but
Claridge Pasha has every reason to be glad that he helped a fellow-being
in trouble.”

“Your maid--Heaver?” asked Eglington in surprise, a swift shadow
crossing his face.

“Yes; she only told me this morning. Perhaps she had seen that Claridge
Pasha was coming to England. I had not, however. At any rate, Quixotism
saved her.”

David smiled. “It is better than I dared to hope,” he remarked quietly.

“But that is not all,” continued Hylda. “There is more. She had been
used badly by a man who now wants to marry her--has tried to do so
for years. Now, be prepared for a surprise, for it concerns you rather
closely, Eglington. Fate is a whimsical jade. Whom do you think it is?
Well, since you could never guess, it was Jasper Kimber.”

Eglington’s eyes opened wide. “This is nothing but a coarse and
impossible stage coincidence,” he laughed. “It is one of those tricks
played by Fact to discredit the imagination. Life is laughing at us
again. The longer I live, the more I am conscious of being an object of
derision by the scene-shifters in the wings of the stage. What a cynical
comedy life is at the best!”

“It all seems natural enough,” rejoined David.

“It is all paradox.”

“Isn’t it all inevitable law? I have no belief in ‘antic Fate.’”

Hylda realised, with a new and poignant understanding, the difference of
outlook on life between the two men. She suddenly remembered the words
of Confucius, which she had set down in her little book of daily life:
“By nature we approximate, it is only experience that drives us apart.”

David would have been content to live in the desert all his life for
the sake of a cause, making no calculations as to reward. Eglington must
ever have the counters for the game.

“Well, if you do not believe in ‘antic Fate,’ you must be greatly
puzzled as you go on,” he rejoined, laughing; “especially in Egypt,
where the East and the West collide, race against race, religion against
religion, Oriental mind against Occidental intellect. You have an
unusual quantity of Quaker composure, to see in it all ‘inevitable
law.’ And it must be dull. But you always were, so they say in Hamley, a
monument of seriousness.”

“I believe they made one or two exceptions,” answered David drily. “I
had assurances.”

Eglington laughed boyishly. “You are right. You achieved a name for
humour in a day--‘a glass, a kick, and a kiss,’ it was. Do you have such
days in Egypt?”

“You must come and see,” David answered lightly, declining to notice the
insolence. “These are critical days there. The problems are worthy of
your care. Will you not come?”

Eglington was conscious of a peculiar persuasive influence over himself
that he had never felt before. In proportion, however, as he felt its
compelling quality, there came a jealousy of the man who was its cause.
The old antagonism, which had had its sharpest expression the last time
they had met on the platform at Heddington, came back. It was one strong
will resenting another--as though there was not room enough in the wide
world of being for these two atoms of life, sparks from the ceaseless
wheel, one making a little brighter flash than the other for the moment,
and then presently darkness, and the whirring wheel which threw them
off, throwing off millions of others again.

On the moment Eglington had a temptation to say something with an edge,
which would show David that his success in Egypt hung upon the course
that he himself and the weak Foreign Minister, under whom he served,
would take. And this course would be his own course largely, since he
had been appointed to be a force and strength in the Foreign Office
which his chief did not supply. He refrained, however, and, on the
moment, remembered the promise he had given to Faith to help David.

A wave of feeling passed over him. His wife was beautiful, a creature
of various charms, a centre of attraction. Yet he had never really loved
her--so many sordid elements had entered into the thought of marriage
with her, lowering the character of his affection. With a perversity
which only such men know, such heart as he had turned to the unknown
Quaker girl who had rebuked him, scathed him, laid bare his soul before
himself, as no one ever had done. To Eglington it was a relief that
there was one human being--he thought there was only one--who read him
through and through; and that knowledge was in itself as powerful an
influence as was the secret between David and Hylda. It was a kind
of confessional, comforting to a nature not self-contained. Now he
restrained his cynical intention to deal David a side-thrust, and
quietly said:

“We shall meet at Hamley, shall we not? Let us talk there, and not at
the Foreign Office. You would care to go to Egypt, Hylda?”

She forced a smile. “Let us talk it over at Hamley.” With a smile to
David she turned away to some friends.

Eglington offered to introduce David to some notable people, but he said
that he must go--he was fatigued after his journey. He had no wish to be
lionised.

As he left the salon, the band was playing a tune that made him close
his eyes, as though against something he would not see. The band in
Kaid’s Palace had played it that night when he had killed Foorgat Bey.



CHAPTER XX. EACH AFTER HIS OWN ORDER

With the passing years new feelings had grown up in the heart of Luke
Claridge. Once David’s destiny and career were his own peculiar and
self-assumed responsibility. “Inwardly convicted,” he had wrenched
the lad away from the natural circumstances of his life, and created a
scheme of existence for him out of his own conscience--a pious egoist.

After David went to Egypt, however, his mind involuntarily formed the
resolution that “Davy and God should work it out together.”

He had grown very old in appearance, and his quiet face was almost
painfully white; but the eyes burned with more fire than in the past.
As the day approached when David should arrive in England, he walked by
himself continuously, oblivious of the world round him. He spoke to no
one, save the wizened Elder Meacham, and to John Fairley, who rightly
felt that he had a share in the making of Claridge Pasha.

With head perched in the air, and face half hidden in his great white
collar, the wizened Elder, stopping Luke Claridge in the street one day,
said:

“Does thee think the lad will ride in Pharaoh’s chariot here?”

There were sly lines of humour about the mouth of the wizened Elder as
he spoke, but Luke Claridge did not see.

“Pride is far from his heart,” he answered portentously. “He will ride
in no chariot. He has written that he will walk here from Heddington,
and none is to meet him.”

“He will come by the cross-roads, perhaps,” rejoined the other piously.
“Well, well, memory is a flower or a rod, as John Fox said, and the
cross-roads have memories for him.”

Again flashes of humour crossed his face, for he had a wide humanity, of
insufficient exercise.

“He has made full atonement, and thee does ill to recall the past,
Reuben,” rejoined the other sternly.

“If he has done no more that needs atonement than he did that day at the
cross-roads, then has his history been worthy of Hamley,” rejoined the
wizened Elder, eyes shut and head buried in his collar. “Hamley made
him--Hamley made him. We did not spare advice, or example, or any
correction that came to our minds--indeed, it was almost a luxury. Think
you, does he still play the flute--an instrument none too grave, Luke?”

But, to this, Luke Claridge exclaimed impatiently and hastened on; and
the little wizened Elder chuckled to himself all the way to the house of
John Fairley. None in Hamley took such pride in David as did these two
old men, who had loved him from a child, but had discreetly hidden their
favour, save to each other. Many times they had met and prayed together
in the weeks when his life was in notorious danger in the Soudan.

As David walked through the streets of Heddington making for the open
country, he was conscious of a new feeling regarding the place. It
was familiar, but in a new sense. Its grimy, narrow streets, unlovely
houses, with shut windows, summer though it was, and no softening
influences anywhere, save here and there a box of sickly geraniums in
the windows, all struck his mind in a way they had never done before.
A mile away were the green fields, the woods, the roadsides gay with
flowers and shrubs-loveliness was but over the wall, as it were; yet
here the barrack-like houses, the grey, harsh streets, seemed like
prison walls, and the people in them prisoners who, with every legal
right to call themselves free, were as much captives as the criminal on
some small island in a dangerous sea. Escape--where? Into the gulf of no
work and degradation?

They never lifted their eyes above the day’s labour. They were scarce
conscious of anything beyond. What were their pleasures? They had
imitations of pleasures. To them a funeral or a wedding, a riot or a
vociferous band, a dog-fight or a strike, were alike in this, that they
quickened feelings which carried them out of themselves, gave them a
sense of intoxication.

Intoxication? David remembered the far-off day of his own wild rebellion
in Hamley. From that day forward he had better realised that in the
hearts of so many of the human race there was a passion to forget
themselves; to blot out, if for a moment only, the troubles of life and
time; or, by creating a false air of exaltation, to rise above
them. Once in the desert, when men were dying round him of fever and
dysentery, he had been obliged, exhausted and ill, scarce able to
drag himself from his bed, to resort to an opiate to allay his own
sufferings, that he might minister to others. He remembered how, in the
atmosphere it had created--an intoxication, a soothing exhilaration and
pervasive thrill--he had saved so many of his followers. Since then the
temptation had come upon him often when trouble weighed or difficulties
surrounded him--accompanied always by recurrence of fever--to resort to
the insidious medicine. Though he had fought the temptation with every
inch of his strength, he could too well understand those who sought for
“surcease of pain”.

          “Seeking for surcease of pain,
          Pilgrim to Lethe I came;
          Drank not, for pride was too keen,
          Stung by the sound of a name!”

As the plough of action had gone deep into his life and laid bare his
nature to the light, there had been exposed things which struggled for
life and power in him, with the fiery strength which only evil has.

The western heavens were aglow. On every hand the gorse and the may were
in bloom, the lilacs were coming to their end, but wild rhododendrons
were glowing in the bracken, as he stepped along the road towards the
place where he was born. Though every tree and roadmark was familiar,
yet he was conscious of a new outlook. He had left these quiet scenes
inexperienced and untravelled, to be thrust suddenly into the thick of
a struggle of nations over a sick land. He had worked in a vortex of
debilitating local intrigue. All who had to do with Egypt gained except
herself, and if she moved in revolt or agony, they threatened her.
Once when resisting the pressure and the threats of war of a foreign
diplomatist, he had, after a trying hour, written to Faith in a burst of
passionate complaint, and his letter had ended with these words.

          “In your onward march, O men,
          White of face, in promise whiter,
          You unsheath the sword, and then
          Blame the wronged as the fighter.

          “Time, ah, Time, rolls onward o’er
          All these foetid fields of evil,
          While hard at the nation’s core
          Eats the burning rust and weevill

          “Nathless, out beyond the stars
          Reigns the Wiser and the Stronger,
          Seeing in all strifes and wars
          Who the wronged, who the wronger.”

Privately he had spoken thus, but before the world he had given way to
no impulse, in silence finding safety from the temptation to diplomatic
evasion. Looking back over five years, he felt now that the sum of his
accomplishment had been small.

He did not realise the truth. When his hand was almost upon the object
for which he had toiled and striven--whether pacifying a tribe, meeting
a loan by honest means, building a barrage, irrigating the land,
financing a new industry, or experimenting in cotton--it suddenly
eluded him. Nahoum had snatched it away by subterranean wires. On such
occasions Nahoum would shrug his shoulders, and say with a sigh, “Ah, my
friend, let us begin again. We are both young; time is with us; and we
will flourish palms in the face of Europe yet. We have our course set by
a bright star. We will continue.”

Yet, withal, David was the true altruist. Even now as he walked this
road which led to his old home, dear to him beyond all else, his
thoughts kept flying to the Nile and to the desert.

Suddenly he stopped. He was at the cross-roads. Here he had met Kate
Heaver, here he had shamed his neighbours--and begun his work in life.
He stood for a moment, smiling, as he looked at the stone where he
had sat those years ago, his hand feeling instinctively for his flute.
Presently he turned to the dusty road again.

Walking quickly away, he swung into the path of the wood which would
bring him by a short cut to Hamley, past Soolsby’s cottage. Here was the
old peace, the old joy of solitude among the healing trees. Experience
had broadened his life, had given him a vast theatre of work; but the
smell of the woods, the touch of the turf, the whispering of the trees,
the song of the birds, had the ancient entry to his heart.

At last he emerged on the hill where Soolsby lived. He had not meant, if
he could help it, to speak to any one until he had entered the garden of
the Red Mansion, but he had inadvertently come upon this place where he
had spent the most momentous days of his life, and a feeling stronger
than he cared to resist drew him to the open doorway. The afternoon
sun was beating in over the threshold as he reached it, and, at his
footstep, a figure started forward from the shadow of a corner.

It was Kate Heaver.

Surprise, then pain showed in her face; she flushed, was agitated.

“I am sorry. It’s too bad--it’s hard on him you should see,” she said in
a breath, and turned her head away for an instant; but presently looked
him in the face again, all trembling and eager. “He’ll be sorry enough
to-morrow,” she added solicitously, and drew away from something, she
had been trying to hide.

Then David saw. On a bench against a wall lay old Soolsby--drunk. A
cloud passed across his face and left it pale.

“Of course,” he said simply, and went over and touched the heaving
shoulders reflectively. “Poor Soolsby!”

“He’s been sober four years--over four,” she said eagerly. “When he knew
you’d come again, he got wild, and he would have the drink in spite of
all. Walking from Heddington, I saw him at the tavern, and brought him
home.”

“At the tavern--” David said reflectively.

“The Fox and Goose, sir.” She turned her face away again, and David’s
head came up with a quick motion. There it was, five years ago, that he
had drunk at the bar, and had fought Jasper Kimber.

“Poor fellow!” he said again, and listened to Soolsby’s stertorous
breathing, as a physician looks at a patient whose case he cannot
control, does not wholly understand.

The hand of the sleeping man was suddenly raised, his head gave a jerk,
and he said mumblingly: “Claridge for ever!”

Kate nervously intervened. “It fair beat him, your coming back, sir.
It’s awful temptation, the drink. I lived in it for years, and it’s
cruel hard to fight it when you’re worked up either way, sorrow or joy.
There’s a real pleasure in being drunk, I’m sure. While it lasts you’re
rich, and you’re young, and you don’t care what happens. It’s kind of
you to take it like this, sir, seeing you’ve never been tempted and
mightn’t understand.” David shook his head sadly, and looked at Soolsby
in silence.

“I don’t suppose he took a quarter what he used to take, but it made him
drunk. ‘Twas but a minute of madness. You’ve saved him right enough.”

“I was not blaming him. I understand--I understand.”

He looked at her clearly. She was healthy and fine-looking, with
large, eloquent eyes. Her dress was severe and quiet, as became her
occupation--a plain, dark grey, but the shapely fulness of the figure
gave softness to the outlines. It was no wonder Jasper Kimber wished
to marry her; and, if he did, the future of the man was sure. She had
a temperament which might have made her an adventuress--or an
opera-singer. She had been touched in time, and she had never looked
back.

“You are with Lady Eglington now, I have heard?” he asked.

She nodded.

“It was hard for you in London at first?”

She met his look steadily. “It was easy in a way. I could see round me
what was the right thing to do. Oh, that was what was so awful in the
old life over there at Heddington,”--she pointed beyond the hill, “we
didn’t know what was good and what was bad. The poor people in big
working-places like Heddington ain’t much better than heathens,
leastways as to most things that matter. They haven’t got a sensible
religion, not one that gets down into what they do. The parson doesn’t
reach them--he talks about church and the sacraments, and they don’t get
at what good it’s going to do them. And the chapel preachers ain’t much
better. They talk and sing and pray, when what the people want is light,
and hot water, and soap, and being shown how to live, and how to
bring up children healthy and strong, and decent-cooked food. I’d have
food-hospitals if I could, and I’d give the children in the schools one
good meal a day. I’m sure the children of the poor go wrong and bad
more through the way they live than anything. If only they was taught
right--not as though they was paupers! Give me enough nurses of the
right sort, and enough good, plain cooks, and meat three times a week,
and milk and bread and rice and porridge every day, and I’d make a new
place of any town in England in a year. I’d--”

She stopped all at once, however, and flushing, said: “I didn’t stop to
think I was talking to you, sir.”

“I am glad you speak to me so,” he answered gently. “You and I are both
reformers at heart.”

“Me? I’ve done nothing, sir, not any good to anybody or anything.”

“Not to Jasper Kimber?”

“You did that, sir; he says so; he says you made him.”

A quick laugh passed David’s lips. “Men are not made so easily. I think
I know the trowel and the mortar that built that wall! Thee will marry
him, friend?”

Her eyes burned as she looked at him. She had been eternally
dispossessed of what every woman has the right to have--one memory
possessing the elements of beauty. Even if it remain but for the moment,
yet that moment is hers by right of her sex, which is denied the
wider rights of those they love and serve. She had tasted the cup of
bitterness and drunk of the waters of sacrifice. Married life had no
lure for her. She wanted none of it. The seed of service had, however,
taken root in a nature full of fire and light and power, undisciplined
and undeveloped as it was. She wished to do something--the spirit of
toil, the first habit of the life of the poor, the natural medium for
the good that may be in them, had possession of her.

This man was to her the symbol of work. To have cared for his home, to
have looked after his daily needs, to have sheltered him humbly from
little things, would have been her one true happiness. And this was
denied her. Had she been a man, it would have been so easy. She could
have offered to be his servant; could have done those things which she
could do better than any, since hers would be a heart-service.

But even as she looked at him now, she had a flash of insight and
prescience. She had, from little things said or done, from newspapers
marked and a hundred small indications, made up her mind that her
mistress’s mind dwelt much upon “the Egyptian.” The thought flashed now
that she might serve this man, after all; that a day might come when she
could say that she had played a part in his happiness, in return for
all he had done for her. Life had its chances--and strange things had
happened. In her own mind she had decided that her mistress was not
happy, and who could tell what might happen? Men did not live for ever!
The thought came and went, but it left behind a determination to answer
David as she felt.

“I will not marry Jasper,” she answered slowly. “I want work, not
marriage.”

“There would be both,” he urged.

“With women there is the one or the other, not both.”

“Thee could help him. He has done credit to himself, and he can do good
work for England. Thee can help him.”

“I want work alone, not marriage, sir.”

“He would pay thee his debt.”

“He owes me nothing. What happened was no fault of his, but of the life
we were born in. He tired of me, and left me. Husbands tire of their
wives, but stay on and beat them.”

“He drove thee mad almost, I remember.”

“Wives go mad and are never cured, so many of them. I’ve seen them die,
poor things, and leave the little ones behind. I had the luck wi’ me. I
took the right turning at the cross-roads yonder.”

“Thee must be Jasper’s wife if he asks thee again,” he urged.

“He will come when I call, but I will not call,” she answered.

“But still thee will marry him when the heart is ready,” he persisted.
“It shall be ready soon. He needs thee. Good-bye, friend. Leave Soolsby
alone. He will be safe. And do not tell him that I have seen him so.” He
stooped over and touched the old man’s shoulder gently.

He held out his hand to her. She took it, then suddenly leaned over and
kissed it. She could not speak.

He stepped to the door and looked out. Behind the Red Mansion the sun
was setting, and the far garden looked cool and sweet. He gave a happy
sigh, and stepped out and down.

As he disappeared, the woman dropped into a chair, her arms upon a
table. Her body shook with sobs. She sat there for an hour, and then,
when the sun was setting, she left the drunken man sleeping, and
made her way down the hill to the Cloistered House. Entering, she was
summoned to her mistress’s room. “I did not expect my lady so soon,” she
said, surprised.

“No; we came sooner than we expected. Where have you been?”

“At Soolsby’s hut on the hill, my lady.”

“Who is Soolsby?”

Kate told her all she knew, and of what had happened that afternoon--but
not all.



CHAPTER XXI. “THERE IS NOTHING HIDDEN WHICH SHALL NOT BE REVEALED”

A fortnight had passed since they had come to Hamley--David, Eglington,
and Hylda--and they had all travelled a long distance in mutual
understanding during that time, too far, thought Luke Claridge, who
remained neutral and silent. He would not let Faith go to the Cloistered
House, though he made no protest against David going; because he
recognised in these visits the duty of diplomacy and the business of
the nation--more particularly David’s business, which, in his eyes,
swallowed all. Three times David had gone to the Cloistered House; once
Hylda and he had met in the road leading to the old mill, and once at
Soolsby’s hut. Twice, also, in the garden of his old home he had seen
her, when she came to visit Faith, who had captured her heart at once.
Eglington and Faith had not met, however. He was either busy in his
laboratory, or with his books, or riding over the common and through the
woods, and their courses lay apart.

But there came an afternoon when Hylda and David were a long hour
together at the Cloistered House. They talked freely of his work in
Egypt. At last she said: “And Nahoum Pasha?”

“He has kept faith.”

“He is in high place again?”

“He is a good administrator.”

“You put him there!”

“Thee remembers what I said to him, that night in Cairo?”

Hylda closed her eyes and drew in a long breath. Had there been a word
spoken that night when she and David and Nahoum met which had not bitten
into her soul! That David had done so much in Egypt without ruin or
death was a tribute to his power. Nevertheless, though Nahoum had not
struck yet, she was certain he would one day. All that David now told
her of the vicissitudes of his plans, and Nahoum’s sympathy and help,
only deepened this conviction. She could well believe that Nahoum gave
David money from his own pocket, which he replaced by extortion from
other sources, while gaining credit with David for co-operation.
Armenian Christian Nahoum might be, but he was ranged with the East
against the West, with the reactionary and corrupt against advance,
against civilisation and freedom and equality. Nahoum’s Christianity was
permeated with Orientalism, the Christian belief obscured by the theism
of the Muslim. David was in a deadlier struggle than he knew. Yet it
could serve no good end to attempt to warn him now. He had outlived
peril so far; might it not be that, after all, he would win?

So far she had avoided Nahoum’s name in talks with David. She could
scarcely tell why she did, save that it opened a door better closed, as
it were; but the restraint had given way at last.

“Thee remembers what I said that night?” David repeated slowly.

“I remember--I understand. You devise your course and you never change.
It is like building on a rock. That is why nothing happens to you as bad
as might happen.”

“Nothing bad ever happens to me.”

“The philosophy of the desert,” she commented smiling. “You are living
in the desert even when you are here. This is a dream; the desert and
Egypt only are real.

“That is true, I think. I seem sometimes like a sojourner here, like a
spirit ‘revisiting the scenes of life and time.’” He laughed boyishly.

“Yet you are happy here. I understand now why and how you are what you
are. Even I that have been here so short a time feel the influence upon
me. I breathe an air that, somehow, seems a native air. The spirit of
my Quaker grandmother revives in me. Sometimes I sit hours thinking,
scarcely stirring; and I believe I know now how people might speak to
each other without words. Your Uncle Benn and you--it was so with
you, was it not? You heard his voice speaking to you sometimes; you
understood what he meant to say to you? You told me so long ago.”

David inclined his head. “I heard him speak as one might speak through
a closed door. Sometimes, too, in the desert I have heard Faith speak to
me.”

“And your grandfather?”

“Never my grandfather--never. It would seem as though, in my thoughts,
I could never reach him; as though masses of opaque things lay between.
Yet he and I--there is love between us. I don’t know why I never hear
him.”

“Tell me of your childhood, of your mother. I have seen her grave under
the ash by the Meeting-house, but I want to know of her from you.”

“Has not Faith told you?”

“We have only talked of the present. I could not ask her; but I can ask
you. I want to know of your mother and you together.”

“We were never together. When I opened my eyes she closed hers. It was
so little to get for the life she gave. See, was it not a good face?”
 He drew from his pocket a little locket which Faith had given him years
ago, and opened it before her.

Hylda looked long. “She was exquisite,” she said, “exquisite.”

“My father I never knew either. He was a captain of a merchant ship. He
married her secretly while she was staying with an aunt at Portsmouth.
He sailed away, my mother told my grandfather all, and he brought her
home here. The marriage was regular, of course, but my grandfather,
after announcing it, and bringing it before the Elders, declared that
she should never see her husband again. She never did, for she died a
few months after, when I came, and my father died very soon, also. I
never saw him, and I do not know if he ever tried to see me. I never had
any feeling about it. My grandfather was the only father I ever knew,
and Faith, who was born a year before me, became like a sister to
me, though she soon made other pretensions!” He laughed again, almost
happily. “To gain an end she exercised authority as my aunt!”

“What was your father’s name?”

“Fetherdon--James Fetherdon.”

“Fetherdon--James Fetherdon!” Involuntarily Hylda repeated the name
after him. Where had she heard the name before--or where had she seen
it? It kept flashing before her eyes. Where had she seen it? For days
she had been rummaging among old papers in the library of the Cloistered
House, and in an old box full of correspondence and papers of the late
countess, who had died suddenly. Was it among them that she had seen the
name? She could not tell. It was all vague, but that she had seen it or
heard it she was sure.

“Your father’s people, you never knew them?”

He shook his head. “Nor of them. Here was my home--I had no desire to
discover them. We draw in upon ourselves here.”

“There is great force in such a life and such a people,” she answered.
“If the same concentration of mind could be carried into the wide life
of the world, we might revolutionise civilisation; or vitalise and
advance it, I mean--as you are doing in Egypt.”

“I have done nothing in Egypt. I have sounded the bugle--I have not had
my fight.”

“That is true in a sense,” she replied. “Your real struggle is before
you. I do not know why I say it, but I do say it; I feel it. Something
here”--she pressed her hand to her heart--“something here tells me that
your day of battle is yet to come.” Her eyes were brimming and full of
excitement. “We must all help you.” She gained courage with each word.
“You must not fight alone. You work for civilisation; you must have
civilisation behind you.” Her hands clasped nervously; there was a catch
in her throat. “You remember then, that I said I would call to you one
day, as your Uncle Benn did, and you should hear and answer me. It shall
not be that I will call. You--you will call, and I will help you if
I can. I will help, no matter what may seem to prevent, if there is
anything I can do. I, surely I, of all the world owe it to you to do
what I can, always.

“I owe so much--you did so much. Oh, how it haunts me! Sometimes in the
night I wake with a start and see it all--all!”

The flood which had been dyked back these years past had broken loose in
her heart.

Out of the stir and sweep of social life and duty, of official and
political ambition-heart-hungry, for she had no child; heart-lonely,
though she had scarce recognised it in the duties and excitements round
her--she had floated suddenly into this backwater of a motionless life
in Hamley. Its quiet had settled upon her, the shackles of her spirit
had been loosed, and dropped from her; she had suddenly bathed her heart
and soul in a freer atmosphere than they had ever known before. And
David and Hamley had come together. The old impulses, dominated by a
divine altruism, were swinging her out upon a course leading she knew
not, reeked not, whither--for the moment reeked not. This man’s career,
the work he was set to do, the ideal before him, the vision of a land
redeemed, captured her, carried her panting into a resolve which,
however she might modify her speech or action, must be an influence in
her life hereafter. Must the penance and the redemption be his only?
This life he lived had come from what had happened to her and to him in
Egypt. In a deep sense her life was linked with his.

In a flash David now felt the deep significance of their relations. A
curtain seemed suddenly to have been drawn aside. He was blinded for a
moment. Her sympathy, her desire to help, gave him a new sense of hope
and confidence, but--but there was no room in his crusade for any woman;
the dear egotism of a life-dream was masterful in him, possessed him.

Yet, if ever his heart might have dwelt upon a woman with thought of the
future, this being before him--he drew himself up with a start!... He
was going to Egypt again in a few days; they might probably never meet
again--would not, no doubt--should not. He had pressed her husband to go
to Egypt, but now he would not encourage it; he must “finish his journey
alone.”

He looked again in her eyes, and their light and beauty held him. His
own eyes swam. The exaltation of a great idea was upon them, was a bond
of fate between them. It was a moment of peril not fully realised by
either. David did realise, however, that she was beautiful beyond all
women he had ever seen--or was he now for the first time really aware
of the beauty of woman? She had an expression, a light of eye and face,
finely alluring beyond mere outline of feature. Yet the features were
there, too, regular and fine; and her brown hair waving away from her
broad, white forehead over eyes a greyish violet in colour gave her a
classic distinction. In the quietness of the face there was that
strain of the Quaker, descending to her through three generations, yet
enlivened by a mind of impulse and genius.

They stood looking at each other for a moment, in which both had taken
a long step forward in life’s experience. But presently his eyes looked
beyond her, as though at something that fascinated them.

“Of what are you thinking? What do you see?” she asked.

“You, leaving the garden of my house in Cairo, I standing by the fire,”
 he answered, closing his eyes for an instant.

“It is what I saw also,” she said breathlessly. “It is what I saw and
was thinking of that instant.” When, as though she must break away from
the cords of feeling drawing her nearer and nearer to him, she said,
with a little laugh, “Tell me again of my Chicago cousin? I have not had
a letter for a year.”

“Lacey, he is with me always. I should have done little had it not been
for him. He has remarkable resource; he is never cast down. He has but
one fault.”

“What is that?”

“He is no respecter of persons. His humour cuts deep. He has a wide
heart for your sex. When leaving the court of the King of Abyssinia he
said to his Majesty: ‘Well, good-bye, King. Give my love to the girls.’”

She laughed again. “How absurd and childish he is! But he is true and
able. And how glad you should be that you are able to make true friends,
without an effort. Yesterday I met neighbour Fairley, and another little
old Elder who keeps his chin in his collar and his eyes on the sky. They
did little else but sing your praises. One might have thought that you
had invented the world-or Hamley.”

“Yet they would chafe if I were to appear among them without these.” He
glanced down at the Quaker clothes he wore, and made a gesture towards
the broadbrimmed hat reposing on a footstool near by.

“It is good to see that you are not changed, not spoiled at all,” she
remarked, smiling. “Though, indeed, how could you be, who always work
for others and never for yourself? All I envy you is your friends. You
make them and keep them so.”

She sighed, and a shadow came into her eyes suddenly. She was thinking
of Eglington. Did he make friends--true friends? In London--was there
one she knew who would cleave to him for love of him? In England--had
she ever seen one? In Hamley, where his people had been for so many
generations, had she found one?

Herself? Yes, she was his true friend. She would do what would she not
do to help him, to serve his interests? What had she not done since she
married Her fortune, it was his; her every waking hour had been filled
with something devised to help him on his way. Had he ever said to her:
“Hylda, you are a help to me”? He had admired her--but was he singular
in that? Before she married there were many--since, there had been
many--who had shown, some with tact and carefulness, others with a
crudeness making her shudder, that they admired her; and, if they
might, would have given their admiration another name with other
manifestations. Had she repelled it all? She had been too sure of
herself to draw her skirts about her; she was too proud to let any man
put her at any disadvantage. She had been safe, because her heart had
been untouched. The Duchess of Snowdon, once beautiful, but now with
a face like a mask, enamelled and rouged and lifeless, had said to her
once: “My dear, I ought to have died at thirty. When I was twenty-three
I wanted to squeeze the orange dry in a handful of years, and then go
out suddenly, and let the dust of forgetfulness cover my bones. I had
one child, a boy, and would have no more; and I squeezed the orange! But
I didn’t go at thirty, and yet the orange was dry. My boy died; and you
see what I am--a fright, I know it; and I dress like a child of twenty;
and I can’t help it.”

There had been moments, once, when Hylda, too, had wished to squeeze the
orange dry, but something behind, calling to her, had held her back. She
had dropped her anchor in perilous seas, but it had never dragged.

“Tell me how to make friends--and keep them,” she added gaily.

“If it be true I make friends, thee taught me how,” he answered, “for
thee made me a friend, and I forget not the lesson.”

She smiled. “Thee has learnt another lesson too well,” she answered
brightly. “Thee must not flatter. It is not that which makes thee keep
friends. Thee sees I also am speaking as they do in Hamley--am I not
bold? I love the grammarless speech.”

“Then use it freely to-day, for this is farewell,” he answered, not
looking at her.

“This--is--farewell,” she said slowly, vaguely. Why should it startle
her so? “You are going so soon--where?”

“To-morrow to London, next week to Egypt.”

She laid a hand upon herself, for her heart was beating violently. “Thee
is not fair to give no warning--there is so much to say,” she said, in
so low a tone that he could scarcely hear her. “There is the future,
your work, what we are to do here to help. What I am to do.

“Thee will always be a friend to Egypt, I know,” he answered. “She needs
friends. Thee has a place where thee can help.”

“Will not right be done without my voice?” she asked, her eyes half
closing. “There is the Foreign Office, and English policy, and the
ministers, and--and Eglington. What need of me?”

He saw the thought had flashed into her mind that he did not trust her
husband. “Thee knows and cares for Egypt, and knowing and caring make
policy easier to frame,” he rejoined.

Suddenly a wave of feeling went over her. He whose life had been flung
into this field of labour by an act of her own, who should help him but
herself?

But it all baffled her, hurt her, shook her. She was not free to help as
she wished. Her life belonged to another; and he exacted the payment of
tribute to the uttermost farthing. She was blinded by the thought. Yet
she must speak. “I will come to Egypt--we will come to Egypt,” she said
quickly. “Eglington shall know, too; he shall understand. You shall have
his help. You shall not work alone.”

“Thee can work here,” he said. “It may not be easy for Lord Eglington to
come.”

“You pressed it on him.”

Their eyes met. She suddenly saw what was in his mind.

“You know best what will help you most,” she added gently.

“You will not come?” he asked.

“I will not say I will not come--not ever,” she answered firmly. “It may
be I should have to come.” Resolution was in her eyes. She was thinking
of Nahoum. “I may have to come,” she added after a pause, “to do right
by you.”

He read her meaning. “Thee will never come,” he continued confidently.
He held out his hand. “Perhaps I shall see you in town,” she rejoined,
as her hand rested in his, and she looked away. “When do you start for
Egypt?”

“To-morrow week, I think,” he answered. “There is much to do.”

“Perhaps we shall meet in town,” she repeated. But they both knew they
would not.

“Farewell,” he said, and picked up his hat.

As he turned again, the look in her eyes brought the blood to his face,
then it became pale. A new force had come into his life.

“God be good to thee,” he said, and turned away.

She watched him leave the room and pass through the garden.

“David! David!” she said softly after him.

At the other end of the room her husband, who had just entered, watched
her. He heard her voice, but did not hear what she said.

“Come, Hylda, and have some music,” he said brusquely.

She scrutinised him calmly. His face showed nothing. His look was
enigmatical.

“Chopin is the thing for me,” he said, and opened the piano.



CHAPTER XXII. AS IN A GLASS DARKLY

It was very quiet and cool in the Quaker Meeting-house, though outside
there was the rustle of leaves, the low din of the bees, the whistle
of a bird, or the even tread of horses’ hoofs as they journeyed on the
London road. The place was full. For a half-hour the worshippers had sat
voiceless. They were waiting for the spirit to move some one to speak.
As they waited, a lady entered and glided into a seat. Few saw, and
these gave no indication of surprise, though they were little used
to strangers, and none of the name borne by this lady had entered the
building for many years. It was Hylda.

At last the silence was broken. The wizened Elder, with eyes upon the
ceiling and his long white chin like ivory on his great collar, began to
pray, sitting where he was, his hands upon his knees. He prayed for all
who wandered “into by and forbidden paths.” He prayed for one whose work
was as that of Joseph, son of Jacob; whose footsteps were now upon the
sea, and now upon the desert; whose way was set among strange gods and
divers heresies--“‘For there must also be heresies, that they which are
approved may be made manifest among the weak.’” A moment more, and
then he added: “He hath been tried beyond his years; do Thou uphold his
hands. Once with a goad did we urge him on, when in ease and sloth he
was among us, but now he spurreth on his spirit and body in too great
haste. O put Thy hand upon the bridle, Lord, that He ride soberly upon
Thy business.”

There was a longer silence now, but at last came the voice of Luke
Claridge.

“Father of the fatherless,” he said, “my days are as the sands in the
hour-glass hastening to their rest; and my place will soon be empty. He
goeth far, and I may not go with him. He fighteth alone, like him that
strove with wild beasts at Ephesus; do Thou uphold him that he may bring
a nation captive. And if a viper fasten on his hand, as chanced to Paul
of old, give him grace to strike it off without hurt. O Lord, he is
to me, Thy servant, as the one ewe lamb; let him be Thine when Thou
gatherest for Thy vineyard!”

“And if a viper fasten on his hand--” David passed his hand across his
forehead and closed his eyes. The beasts at Ephesus he had fought, and
he would fight them again--there was fighting enough to do in the land
of Egypt. And the viper would fasten on his hand--it had fastened on his
hand, and he had struck it off; but it would come again, the dark thing
against which he had fought in the desert.

Their prayers had unnerved him, had got into that corner of his nature
where youth and its irresponsibility loitered yet. For a moment he was
shaken, and then, looking into the faces of the Elders, said: “Friends,
I go again upon paths that lead into the wilderness. I know not if I
ever shall return. Howsoe’er that may be, I shall walk with firmer step
because of all ye do for me.”

He closed his eyes and prayed: “O God, I go into the land of ancient
plagues and present pestilence. If it be Thy will, bring me home to this
good land, when my task is done. If not, by Thy goodness let me be as a
stone set by the wayside for others who come after; and save me from the
beast and from the viper. ‘Thou art faithful, who wilt not suffer us
to be tempted above that we are able; but wilt with the temptation also
make a way of escape, that we may be able to bear it!’”

He sat down, and all grew silent again; but suddenly some one sobbed
aloud-sobbed, and strove to stay the sobbing, and could not, and,
getting up, hastened towards the door.

It was Faith. David heard, and came quickly after her. As he took her
arm gently, his eyes met those of Hylda. She rose and came out also.

“Will thee take her home?” he said huskily. “I can bear no more.”

Hylda placed her arm round Faith, and led her out under the trees and
into the wood. As they went, Faith looked back.

“Oh, forgive me, forgive me, Davy,” she said softly.

Three lights burned in Hamley: one in the Red Mansion, one in the
Cloistered House, and one in Soolsby’s hut upon the hill. In the Red
Mansion old Luke Claridge, his face pale with feeling, his white
hair tumbling about, his head thrust forward, his eyes shining, sat
listening, as Faith read aloud letters which Benn Claridge had written
from the East many years before. One letter, written from Bagdad, he
made her read twice. The faded sheet had in it the glow and glamour of
the East; it was like a heart beating with life; emotion rose and fell
in it like the waves of the sea. Once the old man interrupted Faith.

“Davy--it is as though Davy spoke. It is like Davy--both Claridge, both
Claridge,” he said. “But is it not like Davy? Davy is doing what it was
in Benn’s heart to do. Benn showed the way; Benn called, and Davy came.”

He laid both hands upon his knees and raised his eyes. “O Lord, I have
sought to do according to Thy will,” he whispered. He was thinking of a
thing he had long hidden. Through many years he had no doubt, no qualm;
but, since David had gone to Egypt, some spirit of unquiet had worked
in him. He had acted against the prayer of his own wife, lying in her
grave--a quiet-faced woman, who had never crossed him, who had never
shown a note of passion in all her life, save in one thing concerning
David. Upon it, like some prophetess, she had flamed out. With the
insight which only women have where children are concerned, she had told
him that he would live to repent of what he had done. She had died soon
after, and was laid beside the deserted young mother, whose days had
budded and blossomed, and fallen like petals to the ground, while yet it
was the spring.

Luke Claridge had understood neither, not his wife when she had said:
“Thee should let the Lord do His own work, Luke,” nor his dying daughter
Mercy, whose last words had been: “With love and sorrow I have sowed;
he shall reap rejoicing--my babe. Thee will set him in the garden in the
sun, where God may find him--God will not pass him by. He will take him
by the hand and lead him home.” The old man had thought her touched by
delirium then, though her words were but the parable of a mind fed by
the poetry of life, by a shy spirit, to which meditation gave fancy and
farseeing. David had come by his idealism honestly. The half-mystical
spirit of his Uncle Benn had flowed on to another generation through
the filter of a woman’s sad soul. It had come to David a pure force, a
constructive and practical idealism.

Now, as Faith read, there were ringing in the old man’s ears the words
which David’s mother had said before she closed her eyes and passed
away: “Set him in the garden in the sun, where God may find him--God
will not pass him by.” They seemed to weave themselves into the
symbolism of Benn Claridge’s letter, written from the hills of Bagdad.

“But,” the letter continued, “the Governor passed by with his suite, the
buckles of the harness of his horses all silver, his carriage shining
with inlay of gold, his turban full of precious stones. When he had
passed, I said to a shepherd standing by, ‘If thou hadst all his wealth,
shepherd, what wouldst thou do?’ and he answered, ‘If I had his wealth,
I would sit on the south side of my house in the sun all day and every
day.’ To a messenger of the Palace, who must ever be ready night and day
to run at his master’s order, I asked the same. He replied, ‘If I had
all the Effendina’s wealth, I would sleep till I died.’ To a blind
beggar, shaking the copper in his cup in the highways, pleading dumbly
to those who passed, I made similar inquisition, and he replied ‘If the
wealth of the exalted one were mine, I would sit on the mastaba by the
bake-house, and eat three times a day, save at Ramadan, when I would
bless Allah the compassionate and merciful, and breakfast at sunset with
the flesh of a kid and a dish of dates.’ To a woman at the door of a
tomb hung with relics of hundreds of poor souls in misery, who besought
the buried saint to intercede for her with Allah, I made the same
catechism, and she answered, ‘Oh, effendi, if his wealth were mine, I
would give my son what he has lost.’ ‘What has he lost, woman?’ said
I; and she answered: ‘A little house with a garden, and a flock of
ten goats, a cow and a dovecote, his inheritance of which he has been
despoiled by one who carried a false debt ‘gainst his dead father.’ And
I said to her: ‘But if thy wealth were as that of the ruler of the city,
thy son would have no need of the little house and garden and the flock
of goats, and a cow and a dovecote.’ Whereupon she turned upon me in
bitterness, and said: ‘Were they not his own as the seed of his father?
Shall not one cherish that which is his own, which cometh from seed
to seed? Is it not the law?’ ‘But,’ said I, ‘if his wealth were thine,
there would be herds of cattle, and flocks of sheep, and carpets spread,
and the banquet-tables, and great orchards.’ But she stubbornly shook
her head. ‘Where the eagle built shall not the young eagle nest? How
should God meet me in the way and bless him who stood not by his birth
right? The plot of ground was the lad’s, and all that is thereon. I pray
thee, mock me not.’ God knows I did not mock her, for her words were
wisdom. So did it work upon me that, after many days, I got for the lad
his own again, and there he is happier, and his mother happier, than the
Governor in his palace. Later I did learn some truths from the shepherd,
the messenger, and the beggar, and the woman with the child; but chiefly
from the woman and the child. The material value has no relation to the
value each sets upon that which is his own. Behind this feeling lies the
strength of the world. Here on this hill of Bagdad I am thinking these
things. And, Luke, I would have thee also think on my story of the woman
and the child. There is in it a lesson for thee.”

When Luke Claridge first read this letter years before, he had put
it from him sternly. Now he heard it with a soft emotion. He took the
letter from Faith at last and put it in his pocket. With no apparent
relevancy, and laying his hand on Faith’s shoulder, he said:

“We have done according to our conscience by Davy--God is our witness,
so!”

She leaned her cheek against his hand, but did not speak.

In Soolsby’s hut upon the hill David sat talking to the old chair-maker.
Since his return he had visited the place several times, only to find
Soolsby absent. The old man, on awaking from his drunken sleep, had been
visited by a terrible remorse, and, whenever he had seen David coming,
had fled into the woods. This evening, however, David came in the dark,
and Soolsby was caught.

When David entered first, the old man broke down. He could not speak,
but leaned upon the back of a chair, and though his lips moved, no sound
came forth. But David took him by the shoulders and set him down, and
laughed gently in his face, and at last Soolsby got voice and said:

“Egyptian! O Egyptian!”

Then his tongue was loosened and his eye glistened, and he poured out
question after question, many pertinent, some whimsical, all frankly
answered by David. But suddenly he stopped short, and his eyes sank
before the other, who had laid a hand upon his knee.

“But don’t, Egyptian, don’t! Don’t have aught to do with me. I’m only a
drunken swine. I kept sober four years, as she knows--as the Angel down
yonder in the Red Mansion knows; but the day you came, going out to meet
you, I got drunk--blind drunk. I had only been pretending all the time.
I was being coaxed along--made believe I was a real man, I suppose.
But I wasn’t. I was a pillar of sand. When pressure came I just broke
down--broke down, Egyptian. Don’t be surprised if you hear me grunt.
It’s my natural speech. I’m a hog, a drink-swilling hog. I wasn’t decent
enough to stay sober till you had said ‘Good day,’ and ‘How goes it,
Soolsby?’ I tried it on; it was no good. I began to live like a man, but
I’ve slipped back into the ditch. You didn’t know that, did you?”

David let him have his say, and then in a low voice said: “Yes, I
knew thee had been drinking, Soolsby.” He started. “She told you--Kate
Heaver--”

“She did not tell me. I came and found you here with her. You were
asleep.”

“A drunken sweep!” He spat upon the ground in disgust at himself.

“I ought never have comeback here,” he added. “It was no place for me.
But it drew me. I didn’t belong; but it drew me.”

“Thee belongs to Hamley. Thee is an honour to Hamley, Soolsby.”

Soolsby’s eyes widened; the blurred look of rage and self-reproach in
them began to fade away.

“Thee has made a fight, Soolsby, to conquer a thing that has had thee by
the throat. There’s no fighting like it. It means a watching every hour,
every minute--thee can never take the eye off it. Some days it’s easy,
some days it’s hard, but it’s never so easy that you can say, ‘There is
no need to watch.’ In sleep it whispers and wakes you; in the morning,
when there are no shadows, it casts a shadow on the path. It comes
between you and your work; you see it looking out of the eyes of a
friend. And one day, when you think it has been conquered, that you have
worn it down into oblivion and the dust, and you close your eyes and
say, ‘I am master,’ up it springs with fury from nowhere you can see,
and catches you by the throat; and the fight begins again. But you sit
stronger, and the fight becomes shorter; and after many battles, and
you have learned never to be off guard, to know by instinct where every
ambush is, then at last the victory is yours. It is hard, it is bitter,
and sometimes it seems hardly worth the struggle. But it is--it is worth
the struggle, dear old man.”

Soolsby dropped on his knees and caught David by the arms. “How did you
know-how did you know?” he asked hoarsely. “It’s been just as you say.
You’ve watched some one fighting?”

“I have watched some one fighting--fighting,” answered David clearly,
but his eyes were moist.

“With drink, the same as me?”

“No, with opium--laudanum.”

“Oh, I’ve heard that’s worse, that it makes you mad, the wanting it.”

“I have seen it so.”

“Did the man break down like me?”

“Only once, but the fight is not yet over with him.”

“Was he--an Englishman?”

David inclined his head. “It’s a great thing to have a temptation to
fight, Soolsby. Then we can understand others.”

“It’s not always true, Egyptian, for you have never had temptation to
fight. Yet you know it all.”

“God has been good to me,” David answered, putting a hand on the old
man’s shoulder. “And thee is a credit to Hamley, friend. Thee will never
fall again.”

“You know that--you say that to me! Then, by Mary the mother of God, I
never will be a swine again,” he said, getting to his feet.

“Well, good-bye, Soolsby. I go to-morrow,” David said presently.

Soolsby frowned; his lips worked. “When will you come back?” he asked
eagerly.

David smiled. “There is so much to do, they may not let me come--not
soon. I am going into the desert again.”

Soolsby was shaking. He spoke huskily. “Here is your place,” he said.
“You shall come back--Oh, but you shall come back, here, where you
belong.”

David shook his head and smiled, and clasped the strong hand again. A
moment later he was gone. From the door of the but Soolsby muttered to
himself:

“I will bring you back. If Luke Claridge doesn’t, then I will bring you
back. If he dies, I will bring you--no, by the love of God, I will bring
you back while he lives!”

       ...........................

Two thousand miles away, in a Nile village, women sat wailing in dark
doorways, dust on their heads, black mantles covering their faces. By
the pond where all the people drank, performed their ablutions, bathed
their bodies and rinsed their mouths, sat the sheikh-el-beled, the
village chief, taking counsel in sorrow with the barber, the holy man,
and others. Now speaking, now rocking their bodies to and fro, in the
evening sunlight, they sat and watched the Nile in flood covering the
wide wastes of the Fayoum, spreading over the land rich deposits of
earth from the mountains of Abyssinia. When that flood subsided there
would be fields to be planted with dourha and onions and sugar-cane; but
they whose strong arms should plough and sow and wield the sickle, the
youth, the upstanding ones, had been carried off in chains to serve in
the army of Egypt, destined for the far Soudan, for hardship, misery,
and death, never to see their kindred any more. Twice during three
months had the dread servant of the Palace come and driven off
their best like sheep to the slaughter. The brave, the stalwart, the
bread-winners, were gone; and yet the tax-gatherer would come and press
for every impost--on the onion-field, the date-palm, the dourha-field,
and the clump of sugar-cane, as though the young men, the toilers,
were still there. The old and infirm, the children, the women, must now
double and treble their labour. The old men must go to the corvee, and
mend the banks of the Nile for the Prince and his pashas, providing
their own food, their own tools, their own housing, if housing there
would be--if it was more than sleeping under a bush by the riverside, or
crawling into a hole in the ground, their yeleks their clothes by day,
their only covering at night.

They sat like men without hope, yet with the proud, bitter mien of
those who had known good and had lost it, had seen content and now were
desolate.

Presently one--a lad--the youngest of them, lifted up his voice and
began to chant a recitative, while another took a small drum and beat
it in unison. He was but just recovered from an illness, or he had gone
also in chains to die for he knew not what, leaving behind without hope
all that he loved:

     “How has the cloud fallen, and the leaf withered on the tree,
     The lemon-tree, that standeth by the door.
     The melon and the date have gone bitter to the taste,
     The weevil, it has eaten at the core
     The core of my heart, the mildew findeth it.
     My music, it is but the drip of tears,
     The garner empty standeth, the oven hath no fire,
     Night filleth me with fears.
     O Nile that floweth deeply, hast thou not heard his voice?
     His footsteps hast thou covered with thy flood?
     He was as one who lifteth up the yoke,
     He was as one who taketh off the chain,
     As one who sheltereth from the rain,
     As one who scattereth bread to the pigeons flying.
     His purse was at his side, his mantle was for me,
     For any who passeth were his mantle and his purse,
     And now like a gourd is he withered from our eyes.
     His friendship, it was like a shady wood
     Whither has he gone?--Who shall speak for us?
     Who shall save us from the kourbash and the stripes?
     Who shall proclaim us in the palace?
     Who shall contend for us in the gate?
     The sakkia turneth no more; the oxen they are gone;
     The young go forth in chains, the old waken in the night,
     They waken and weep, for the wheel turns backward,
     And the dark days are come again upon us--
     Will he return no more?
     His friendship was like a shady wood,
     O Nile that floweth deeply, hast thou not heard his voice?
     Hast thou covered up his footsteps with thy flood?
     The core of my heart, the mildew findeth it!”

Another-an old man-took up the strain, as the drum kept time to the beat
of the voice with its undulating call and refrain:

“When his footsteps were among us there was peace; War entered not the
village, nor the call of war. Now our homes are as those that have
no roofs. As a nest decayed, as a cave forsaken, As a ship that lieth
broken on the beach, Is the house where we were born. Out in the desert
did we bury our gold, We buried it where no man robbed us, for his arm
was strong. Now are the jars empty, gold did not avail To save our young
men, to keep them from the chains. God hath swallowed his voice, or the
sea hath drowned it, Or the Nile hath covered him with its flood; Else
would he come when our voices call. His word was honey in the prince’s
ear Will he return no more?”

And now the sheikh-el-beled spoke. “It hath been so since Nahoum Pasha
passed this way four months agone. He hath changed all. War will not
avail. David Pasha, he will come again. His word is as the centre of
the world. Ye have no hope, because ye see the hawks among the starving
sheep. But the shepherd will return from behind the hill, and the hawks
will flee away.

“... Behold, once was I in the desert. Listen, for mine are the words
of one who hath travelled far--was I not at Damascus and Palmyra and
Bagdad, and at Medina by the tomb of Mahomet?”

Reverently he touched the green turban on his head, evidence of his
journey to Mahomet’s tomb. “Once in the desert I saw afar off an oasis
of wood and water, and flying things, and houses where a man might rest.
And I got me down from my camel, and knelt upon my sheepskin, and gave
thanks in the name of Allah. Thereupon I mounted again and rode on
towards that goodly place. But as I rode it vanished from my sight. Then
did I mourn. Yet once again I saw the trees, and flocks of pigeons and
waving fields, and I was hungry and thirsty, and longed exceedingly. Yet
got I down, and, upon my sheep-skin, once more gave thanks to Allah. And
I mounted thereafter in haste and rode on; but once again was I mocked.
Then I cried aloud in my despair. It was in my heart to die upon the
sheep-skin where I had prayed; for I was burned up within, and there
seemed naught to do but say malaish, and go hence. But that goodly sight
came again. My heart rebelled that I should be so mocked. I bent down
my head upon my camel that I might not see, yet once more I loosed the
sheep-skin. Lifting up my heart, I looked again, and again I took hope
and rode on. Farther and farther I rode, and lo! I was no longer mocked;
for I came to a goodly place of water and trees, and was saved. So shall
it be with us. We have looked for his coming again, and our hearts
have fallen and been as ashes, for that he has not come. Yet there be
mirages, and one day soon David Pasha will come hither, and our pains
shall be eased.”

“Aiwa, aiwa--yes, yes,” cried the lad who had sung to them.

“Aiwa, aiwa,” rang softly over the pond, where naked children stooped to
drink.

The smell of the cooking-pots floated out from the mud-houses near by.

“Malaish,” said one after another, “I am hungry. He will come
again-perhaps to-morrow.” So they moved towards the houses over the way.

One cursed his woman for wailing in the doorway; one snatched the lid
from a cooking-pot; one drew from an oven cakes of dourha, and gave them
to those who had none; one knelt and bowed his forehead to the ground in
prayer; one shouted the name of him whose coming they desired.

So was David missed in Egypt.



CHAPTER XXIII. THE TENTS OF CUSHAN

     “I saw the tents of Cushan in affliction, and the curtains
     of the Land of Midian did tremble.”

A Hurdy-Gurdy was standing at the corner, playing with shrill insistence
a medley of Scottish airs. Now “Loch Lomond” pleaded for pennies from
the upper windows:

       “For you’ll tak’ the high road,
        and I’ll tak’ the low road,
        And I’ll be in Scotland before ye:
        But I and my true love will never meet again,
        On the bonnie, bonnie banks of Loch Lomond!”

The hurdy-gurdy was strident and insistent, but for a long time no
response came. At last, however, as the strains of “Loch Lomond” ceased,
a lady appeared on the balcony of a drawing-room, and, leaning over a
little forest of flowers and plants, threw a half-crown to the sorry
street-musician. She watched the grotesque thing trundle away, then
entering the house again, took a ‘cello from the corner of the room and
tuned the instrument tenderly. It was Hylda.

Something of the peace of Hamley had followed her to London, but the
poignant pain of it had come also. Like Melisande, she had looked into
the quiet pool of life and had seen her own face, its story and its
foreshadowings. Since then she had been “apart.” She had watched life
move on rather than shared in its movement. Things stood still for her.
That apathy of soul was upon her which follows the inward struggle
that exhausts the throb and fret of inward emotions, leaving the mind
dominant, the will in abeyance.

She had become conscious that her fate and future were suspended over
a chasm, as, on the trapeze of a balloon, an adventurous aeronaut hangs
uncertain over the hungry sea, waiting for the coming wind which will
either blow the hazardous vessel to its doom or to safe refuge on the
land.

She had not seen David after he left Hamley. Their last words had been
spoken at the Meeting-house, when he gave Faith to her care. That scene
came back to her now, and a flush crept slowly over her face and faded
away again. She was recalling, too, the afternoon of that day when she
and David had parted in the drawing-room of the Cloistered House, and
Eglington had asked her to sing. She thought of the hours with Eglington
that followed, first at the piano and afterwards in the laboratory,
where in his long blue smock he made experiments. Had she not been
conscious of something enigmatical in his gaiety that afternoon, in his
cheerful yet cheerless words, she would have been deeply impressed by
his appreciation of her playing, and his keen reflections on the merits
of the composers; by his still keener attention to his subsequent
experiments, and his amusing comments upon them. But, somehow, that very
cheerless cheerfulness seemed to proclaim him superficial. Though she
had no knowledge of science, she instinctively doubted his earnestness
even in this work, which certainly was not pursued for effect. She
had put the feeling from her, but it kept returning. She felt that
in nothing did he touch the depths. Nothing could possess him wholly;
nothing inherent could make him self-effacing.

Yet she wondered, too, if she was right, when she saw his fox-terrier
watching him, ever watching him with his big brown eyes as he buoyantly
worked, and saw him stoop to pat its head. Or was this, after all, mere
animalism, mere superficial vitality, love of health and being? She
shuddered, and shut her eyes, for it came home to her that to him she
was just such a being of health, vitality and comeliness, on a little
higher plane. She put the thought from her, but it had had its birth,
and it would not down. He had immense vitality, he was tireless, and
abundant in work and industry; he went from one thing to another with
ease and swiftly changing eagerness. Was it all mere force--mere man and
mind? Was there no soul behind it? There in the laboratory she had
laid her hand on the terrier, and prayed in her heart that she might
understand him for her own good, her own happiness, and his. Above all
else she wanted to love him truly, and to be loved truly, and duty was
to her a daily sacrifice, a constant memorial. She realised to the full
that there lay before her a long race unilluminated by the sacred lamp
which, lighted at the altar, should still be burning beside the grave.

Now, as she thought of him, she kept saying to herself: “We should have
worked out his life together. Work together would have brought peace. He
shuts me out--he shuts me out.”

At last she drew the bow across the instrument, once, twice, and then
she began to play, forgetful of the world. She had a contralto voice,
and she sang with a depth of feeling and a delicate form worthy of a
professional; on the piano she was effective and charming, but into the
‘cello she poured her soul.

For quite an hour she played with scarce an interruption. At last, with
a sigh, she laid the instrument against her knee and gazed out of the
window. As she sat lost in her dream--a dream of the desert--a servant
entered with letters. One caught her eye. It was from Egypt--from
her cousin Lacey. Her heart throbbed violently, yet she opened the
official-looking envelope with steady fingers. She would not admit even
to her self that news from the desert could move her so. She began to
read slowly, but presently, with a little cry, she hastened through the
pages. It ran:

                       THE SOUDAN.

   DEAR LADY COUSIN,

   I’m still not certain how I ought to style you, but I thought I’d
   compromise as per above. Anyway, it’s a sure thing that I haven’t
   bothered you much with country-cousin letters. I figure, however,
   that you’ve put some money in Egypt, so to speak, and what happens
   to this sandy-eyed foundling of the Nile you would like to know. So
   I’ve studied the only “complete letter-writer” I could find between
   the tropic of Capricorn and Khartoum, and this is the contemptible
   result, as the dagos in Mexico say. This is a hot place by reason
   of the sun that shines above us, and likewise it is hot because of
   the niggers that swarm around us. I figure, if we get out of this
   portion of the African continent inside our skins, that we will have
   put up a pretty good bluff, and pulled off a ticklish proposition.

   It’s a sort of early Christian business. You see, David the Saadat
   is great on moral suasion--he’s a master of it; and he’s never
   failed yet--not altogether; though there have been minutes by a
   stop-watch when I’ve thought it wouldn’t stand the strain. Like the
   Mississippi steamboat which was so weak that when the whistle blew
   the engines stopped! When those frozen minutes have come to us,
   I’ve tried to remember the correct religious etiquette, but I’ve not
   had much practise since I stayed with Aunt Melissa, and lived on
   skim-milk and early piety. When things were looking as bad as they
   did for Dives, “Now I lay me down to sleep,” and “For what we are
   about to receive,” was all that I could think of. But the Saadat,
   he’s a wonder from Wondertown. With a little stick, or maybe his
   flute under his arm, he’ll smile and string these heathen along,
   when you’d think they weren’t waiting for anybody. A spear took off
   his fez yesterday. He never blinked--he’s a jim-dandy at keeping
   cool; and when a hundred mounted heathens made a rush down on him
   the other day, spears sticking out like quills on a porcupine--2.5
   on the shell-road the chargers were going--did he stir? Say, he
   watched ‘em as if they were playing for his benefit. And sure
   enough, he was right. They parted either side of him when they were
   ten feet away, and there he was quite safe, a blessing in the storm,
   a little rock island in the rapids--but I couldn’t remember a proper
   hymn of praise to say.

   There’s no getting away from the fact that he’s got a will or
   something, a sort of force different from most of us, or perhaps any
   of us. These heathen feel it, and keep their hands off him. They
   say he’s mad, but they’ve got great respect for mad people, for they
   think that God has got their souls above with Him, and that what’s
   left behind on earth is sacred. He talks to’em, too, like a father
   in Israel; tells ‘em they must stop buying and selling slaves, and
   that if they don’t he will have to punish them! And I sit holding
   my sides, for we’re only two white men and forty “friendlies”
    altogether, and two revolvers among us; and I’ve got the two! And
   they listen to his blarneying, and say, “Aiwa, Saadat! aiwa,
   Saadat!” as if he had an army of fifty thousand behind him.
   Sometimes I’ve sort of hinted that his canoe was carrying a lot of
   sail; but my! he believes in it all as if there wasn’t a spear or a
   battle-axe or a rifle within a hundred miles of him. We’ve been at
   this for two months now, and a lot of ground we covered till we got
   here. I’ve ridden the gentle camel at the rate of sixty and seventy
   miles a day--sort of sweeping through the land, making treaties,
   giving presents, freeing slaves, appointing governors and sheikhs-
   el-beled, doing it as if we owned the continent. He mesmerised ‘em,
   simply mesmerised ‘em-till we got here. I don’t know what happened
   then. Now we’re distinctly rating low, the laugh is on us somehow.
   But he--mind it? He goes about talking to the sheikhs as though we
   were all eating off the same corn-cob, and it seems to stupefy them;
   they don’t grasp it. He goes on arranging for a post here and a
   station there, and it never occurs to him that it ain’t really
   actual. He doesn’t tell me, and I don’t ask him, for I came along
   to wipe his stirrups, so to speak. I put my money on him, and I’m
   not going to worry him. He’s so dead certain in what he does, and
   what he is, that I don’t lose any sleep guessing about him. It will
   be funny if we do win out on this proposition--funnier than
   anything.

   Now, there’s one curious thing about it all which ought to be
   whispered, for I’m only guessing, and I’m not a good guesser; I
   guessed too much in Mexico about three railways and two silvermines.
   The first two days after we came here, everything was all right.
   Then there came an Egyptian, Halim Bey, with a handful of niggers
   from Cairo, and letters for Claridge Pasha.

   From that minute there was trouble. I figure it out this way: Halim
   was sent by Nahoum Pasha to bring letters that said one thing to the
   Saadat, and, when quite convenient, to say other things to Mustafa,
   the boss-sheikh of this settlement. Halim Bey has gone again, but
   he has left his tale behind him. I’d stake all I lost, and more
   than I ever expect to get out of Mexico on that, and maybe I’ll get
   a hatful out of Mexico yet. I had some good mining propositions
   down there. The Saadat believes in Nahoum, and has made Nahoum what
   he is; and on the surface Nahoum pretends to help him; but he is
   running underground all the time. I’d like to help give him a villa
   at Fazougli. When the Saadat was in England there was a bad time in
   Egypt. I was in Cairo; I know. It was the same bad old game--the
   corvee, the kourbash, conscription, a war manufactured to fill the
   pockets of a few, while the poor starved and died. It didn’t come
   off, because the Saadat wasn’t gone long enough, and he stopped it
   when he came back. But Nahoumhe laid the blame on others, and the
   Saadat took his word for it, and, instead of a war, there came this
   expedition of his own.

   Ten days later.--Things have happened. First, there’s been awful
   sickness among the natives, and the Saadat has had his chance. His
   medicine-chest was loaded, he had a special camel for it--and he has
   fired it off. Night and day he has worked, never resting, never
   sleeping, curing most, burying a few. He looks like a ghost now,
   but it’s no use saying or doing anything. He says: “Sink your own
   will; let it be subject to a higher, and you need take no thought.”
    It’s eating away his life and strength, but it has given us our
   return tickets, I guess. They hang about him as if he was Moses in
   the wilderness smiting the rock. It’s his luck. Just when I get
   scared to death, and run down and want a tonic, and it looks as if
   there’d be no need to put out next week’s washing, then his luck
   steps in, and we get another run. But it takes a heap out of a man,
   getting scared. Whenever I look on a lot of green trees and cattle
   and horses, and the sun, to say nothing of women and children, and
   listen to music, or feel a horse eating up the ground under me, 2.10
   in the sand, I hate to think of leaving it, and I try to prevent it.
   Besides, I don’t like the proposition of going, I don’t know where.
   That’s why I get seared. But he says that it’s no more than turning
   down the light and turning it up again. They used to call me a
   dreamer in Mexico, because I kept seeing things that no one else had
   thought of, and laid out railways and tapped mines for the future;
   but I was nothing to him. I’m a high-and-dry hedge-clipper
   alongside. I’m betting on him all the time; but no one seems to be
   working to make his dreams come true, except himself. I don’t
   count; I’m no good, no real good. I’m only fit to run the
   commissariat, and see that he gets enough to eat, and has a safe
   camel, and so on.

   Why doesn’t some one else help him? He’s working for humanity.
   Give him half a chance, and Haroun-al-Raschid won’t be in it. Kaid
   trusts him, depends on him, stands by him, but doesn’t seem to know
   how to help him when help would do most good. The Saadat does it
   all himself; and if it wasn’t that the poor devil of a fellah sees
   what he’s doing, and cottons to him, and the dervishes and Arabs
   feel he’s right, he might as well leave. But it’s just there he
   counts. There’s something about him, something that’s Quaker in
   him, primitive, silent, and perceptive--if that’s a real word--which
   makes them feel that he’s honest, and isn’t after anything for
   himself. Arabs don’t talk much; they make each other understand
   without many words. They think with all their might on one thing at
   a time, and they think things into happening--and so does he. He’s
   a thousand years old, which is about as old-fashioned as I mean, and
   as wise, and as plain to read as though you’d write the letters of
   words as big as a date-palm. That’s where he makes the running with
   them, and they can read their title clear to mansions in the skies!

   You should hear him talk with Ebn Ezra Bey--perhaps you don’t know
   of Ezra? He was a friend of his Uncle Benn, and brought the news of
   his massacre to England, and came back with the Saadat. Well, three
   days ago Ebn Ezra came, and there came with him, too, Halim Bey, the
   Egyptian, who had brought the letters to us from Cairo. Elm Ezra
   found him down the river deserted by his niggers, and sick with this
   new sort of fever, which the Saadat is knocking out of time. And
   there he lies, the Saadat caring for him as though he was his
   brother. But that’s his way; though, now I come to think of it, the
   Saadat doesn’t suspect what I suspect, that Halim Bey brought word
   from Nahoum to our sheikhs here to keep us here, or lose us, or do
   away with us. Old Ebn Ezra doesn’t say much himself, doesn’t say
   anything about that; but he’s guessing the same as me. And the
   Saadat looks as though he was ready for his grave, but keeps going,
   going, going. He never seems to sleep. What keeps him alive I
   don’t know. Sometimes I feel clean knocked out myself with the
   little I do, but he’s a travelling hospital all by his lonesome.

   Later.--I had to stop writing, for things have been going on--
   several. I can see that Ebn Ezra has told the Saadat things that
   make him want to get away to Cairo as soon as possible. That it’s
   Nahoum Pasha and others--oh, plenty of others, of course--I’m
   certain; but what the particular game is I don’t know. Perhaps you
   know over in England, for you’re nearer Cairo than we are by a few
   miles, and you’ve got the telegraph. Perhaps there’s a revolution,
   perhaps there’s been a massacre of Europeans, perhaps Turkey is
   kicking up a dust, perhaps Europe is interfering--all of it, all at
   once.

   Later still.--I’ve found out it’s a little of all, and the Saadat is
   ready to go. I guess he can go now pretty soon, for the worst of
   the fever is over. But something has happened that’s upset him--
   knocked him stony for a minute. Halim Bey was killed last night--by
   order of the sheikhs, I’m told; but the sheikhs won’t give it away.
   When the Saadat went to them, his eyes blazing, his face pale as a
   sheet, and as good as swore at them, and treated them as though he’d
   string them up the next minute, they only put their hands on their
   heads, and said they were “the fallen leaves for his foot to
   scatter,” the “snow on the hill for his breath to melt”; but they
   wouldn’t give him any satisfaction. So he came back and shut
   himself up in his tent, and he sits there like a ghost all
   shrivelled up for want of sleep, and his eyes like a lime-kiln
   burning; for now he knows this at least, that Halim Bey had brought
   some word from Kaid’s Palace that set these Arabs against him, and
   nearly stopped my correspondence. You see, there’s a widow in
   Cairo--she’s a sister of the American consul, and I’ve promised to
   take her with a party camping in the Fayoum--cute as she can be, and
   plays the guitar. But it’s all right now, except that the Saadat is
   running too close and fine. If he has any real friends in England
   among the Government people, or among those who can make the
   Government people sit up, and think what’s coming to Egypt and to
   him, they’ll help him now when he needs it. He’ll need help real
   bad when he gets back to Cairo--if we get that far. It isn’t yet a
   sure thing, for we’ve got to fight in the next day or two--I forgot
   to tell you that sooner. There’s a bull-Arab on the rampage with
   five thousand men, and he’s got a claim out on our sheikh, Mustafa,
   for ivory he has here, and there’s going to be a scrimmage. We’ve
   got to make for a better position to-morrow, and meet Abdullah, the
   bull-Arab, further down the river. That’s one reason why Mustafa
   and all our friends here are so sweet on us now. They look on the
   Saadat as a kind of mascot, and they think that he can wipe out the
   enemy with his flute, which they believe is a witch-stick to work
   wonders.

   He’s just sent for me to come, and I must stop soon. Say, he hasn’t
   had sleep for a fortnight. It’s too much; he can’t stand it. I
   tried it, and couldn’t. It wore me down. He’s killing himself for
   others. I can’t manage him; but I guess you could. I apologise,
   dear Lady Cousin. I’m only a hayseed, and a failure, but I guess
   you’ll understand that I haven’t thought only of myself as I wrote
   this letter. The higher you go in life the more you’ll understand;
   that’s your nature. I’ll get this letter off by a nigger to-morrow,
   with those the Saadat is sending through to Cairo by some
   friendlies. It’s only a chance; but everything’s chance here now.
   Anyhow, it’s safer than leaving it till the scrimmage. If you get
   this, won’t you try and make the British Government stand by the
   Saadat? Your husband, the lord, could pull it off, if he tried; and
   if you ask him, I guess he’d try. I must be off now. David Pasha
   will be waiting. Well, give my love to the girls!

        Your affectionate cousin,

                    TOM LACEY.

   P. S.--I’ve got a first-class camel for our scrimmage day after
   to-morrow. Mustafa sent it to me this morning. I had a fight on
   mules once, down at Oaxaca, but that was child’s play. This will be
   “slaughter in the pan,” if the Saadat doesn’t stop it somehow.
   Perhaps he will. If I wasn’t so scared I’d wish he couldn’t stop
   it, for it will be a way-up Barbarian scrap, the tongs and the
   kettle, a bully panjandrum. It gets mighty dull in the desert when
   you’re not moving. But “it makes to think,” as the French say.
   Since I came out here I’ve had several real centre thoughts, sort of
   main principles-key-thoughts, that’s it. What I want now is a sort
   of safety-ring to string ‘em on and keep ‘em safe; for I haven’t a
   good memory, and I get mighty rattled sometimes. Thoughts like
   these are like the secret of a combination lock; they let you into
   the place where the gold and securities and title-deeds of life are.
   Trouble is, I haven’t got a safety-ring, and I’m certain to lose
   them. I haven’t got what you’d call an intellectual memory. Things
   come in flashes to me out of experiences, and pull me up short, and
   I say, “Yes, that’s it--that’s it; I understand.” I see why it’s
   so, and what it means, and where it leads, and how far it spreads.
   It’s five thousand years old. Adam thought it after Cain killed
   Abel, or Abel thought it just before he died, or Eve learned it from
   Lilith, or it struck Abraham when he went to sacrifice Isaac.
   Sometimes things hit me deep like that here in the desert. Then I
   feel I can see just over on the horizon the tents of Moab in the
   wilderness; that yesterday and to-day are the same; that I’ve
   crossed the prairies of the everlasting years, and am playing about
   with Ishmael in the wild hills, or fighting with Ahab. Then the
   world and time seem pretty small potatoes.

   You see how it is. I never was trained to think, and I get stunned
   by thoughts that strike me as being dug right out of the centre.
   Sometimes I’d like to write them down; but I can’t write; I can only
   talk as I’m talking to you. If you weren’t so high up, and so much
   cleverer than I am, and such a thinker, I’d like you to be my
   safety-ring, if you would. I could tell the key-thoughts to you
   when they came to me, before I forgot them with all their bearings;
   and by-and-by they’d do me a lot of good when I got away from this
   influence, and back into the machinery of the Western world again.
   If you could come out here, if you could feel what I feel here--and
   you would feel a thousand times as much--I don’t know what you
   wouldn’t do.

   It’s pretty wonderful. The nights with the stars so white and
   glittering, and so near that you’d think you could reach up and hand
   them down; the dark, deep, blue beyond; such a width of life all
   round you, a sort of never-ending space, that everything you ever
   saw or did seems little, and God so great in a kind of hovering
   sense like a pair of wings; and all the secrets of time coming out
   of it all, and sort of touching your face like a velvet wind. I
   expect you’ll think me sentimental, a first-class squash out of the
   pumpkin-garden; but it’s in the desert, and it gets into you and
   saturates you, till you feel that this is a kind of middle space
   between the world of cities, and factories, and railways, and
   tenement-houses, and the quiet world to come--a place where they
   think out things for the benefit of future generations, and convey
   them through incarnations, or through the desert. Say, your
   ladyship, I’m a chatterer, I’m a two-cent philosopher, I’m a baby;
   but you are too much like your grandmother, who was the daughter of
   a Quaker like David Pasha, to laugh at me.

   I’ve got a suit of fine chain-armour which I bought of an Arab down
   by Darfur. I’m wondering if it would be too cowardly to wear it in
   the scrap that’s coming. I don’t know, though, but what I’ll wear
   it, I get so scared. But it will be a frightful hot thing under my
   clothes, and it’s hot enough without that, so I’m not sure. It
   depends how much my teeth chatter when I see “the dawn of battle.”

   I’ve got one more thing before I stop. I’m going to send you a
   piece of poetry which the Saadat wrote, and tore in two, and threw
   away. He was working off his imagination, I guess, as you have to
   do out here. I collected it and copied it, and put in the
   punctuation--he didn’t bother about that. Perhaps he can’t
   punctuate. I don’t understand quite what the poetry means, but
   maybe you will. Anyway, you’ll see that it’s a real desert piece.
   Here it is:

             “THE DESERT ROAD

       “In the sands I lived in a hut of palm,
        There was never a garden to see;
        There was never a path through the desert calm,
        Nor a way through its storms for me.

       “Tenant was I of a lone domain;
        The far pale caravans wound
        To the rim of the sky, and vanished again;
        My call in the waste was drowned.

       “The vultures came and hovered and fled;
        And once there stole to my door
        A white gazelle, but its eyes were dread
        With the hurt of the wounds it bore.

       “It passed in the dusk with a foot of fear,
        And the white cold mists rolled in;

        “And my heart was the heart of a stricken deer,
        Of a soul in the snare of sin.

       “My days they withered like rootless things,
        And the sands rolled on, rolled wide;
        Like a pelican I, with broken wings,
        Like a drifting barque on the tide.

       “But at last, in the light of a rose-red day,
        In the windless glow of the morn,
        From over the hills and from far away,
        You came--ah, the joy of the morn!

       “And wherever your footsteps fell, there crept
        A path--it was fair and wide:
        A desert road which no sands have swept,
        Where never a hope has died.

       “I followed you forth, and your beauty held
        My heart like an ancient song;
        By that desert road to the blossoming plains
        I came-and the way was long!

       “So I set my course by the light of your eyes;
        I care not what fate may send;
        On the road I tread shine the love-starred skies--
        The road with never an end.”

   Not many men can do things like that, and the other things, too,
   that he does. Perhaps he will win through, by himself, but is it
   fair to have him run the risk? If he ever did you a good turn, as
   you once said to me he did, won’t you help him now? You are on the
   inside of political things, and if you make up your mind to help,
   nothing will stop you--that was your grandmother’s way. He ought to
   get his backing pretty soon, or it won’t be any good.... I
   hear him at his flute. I expect he’s tired waiting for me. Well,
   give my love to the girls!
                         T. L.

As Hylda read, she passed through phases of feeling begotten of new
understanding which shook her composure. She had seen David and all that
David was doing; Egypt, and all that was threatening the land through
the eyes of another who told the whole truth--except about his own
cowardice, which was untrue. She felt the issues at stake. While the
mention of David’s personal danger left her sick for a moment, she saw
the wider peril also to the work he had set out to do.

What was the thing without the man? It could not exist--it had no
meaning. Where was he now? What had been the end of the battle? He
had saved others, had he saved himself? The most charmed life must be
pierced by the shaft of doom sooner or later; but he was little more
than a youth yet, he had only just begun!

“And the Saadat looks as though he was ready for his grave--but keeps
going, going, going!” The words kept ringing in her ears. Again: “And
he sits there like a ghost all shrivelled up for want of sleep, and
his eyes like a lime-kiln burning.... He hasn’t had sleep for a
fortnight.... He’s killing himself for others.”

Her own eyes were shining with a dry, hot light, her lips were
quivering, but her hands upon the letter were steady and firm. What
could she do?

She went to a table, picked up the papers, and scanned them hurriedly.
Not a word about Egypt. She thought for a moment, then left the
drawing-room. Passing up a flight of stairs to her husband’s study, she
knocked and entered. It was empty; but Eglington was in the house, for a
red despatch-box lay open on his table. Instinctively she glanced at the
papers exposed in the box, and at the letters beside it. The document
on the top of the pile in the box related to Cyprus--the name caught her
eye. Another document was half-exposed beneath it. Her hand went to her
heart. She saw the words, “Soudan” and “Claridge Pasha.” She reached for
it, then drew back her hand, and her eyes closed as though to shut it
out from her sight. Why should she not see it? They were her husband’s
papers, husband and wife were one. Husband and wife one! She shrank
back. Were they one? An overmastering desire was on her. It seemed
terrible to wait, when here before her was news of David, of life or
death. Suddenly she put out her hand and drew the Cyprus paper over the
Egyptian document, so that she might not see it.

As she did so the door opened on her, and Eglington entered. He had seen
the swift motion of her hand, and again a look peculiar to him crossed
his face, enigmatical, cynical, not pleasant to see.

She turned on him slowly, and he was aware of her inward distress to
some degree, though her face was ruled to quietness.

He nodded at her and smiled. She shrank, for she saw in his nod and his
smile that suggestion of knowing all about everything and everybody, and
thinking the worst, which had chilled her so often. Even in their short
married life it had chilled those confidences which she would gladly
have poured out before him, if he had been a man with an open soul. Had
there been joined to his intellect and temperament a heart capable of
true convictions and abiding love, what a man he might have been!
But his intellect was superficial, and his temperament was dangerous,
because there were not the experiences of a soul of truth to give the
deeper hold upon the meaning of life. She shrank now, as, with a little
laugh and glancing suggestively at the despatch-box, he said:

“And what do you think of it all?”

She felt as though something was crushing her heart within its grasp,
and her eyes took on a new look of pain. “I did not read the papers,”
 she answered quietly.

“I saw them in your fingers. What creatures women are--so dishonourable
in little things,” he said ironically.

She laid a hand on his. “I did not read them, Harry,” she urged.

He smiled and patted her arm. “There, there, it doesn’t matter,” he
laughed. He watched her narrowly. “It matters greatly,” she answered
gently, though his words had cut her like a knife. “I did not read the
papers. I only saw the word ‘Cyprus’ on the first paper, and I pushed it
over the paper which had the word ‘Egypt’ on it ‘Egypt’ and
‘Claridge,’ lest I should read it. I did not wish to read it. I am not
dishonourable, Harry.”

He had hurt her more than he had ever done; and only the great matter
at stake had prevented the lesser part of her from bursting forth in
indignation, from saying things which she did not wish to say. She had
given him devotion--such devotion, such self-effacement in his career as
few women ever gave. Her wealth--that was so little in comparison with
the richness of her nature--had been his; and yet his vast egotism took
it all as his right, and she was repaid in a kind of tyranny, the more
galling and cruel because it was wielded by a man of intellect and
culture, and ancient name and tradition. If he had been warned that
he was losing his wife’s love, he would have scouted the idea, his
self-assurance was so strong, his vanity complete. If, however, he
had been told that another man was thinking of his wife, he would have
believed it, as he believed now that David had done; and he cherished
that belief, and let resentment grow. He was the Earl of Eglington, and
no matter what reputation David had reached, he was still a member of
a Quaker trader’s family, with an origin slightly touched with scandal.
Another resentment, however, was steadily rising in him. It galled him
that Hylda should take so powerful an interest in David’s work in Egypt;
and he knew now that she had always done so. It did not ease his vexed
spirit to know that thousands of others of his fellow-countrymen did the
same. They might do so, but she was his wife, and his own work was the
sun round which her mind and interest should revolve.

“Why should you be so keen about Egypt and Claridge Pasha?” he said to
her now.

Her face hardened a little. Had he the right to torture her so? To
suspect her? She could read it in his eyes. Her conscience was clear.
She was no man’s slave. She would not be any man’s slave. She was master
of her own soul. What right had he to catechise her--as though she
were a servant or a criminal? But she checked the answer on her tongue,
because she was hurt deeper than words could express, and she said,
composedly:

“I have here a letter from my cousin Lacey, who is with Claridge Pasha.
It has news of him, of events in the Soudan. He had fever, there was to
be a fight, and I wished to know if you had any later news. I thought
that document there might contain news, but I did not read it. I
realised that it was not yours, that it belonged to the Government, that
I had no right. Perhaps you will tell me if you have news. Will you?”
 She leaned against the table wearily, holding her letter.

“Let me read your letter first,” he said wilfully.

A mist seemed to come before her eyes; but she was schooled to
self-command, and he did not see he had given her a shock. Her first
impulse was to hand the letter over at once; then there came the
remembrance of all it contained, all it suggested. Would he see all it
suggested? She recalled the words Lacey had used regarding a service
which David had once done her. If Eglington asked, what could she say?
It was not her secret alone, it was another’s. Would she have the right,
even if she wished it, to tell the truth, or part of the truth? Or,
would she be entitled to relate some immaterial incident which would
evade the real truth? What good could it do to tell the dark story?
What could it serve? Eglington would horribly misunderstand it--that
she knew. There were the verses also. They were more suggestive than
anything else, though, indeed, they might have referred to another
woman, or were merely impersonal; but she felt that was not so. And
there was Eglington’s innate unbelief in man and woman! Her first
impulse held, however. She would act honestly. She would face whatever
there was to face. She would not shelter herself; she would not give
him the right in the future to say she had not dealt fairly by him, had
evaded any inquest of her life or mind which he might make.

She gave him the letter, her heart standing still, but she was filled
with a regnant determination to defend herself, to defend David against
any attack, or from any consequences.

All her life and hopes seemed hanging in the balance, as he began
to read the letter. With fear she saw his face cloud over, heard an
impatient exclamation pass his lips. She closed her eyes to gather
strength for the conflict which was upon her. He spoke, and she vaguely
wondered what passage in the letter had fixed his attention. His voice
seemed very far away. She scarcely understood. But presently it pierced
the clouds of numbness between them, and she realised what he was
saying:

“Vulgar fellow--I can’t congratulate you upon your American cousin.
So, the Saadat is great on moral suasion, master of it--never failed
yet--not altogether--and Aunt Melissa and skim-milk and early piety!’
And ‘the Saadat is a wonder from Wondertown’--like a side-show to a
circus, a marvel on the flying trapeze! Perhaps you can give me the
sense of the letter, if there is any sense in it. I can’t read his
writing, and it seems interminable. Would you mind?”

A sigh of relief broke from her. A weight slipped away from her heart
and brain. It was as though one in armour awaited the impact of a heavy,
cruel, overwhelming foe, who suddenly disappeared, and the armour fell
from the shoulders, and breath came easily once again.

“Would you mind?” he repeated drily, as he folded up the letter slowly.

He handed it back to her, the note of sarcasm in his voice pricking her
like the point of a dagger. She felt angered with herself that he could
rouse her temper by such small mean irony. She had a sense of bitter
disappointment in him--or was it a deep hurt?--that she had not made him
love her, truly love her. If he had only meant the love that he swore
before they had married! Why had he deceived her? It had all been in
his hands, her fate and future; but almost before the bridal flowers had
faded, she had come to know two bitter things: that he had married with
a sordid mind; that he was incapable of the love which transmutes
the half-comprehending, half-developed affection of the maid into
the absorbing, understanding, beautiful passion of the woman. She had
married not knowing what love and passion were; uncomprehending, and
innocent because uncomprehending; with a fine affection, but capable
of loving wholly. One thing had purified her motives and her life--the
desire to share with Eglington his public duty and private hopes, to be
his confidante, his friend, his coadjutor, proud of him, eager for
him, determined to help him. But he had blocked the path to all inner
companionship. He did no more than let her share the obvious and outer
responsibilities of his life. From the vital things, if there were vital
things, she was shut out. What would she not give for one day of simple
tenderness and quiet affection, a true day with a true love!

She was now perfectly composed. She told him the substance of the
letter, of David’s plight, of the fever, of the intended fight, of
Nahoum Pasha, of the peril to David’s work. He continued to interrogate
her, while she could have shrieked out the question, “What is in yonder
document? What do you know? Have you news of his safety?” Would he never
stop his questioning? It was trying her strength and patience beyond
endurance. At last he drew the document slowly from the despatch-box,
and glanced up and down it musingly. “I fancy he won the battle,” he
said slowly, “for they have news of him much farther down the river. But
from this letter I take it he is not yet within the zone of safety--so
Nahoum Pasha says.” He flicked the document upwards with his thumb.

“What is our Government doing to help him?” she asked, checking her
eagerness.

His heart had gradually hardened towards Egypt. Power had emphasised a
certain smallness in him. Personal considerations informed the policy of
the moment. He was not going to be dragged at the chariot-wheels of
the Quaker. To be passive, when David in Egypt had asked for active
interest; to delay, when urgency was important to Claridge Pasha;
to speak coldly on Egyptian affairs to his chief, the weak Foreign
Secretary, this was the policy he had begun.

So he answered now: “It is the duty of the Egyptian Government to help
him--of Prince Kaid, of Nahoum Pasha, who is acting for him in his
absence, who governs finance, and therefore the army. Egypt does not
belong to England.”

“Nahoum Pasha is his enemy. He will do nothing to help, unless you force
him.”

“Why do you say that?”

“Because I know Nahoum Pasha.”

“When did you know Nahoum?”

“In Egypt, years ago.”

“Your acquaintance is more varied than I thought,” he said
sarcastically.

“Oh, do not speak to me like that!” she returned, in a low, indignant
voice.

“Do not patronise me; do not be sarcastic.”

“Do not be so sensitive,” he answered unemotionally.

“You surely do not mean that you--that the Government will not help him?
He is doing the work of Europe, of civilisation, of Christianity there.
He is sacrificing himself for the world. Do you not see it? Oh, but you
do! You would realise his work if you knew Egypt as I have seen it.”

“Expediency must govern the policy of nations,” he answered critically.

“But, if through your expediency he is killed like a rat in a trap, and
his work goes to pieces--all undone! Is there no right in the matter?”

“In affairs of state other circumstances than absolute ‘right’ enter.
Here and there the individual is sacrificed who otherwise would be
saved--if it were expedient.”

“Oh, Eglington! He is of your own county, of your own village, is your
neighbour, a man of whom all England should be proud. You can intervene
if you will be just, and say you will. I know that intervention has been
discussed in the Cabinet.”

“You say he is of my county. So are many people, and yet they are not
county people. A neighbour he was, but more in a Scriptural than social
sense.” He was hurting her purposely.

She made a protesting motion of her hand. “No, no, no, do not be so
small. This is a great matter. Do a great thing now; help it to be done
for your own honour, for England’s honour--for a good man’s sake, for
your country’s sake.”

There came a knock at the door. An instant afterwards a secretary
entered. “A message from the Prime Minister, sir.” He handed over a
paper.

“Will you excuse me?” he asked Hylda suavely, in his eyes the
enigmatical look that had chilled her so often before. She felt that
her appeal had been useless. She prepared to leave the room. He took her
hand, kissed it gallantly, and showed her out. It was his way--too civil
to be real.

Blindly she made her way to her room. Inside, she suddenly swayed and
sank fainting to the ground, as Kate Heaver ran forward to her. Kate
saw the letter in the clinched hand. Loosening it, she read two or three
sentences with a gasp. They contained Tom Lacey’s appeal for David. She
lifted Hylda’s head to her shoulder with endearing words, and chafed the
cold hands, murmuring to herself the while.



CHAPTER XXIV. THE QUESTIONER

“What has thee come to say?”

Sitting in his high-backed chair, Luke Claridge seemed a part of its
dignified severity. In the sparsely furnished room with its uncarpeted
floor, its plain teak table, its high wainscoting and undecorated walls,
the old man had the look of one who belonged to some ancient consistory,
a judge whose piety would march with an austerity that would save a
human soul by destroying the body, if need be.

A crisis had come, vaguely foreseen, sombrely eluded. A questioner was
before him who, poor, unheeded, an ancient victim of vice, could yet
wield a weapon whose sweep of wounds would be wide. Stern and masterful
as he looked in his arid isolation, beneath all was a shaking anxiety.

He knew well what the old chair-maker had come to say, but, in the
prologue of the struggle before him, he was unwittingly manoeuvring for
position.

“Speak,” he added presently, as Soolsby fumbled in his great loose
pockets, and drew forth a paper. “What has thee to say?”

Without a word, Soolsby handed over the paper, but the other would not
take it.

“What is it?” he asked, his lips growing pale. “Read--if thee can read.”

The gibe in the last words made the colour leap into Soolsby’s face, and
a fighting look came. He too had staved off this inevitable hour, had
dreaded it, but now his courage shot up high.

“Doost think I have forgotten how to read since the day I put my hand to
a writing you’ve hid so long from them it most concerns? Ay, I can
read, and I can write, and I will prove that I can speak too before I’ve
done.”

“Read--read,” rejoined the old man hoarsely, his hands tightly gripping
the chair-arm.

“The fever caught him at Shendy--that is the place--”

“He is not dead--David is not dead?” came the sharp, pained
interruption. The old man’s head strained forward, his eyes were misty
and dazed.

Soolsby’s face showed no pity for the other’s anxiety; it had a kind
of triumph in it. “Nay, he is living,” he answered. “He got well of the
fever, and came to Cairo, but he’s off again into the desert. It’s the
third time. You can’t be tempting Providence for ever. This paper here
says it’s too big a job for one man--like throwing a good life away.
Here in England is his place, it says. And so say I; and so I have come
to say, and to hear you say so, too. What is he there? One man against a
million. What put it in his head that he thinks he can do it?”

His voice became lower; he fixed his eyes meaningly on the other. “When
a man’s life got a twist at the start, no wonder it flies off madlike
to do the thing that isn’t to be done, and leave undone the thing that’s
here for it to do. Doost think a straight line could come from the
crooked line you drew for him?”

“He is safe--he is well and strong again?” asked the old man painfully.
Suddenly he reached out a hand for the paper. “Let me read,” he said, in
a voice scarce above a whisper.

He essayed to take the paper calmly, but it trembled in his hands. He
spread it out and fumbled for his glasses, but could not find them, and
he gazed helplessly at the page before him. Soolsby took the paper from
him and read slowly:

“... Claridge Pasha has done good work in Egypt, but he is a generation
too soon, it may be two or three too soon. We can but regard this fresh
enterprise as a temptation to Fate to take from our race one of the
most promising spirits and vital personalities which this generation has
produced. It is a forlorn hope. Most Englishmen familiar with Claridge
Pasha’s life and aims will ask--”

An exclamation broke from the old man. In the pause which followed he
said: “It was none of my doing. He went to Egypt against my will.”

“Ay, so many a man’s said that’s not wanted to look his own acts
straight in the face. If Our Man had been started different, if he’d
started in the path where God A’mighty dropped him, and not in the path
Luke Claridge chose, would he have been in Egypt to-day wearing out his
life? He’s not making carpets there, he’s only beating them.”

The homely illustration drawn from the business in which he had been
interested so many years went home to Claridge’s mind. He shrank back,
and sat rigid, his brows drawing over the eyes, till they seemed sunk
in caverns of the head. Suddenly Soolsby’s voice rose angrily. Luke
Claridge seemed so remorseless and unyielding, so set in his vanity
and self-will! Soolsby misread the rigid look in the face, the pale
sternness. He did not know that there had suddenly come upon Luke
Claridge the full consciousness of an agonising truth--that all he had
done where David was concerned had been a mistake. The hard look, the
sternness, were the signals of a soul challenging itself.

“Ay, you’ve had your own will,” cried Soolsby mercilessly. “You’ve said
to God A’mighty that He wasn’t able to work out to a good end what He’d
let happen; and so you’d do His work for Him. You kept the lad hid away
from the people that belonged to him, you kept him out of his own, and
let others take his birthright. You put a shame upon him, hiding who his
father and his father’s people were, and you put a shame upon her that
lies in the graveyard--as sweet a lass, as good, as ever lived on
earth. Ay, a shame and a scandal! For your eyes were shut always to
the sidelong looks, your ears never heard the things people said--‘A
good-for-nothing ship-captain, a scamp and a ne’er-do-weel, one that had
a lass at every port, and, maybe, wives too; one that none knew or ever
had seen--a pirate maybe, or a slave-dealer, or a jail-bird, for all
they knew! Married--oh yes, married right enough, but nothing else--not
even a home. Just a ring on the finger, and then, beyond and away!’
Around her life that brought into the world our lad yonder you let a
cloud draw down; and you let it draw round his, too, for he didn’t even
bear his father’s name--much less knew who his father was--or live in
his father’s home, or come by his own in the end. You gave the lad shame
and scandal. Do you think, he didn’t feel it, was it much or little? He
wasn’t walking in the sun, but--”

“Mercy! Mercy!” broke in the old man, his hand before his eyes. He was
thinking of Mercy, his daughter, of the words she had said to him when
she died, “Set him in the sun, father, where God can find him,” and her
name now broke from his lips.

Soolsby misunderstood. “Ay, there’ll be mercy when right’s been done
Our Man, and not till then. I’ve held my tongue for half a lifetime, but
I’ll speak now and bring him back. Ay, he shall come back and take
the place that is his, and all that belongs to him. That lordship
yonder--let him go out into the world and make his place as the Egyptian
did. He’s had his chance to help Our Man, and he has only hurt, not
helped him. We’ve had enough of his second-best lordship and his ways.”

The old man’s face was painful in its stricken stillness now. He had
regained control of himself, his brain had recovered greatly from its
first suffusion of excitement.

“How does thee know my lord yonder has hurt and not helped him?” he
asked in an even voice, his lips tightening, however. “How does thee
know it surely?”

“From Kate Heaver, my lady’s maid. My lady’s illness--what was it?
Because she would help Our Man, and, out of his hatred, yonder second
son said that to her which no woman can bear that’s a true woman; and
then, what with a chill and fever, she’s been yonder ailing these weeks
past. She did what she could for him, and her husband did what he could
against him.”

The old man settled back in his chair again. “Thee has kept silent all
these years? Thee has never told any that lives?”

“I gave my word to her that died--to our Egyptian’s mother--that I would
never speak unless you gave me leave to speak, or if you should die
before me. It was but a day before the lad was born. So have I kept my
word. But now you shall speak. Ay, then, but you shall speak, or I’ll
break my word to her, to do right by her son. She herself would speak
if she was here, and I’ll answer her, if ever I see her after Purgatory,
for speaking now.”

The old man drew himself up in his chair as though in pain, and said
very slowly, almost thickly: “I shall answer also for all I did. The
spirit moved me. He is of my blood--his mother was dead--in his veins
is the blood that runs in mine. His father--aristocrat, spendthrift,
adventurer, renegade, who married her in secret, and left her, bidding
her return to me, until he came again, and she to bear him a child--was
he fit to bring up the boy?”

He breathed heavily, his face became wan and haggard, as he continued:
“Restless on land or sea, for ever seeking some new thing, and when he
found it, and saw what was therein, he turned away forgetful. God put it
into my heart to abjure him and the life around him. The Voice made me
rescue the child from a life empty and bare and heartless and proud.
When he returned, and my child was in her grave, he came to me in
secret; he claimed the child of that honest lass whom he had married
under a false name. I held my hand lest I should kill him, man of peace
as I am. Even his father--Quaker though he once became--did we not know
ere the end that he had no part or lot with us, that he but experimented
with his soul, as with all else? Experiment--experiment--experiment,
until at last an Eglington went exploring in my child’s heart, and sent
her to her grave--the God of Israel be her rest and refuge! What should
such high-placed folk do stooping out of their sphere to us who walk in
plain paths? What have we in common with them? My soul would have none
of them--masks of men, the slaves of riches and titles, and tyrants over
the poor.”

His voice grew hoarse and high, and his head bent forward. He spoke as
though forgetful of Soolsby’s presence: “As the East is from the West,
so were we separate from these lovers of this world, the self-indulgent,
the hard-hearted, the proud. I chose for the child that he should stay
with me and not go to him, to remain among his own people and his own
class. He was a sinister, an evil man. Was the child to be trusted with
him?”

“The child was his own child,” broke in Soolsby. “Your daughter was his
lady--the Countess of Eglington! Not all the Quakers in heaven or earth
could alter that. His first-born son is Earl of Eglington, and has been
so these years past; and you, nor his second-best lordship there, nor
all the courts in England can alter that.... Ay, I’ve kept my peace,
but I will speak out now. I was with the Earl--James Fetherdon he called
himself--when he married her that’s gone to heaven, if any ever went to
heaven; and I can prove all. There’s proof aplenty, and ‘tis a pity,
ay, God’s pity! that ‘twas not used long ago. Well I knew, as the years
passed, that the Earl’s heart was with David, but he had not the courage
to face it all, so worn away was the man in him. Ah, if the lad had
always been with him--who can tell?--he might have been different!
Whether so or not, it was the lad’s right to take his place his mother
gave him, let be whatever his father was. ‘Twas a cruel thing done to
him. His own was his own, to run his race as God A’mighty had laid the
hurdles, not as Luke Claridge willed. I’m sick of seeing yonder fellow
in Our Man’s place, he that will not give him help, when he may; he that
would see him die like a dog in the desert, brother or no brother--”

“He does not know--Lord Eglington does not know the truth?” interposed
the old man in a heavy whisper. “He does not know, but, if he knew,
would it matter to him! So much the more would he see Our Man die yonder
in the sands. I know the breed. I know him yonder, the skim-milk lord.
There is no blood of justice, no milk of kindness in him. Do you think
his father that I friended in this thing--did he ever give me a penny,
or aught save that hut on the hill that was not worth a pound a year?
Did he ever do aught to show that he remembered?--Like father like son.
I wanted naught. I held my peace, not for him, but for her--for the
promise I made her when she smiled at me and said: ‘If I shouldn’t
be seeing thee again, Soolsby, remember; and if thee can ever prove a
friend to the child that is to be, prove it.’ And I will prove it now.
He must come back to his own. Right’s right, and I will have it so. More
brains you may have, and wealth you have, but not more common sense than
any common man like me. If the spirit moved you to hold your peace, it
moves me to make you speak. With all your meek face you’ve been a hard,
stiff-necked man, a tyrant too, and as much an aristocrat to such as
me as any lord in the land. But I’ve drunk the mug of silence to the
bottom. I’ve--” He stopped short, seeing a strange look come over the
other’s face, then stepped forward quickly as the old man half rose from
his chair, murmuring thickly:

“Mercy--David, my lord, come--!” he muttered, and staggered, and fell
into Soolsby’s arms.

His head dropped forward on his breast, and with a great sigh he sank
into unconsciousness. Soolsby laid him on a couch, and ran to the door
and called aloud for help.

       ..........................

The man of silence was silent indeed now. In the room where paralysis
had fallen on him a bed was brought, and he lay nerveless on the verge
of a still deeper silence. The hours went by. His eyes opened, he saw
and recognised them all, but his look rested only on Faith and Soolsby;
and, as time went on, these were the only faces to which he gave an
answering look of understanding. Days wore away, but he neither spoke
nor moved.

People came and went softly, and he gave no heed. There was ever a
trouble in his eyes when they were open. Only when Soolsby came did it
seem to lessen. Faith saw this, and urged Soolsby to sit by him. She had
questioned much concerning what had happened before the stroke fell,
but Soolsby said only that the old man had been greatly troubled about
David. Once Lady Eglington, frail and gentle and sympathetic, came, but
the trouble deepened in his eyes, and the lids closed over them, so that
he might not see her face.

When she had gone, Soolsby, who had been present and had interpreted the
old man’s look according to a knowledge all his own, came over to the
bed, leaned down and whispered: “I will speak now.”

Then the eyes opened, and a smile faintly flickered at the mouth.

“I will speak now,” Soolsby said again into the old man’s ear.



CHAPTER XXV. THE VOICE THROUGH THE DOOR

That night Soolsby tapped at the door of the lighted laboratory of the
Cloistered House where Lord Eglington was at work; opened it, peered in,
and stepped inside.

With a glass retort in his hand Eglington faced him. “What’s this--what
do you want?” he demanded.

“I want to try an experiment,” answered Soolsby grimly.

“Ah, a scientific turn!” rejoined Eglington coolly--looking at him
narrowly, however. He was conscious of danger of some kind.

Then for a minute neither spoke. Now that Soolsby had come to the moment
for which he had waited for so many years, the situation was not what he
had so often prefigured. The words he had chosen long ago were gone from
his memory; in his ignorance of what had been a commonplace to Soolsby’s
dark reflection so long, the man he had meant to bring low stood up
before him on his own ground, powerful and unabashed.

Eglington wore a blue smock, and over his eyes was a green shade
to protect them from the light, but they peered sharply out at the
chair-maker, and were boldly alive to the unexpected. He was no physical
coward, and, in any case, what reason had he for physical fear in the
presence of this man weakened by vice and age? Yet ever since he was a
boy there had existed between them an antagonism which had shown itself
in many ways. There had ever been something sinister in Soolsby’s
attitude to his father and himself.

Eglington vaguely knew that now he was to face some trial of mind and
nerve, but with great deliberation he continued dropping liquid from a
bottle into the glass retort he carried, his eyes, however, watchful of
his visitor, who involuntarily stared around the laboratory.

It was fifteen years since Soolsby had been in this room; and then he
had faced this man’s father with a challenge on his tongue such as he
meant to speak now. The smell of the chemicals, the carboys filled with
acids, the queer, tapering glasses with engraved measurements showing
against the coloured liquids, the great blue bottles, the mortars and
pestles, the microscopic instruments--all brought back the far-off,
acrid scene between the late Earl and himself. Nothing had changed,
except that now there were wires which gave out hissing sparks,
electrical instruments invented since the earlier day; except that this
man, gently dropping acids into the round white bottle upon a crystal
which gave off musty fumes, was bolder, stronger, had more at stake than
the other.

Slowly Eglington moved back to put the retort on a long table against
the wall, and Soolsby stepped forward till he stood where the electric
sparks were gently hissing about him. Now Eglington leaned against the
table, poured some alcohol on his fingers to cleanse the acid from them,
and wiped them with a piece of linen, while he looked inquiringly at
Soolsby. Still, Soolsby did not speak. Eglington lit a cigarette, and
took away the shade from his eyes.

“Well, now, what is your experiment?” he asked, “and why bring it here?
Didn’t you know the way to the stables or the scullery?”

“I knew my way better here,” answered Soolsby, steadying himself.

“Ah, you’ve been here often?” asked Eglington nonchalantly, yet feeling
for the cause of this midnight visit.

“It is fifteen years since I was here, my lord. Then I came to see the
Earl of Eglington.”

“And so history repeats itself every fifteen years! You came to see
the Earl of Eglington then; you come to see the Earl of Eglington
again--after fifteen years!”

“I come to speak with him that’s called the Earl of Eglington.”

Eglington’s eyes half closed, as though the light hurt them. “That
sounds communistic, or is it pure Quakerism? I believe they used to call
my father Friend Robert till he backslided. But you are not a Quaker,
Soolsby, so why be too familiar? Or is it merely the way of the old
family friend?”

“I knew your father before you were born, my lord--he troosted me then.”

“So long? And fifteen years ago--here?” He felt a menace, vague and
penetrating. His eyes were hard and cruel.

“It wasn’t a question of troost then; ‘twas one of right or
wrong--naught else.”

“Ah--and who was right, and what was wrong?” At that moment there came
a tap at the door leading into the living part of the house, and the
butler entered. “The doctor--he has used up all his oxygen, my lord. He
begs to know if you can give him some for Mr. Claridge. Mr. Claridge is
bad to-night.”

A sinister smile passed over Eglington’s face. “Who brings the message,
Garry?”

“A servant--Miss Claridge’s, my lord.”

An ironical look came into Eglington’s eyes; then they softened a
little. In a moment he placed a jar of oxygen in the butler’s hands.

“My compliments to Miss Claridge, and I am happy to find my laboratory
of use at last to my neighbours,” he said, and the door closed upon the
man.

Then he came back thoughtfully. Soolsby had not moved.

“Do you know what oxygen’s for, Soolsby?” he asked quizzically.

“No, my lord, I’ve never heerd tell of it.”

“Well, if you brought the top of Ben Lomond to the bottom of a
coal-mine--breath to the breathless--that’s it.

“You’ve been doing that to Mr. Claridge, my lord?”

“A little oxygen more or less makes all the difference to a man--it
probably will to neighbour Claridge, Soolsby; and so I’ve done him a
good turn.”

A grim look passed over Soolsby’s face. “It’s the first, I’m thinking,
my lord, and none too soon; and it’ll be the last, I’m thinking, too.
It’s many a year since this house was neighbourly to that.”

Eglington’s eyes almost closed, as he studied the other’s face; then he
said: “I asked you a little while ago who was right and what was wrong
when you came to see my father here fifteen years ago. Well?”

Suddenly a thought flashed into his eyes, and it seemed to course
through his veins like some anaesthetic, for he grew very still, and a
minute passed before he added quietly: “Was it a thing between my father
and Luke Claridge? There was trouble--well, what was it?” All at once
he seemed to rise above the vague anxiety that possessed him, and he
fingered inquiringly a long tapering glass of acids on the bench beside
him. “There’s been so much mystery, and I suppose it was nothing, after
all. What was it all about? Or do you know--eh? Fifteen years ago you
came to see my father, and now you have come to see me--all in the light
o’ the moon, as it were; like a villain in a play. Ah, yes, you said
it was to make an experiment--yet you didn’t know what oxygen was! It’s
foolish making experiments, unless you know what you are playing with,
Soolsby. See, here are two glasses.” He held them up. “If I poured one
into the other, we’d have an experiment--and you and I would be picked
up in fragments and carried away in a basket. And that wouldn’t be a
successful experiment, Soolsby.”

“I’m not so sure of that, my lord. Some things would be put right then.”

“H’m, there would be a new Under-Secretary for Foreign Affairs, and--”

“And Claridge Pasha would come back from Egypt, my lord,” was the sharp
interjection. Suddenly Soolsby’s anger flared up, his hands twitched.
“You had your chance to be a friend to him, my lord. You promised
her yonder at the Red Mansion that you would help him--him that never
wronged you, him you always wronged, and you haven’t lifted hand to help
him in his danger. A moment since you asked me who was right and what
was wrong. You shall know. If you had treated him right, I’d have held
my peace, and kept my word to her that’s gone these thirty-odd years.
I’ll hold it no more, and so I told Luke Claridge. I’ve been silent, but
not for your father’s sake or yours, for he was as cruel as you, with no
heart, and a conscience like a pin’s head, not big enough for use... Ay,
you shall know. You are no more the Earl of Eglington than me.

“The Earl of Eglington is your elder brother, called David Claridge.”

As Soolsby’s words poured forth passionately, weighty, Eglington
listened like one in a dream. Since this man entered the laboratory
fifty reasons for his coming had flashed across his mind; he had
prepared himself at many corners for defence, he had rallied every
mental resource, he had imagined a dozen dangerous events which his
father and Luke Claridge shared--with the balance against his father;
but this thing was beyond all speculation. Yet on the instant the words
were said he had a conviction of their inevitable truth. Even as they
were uttered, kaleidoscopic memories rushed in, and David’s face,
figure, personal characteristics, flashed before him. He saw, he felt,
the likeness to his father and himself; a thousand things were explained
that could only be explained by this fatal fact launched at him without
warning. It was as though, fully armed for his battle of life, he had
suddenly been stripped of armour and every weapon, and left naked on
the field. But he had the mind of the gamester, and the true gamester’s
self-control. He had taken chances so often that the tornado of ill-luck
left him standing.

“What proof have you?” he asked quietly. Soolsby’s explicit answer left
no ground for doubt. He had not asked the question with any idea of
finding gaps in the evidence, but rather to find if there were a chance
for resistance, of escape, anywhere. The marriage certificate existed;
identification of James Fetherdon with his father could be established
by Soolsby and Luke Claridge.

Soolsby and Luke Claridge! Luke Claridge--he could not help but smile
cynically, for he was composed and calculating now. A few minutes ago
he had sent a jar of oxygen to keep Luke Claridge alive! But for it one
enemy to his career, to his future, would be gone. He did not shrink
from the thought. Born a gentleman, there were in him some degenerate
characteristics which heart could not drown or temperament refine.
Selfishness was inwoven with every fibre of his nature.

Now, as he stood with eyes fixed on Soolsby, the world seemed to narrow
down to this laboratory. It was a vacuum where sensation was suspended,
and the million facts of ordinary existence disappeared into inactivity.
There was a fine sense of proportion in it all. Only the bare essential
things that concerned him remained: David Claridge was the Earl of
Eglington, this man before him knew, Luke Claridge knew; and there was
one thing yet to know! When he spoke his voice showed no excitement--the
tones were even, colourless.

“Does he know?” In these words he acknowledged that he believed the tale
told him.

Soolsby had expected a different attitude; he was not easier in mind
because his story had not been challenged. He blindly felt working in
the man before him a powerful mind, more powerful because it faced the
truth unflinchingly; but he knew that this did not mean calm acceptance
of the consequences. He, not Eglington, was dazed and embarrassed, was
not equal to the situation. He moved uneasily, changed his position.

“Does he know?” Eglington questioned again quietly. There was no need
for Eglington to explain who he was.

“Of course he does not know--I said so. If he knew, do you think he’d be
in Egypt and you here, my lord?”

Eglington was very quiet. His intellect more than his passions were now
at work.

“I am not sure. You never can tell. This might not mean much to him. He
has got his work cut out; he wasn’t brought up to this. What he has done
is in line with the life he has lived as a pious Quaker. What good would
it do to bring him back? I have been brought up to it; I am used to it;
I have worked things out ‘according to the state of life to which I was
called.’ Take what I’ve always had away from me, and I am crippled; give
him what he never had, and it doesn’t work into his scheme. It would
do him no good and me harm--Where’s the use? Besides, I am still my
father’s son. Don’t you see how unreasonable you are? Luke Claridge was
right. He knew that he and his belonged to a different sphere. He didn’t
speak. Why do you speak now after all these years when we are all set in
our grooves? It’s silly to disturb us, Soolsby.”

The voice was low, persuasive, and searching; the mind was working as it
had never worked before, to achieve an end by peaceful means, when war
seemed against him. And all the time he was fascinated by the fact that
Soolsby’s hand was within a few inches of a live electric wire, which,
if he touched, would probably complete “the experiment” he had come
to make; and what had been the silence of a generation would continue
indefinitely. It was as though Fate had deliberately tempted him and
arranged the necessary conditions, for Soolsby’s feet were in a little
pool of liquid which had been spilled on the floor--the experiment was
exact and real.

For minutes he had watched Soolsby’s hand near the wire-had watched as
he talked, and his talk was his argument for non-interference against
warning the man who had come to destroy him and his career. Why had Fate
placed that hand so near the wire there, and provided the other perfect
conditions for tragedy? Why should he intervene? It would never have
crossed his mind to do Soolsby harm, yet here, as the man’s arm was
stretched out to strike him, Fate offered an escape. Luke Claridge was
stricken with paralysis, no doubt would die; Soolsby alone stood in his
way.

“You see, Soolsby, it has gone on too long,” he added, in a low,
penetrating tone. “It would be a crime to alter things now. Give him the
earldom and the estates, and his work in Egypt goes to pieces; he will
be spoiled for all he wants to do. I’ve got my faults, but, on the
whole, I’m useful, and I play my part here, as I was born to it, as well
as most. Anyhow, it’s no robbery for me to have what has been mine by
every right except the accident of being born after him. I think you’ll
see that you will do a good thing to let it all be. Luke Claridge, if
he was up and well, wouldn’t thank you for it--have you got any right to
give him trouble, too? Besides, I’ve saved his life to-night, and... and
perhaps I might save yours, Soolsby, if it was in danger.”

Soolsby’s hand had moved slightly. It was only an inch from the wire.
For an instant the room was terribly still.

An instant, and it might be too late. An instant, and Soolsby would be
gone. Eglington watched the hand which had been resting on the table
turn slowly over to the wire. Why should he intervene? Was it his
business? This thing was not his doing. Destiny had laid the train of
circumstance and accident, and who was stronger than Destiny? In spite
of himself his eyes fixed themselves on Soolsby’s hand. It was but a
hair’s breadth from the wire. The end would come now. Suddenly a voice
was heard outside the door. “Eglington!” it called.

Soolsby started, his hand drew spasmodically away from the wire, and he
stepped back quickly.

The door opened, and Hylda entered.

“Mr. Claridge is dead, Eglington,” she said. Destiny had decided.



CHAPTER XXVI. “I OWE YOU NOTHING”

Beside the grave under the willow-tree another grave had been made.
It was sprinkled with the fallen leaves of autumn. In the Red Mansion
Faith’s delicate figure moved forlornly among relics of an austere,
beloved figure vanished from the apricot-garden and the primitive
simplicity of wealth combined with narrow thought.

Since her father’s death, the bereaved girl had been occupied by matters
of law and business, by affairs of the estate; but the first pressure
was over, long letters had been written to David which might never reach
him; and now, when the strain was withdrawn, the gentle mind was lost in
a grey mist of quiet suffering. In Hamley there were but two in whom she
had any real comfort and help--Lady Eglington and the old chair-maker.
Of an afternoon or evening one or the other was to be seen in the long
high-wainscoted room, where a great fire burned, or in the fruitless
garden where the breeze stirred the bare branches.

Almost as deep a quiet brooded in the Cloistered House as in the home
where mourning enjoined movement in a minor key. Hylda had not recovered
wholly from the illness which had stricken her down on that day in
London when she had sought news of David from Eglington, at such cost to
her peace and health and happiness. Then had come her slow convalescence
in Hamley, and long days of loneliness, in which Eglington seemed to
retreat farther and farther from her inner life. Inquiries had poured in
from friends in town, many had asked to come and see her; flowers came
from one or two who loved her benignly, like Lord Windlehurst; and now
and then she had some cheerful friend with her who cared for music or
could sing; and then the old home rang; but she was mostly alone, and
Eglington was kept in town by official business the greater part of each
week. She did not gain strength as quickly as she ought to have done,
and this was what brought the Duchess of Snowdon down on a special
mission one day of early November.

Ever since the night she had announced Luke Claridge’s death to
Eglington, had discovered Soolsby with him, had seen the look in her
husband’s face and caught the tension of the moment on which she had
broken, she had been haunted by a hovering sense of trouble. What had
Soolsby been doing in the laboratory at that time of night? What was the
cause of this secret meeting? All Hamley knew--she had long known--how
Luke Claridge had held the Cloistered House in abhorrence, and she knew
also that Soolsby worshipped David and Faith, and, whatever the cause
of the family antipathy, championed it. She was conscious of a shadow
somewhere, and behind it all was the name of David’s father, James
Fetherdon. That last afternoon when she had talked with him, and he had
told her of his life, she had recalled the name as one she had seen or
heard, and it had floated into her mind at last that she had seen it
among the papers and letters of the late Countess of Eglington.

As the look in Eglington’s face the night she came upon him and Soolsby
in the laboratory haunted her, so the look in her own face had haunted
Soolsby. Her voice announcing Luke Claridge’s death had suddenly opened
up a new situation to him. It stunned him; and afterwards, as he saw
Hylda with Faith in the apricot-garden, or walking in the grounds of the
Cloistered House hour after hour alone or with her maid, he became vexed
by a problem greater than had yet perplexed him. It was one thing to
turn Eglington out of his lands and home and title; it was another thing
to strike this beautiful being, whose smile had won him from the first,
whose voice, had he but known, had saved his life. Perhaps the truth in
some dim way was conveyed to him, for he came to think of her a little
as he thought of Faith.

Since the moment when he had left the laboratory and made his way to the
Red Mansion, he and Eglington had never met face to face; and he avoided
a meeting. He was not a blackmailer, he had no personal wrongs to
avenge, he had not sprung the bolt of secrecy for evil ends; and when
he saw the possible results of his disclosure, he was unnerved. His mind
had seen one thing only, the rights of “Our Man,” the wrong that had
been done him and his mother; but now he saw how the sword of justice,
which he had kept by his hand these many years, would cut both ways.
His mind was troubled, too, that he had spoken while yet Luke Claridge
lived, and so broken his word to Mercy Claridge. If he had but waited
till the old man died--but one brief half-hour--his pledge would have
been kept. Nothing had worked out wholly as he expected. The heavens had
not fallen. The “second-best lordship” still came and went, the wheels
went round as usual. There was no change; yet, as he sat in his hut and
looked down into the grounds of the Cloistered House, he kept saying to
himself.

“It had to be told. It’s for my lord now. He knows the truth. I’ll wait
and see. It’s for him to do right by Our Man that’s beyond and away.”

The logic and fairness of this position, reached after much thinking,
comforted him. He had done his duty so far. If, in the end, the
“second-best lordship” failed to do his part, hid the truth from the
world, refused to do right by his half-brother, the true Earl, then
would be time to act again. Also he waited for word out of Egypt; and he
had a superstitious belief that David would return, that any day might
see him entering the door of the Red Mansion.

Eglington himself was haunted by a spectre which touched his elbow by
day, and said: “You are not the Earl of Eglington,” and at night laid
a clammy finger on his forehead, waking him, and whispering in his ear:
“If Soolsby had touched the wire, all would now be well!” And as deep as
thought and feeling in him lay, he felt that Fate had tricked
him--Fate and Hylda. If Hylda had not come at that crucial instant, the
chairmaker’s but on the hill would be empty. Why had not Soolsby told
the world the truth since? Was the man waiting to see what course he
himself would take? Had the old chair-maker perhaps written the truth to
the Egyptian--to his brother David.

His brother! The thought irritated every nerve in him. No note of
kindness or kinship or blood stirred in him. If, before, he had
had innate antagonism and a dark, hovering jealousy, he had a black
repugnance now--the antipathy of the lesser to the greater nature, of
the man in the wrong to the man in the right.

And behind it all was the belief that his wife had set David above
him--by how much or in what fashion he did not stop to consider; but it
made him desire that death and the desert would swallow up his father’s
son and leave no trace behind.

Policy? His work in the Foreign Office now had but one policy so far
as Egypt was concerned. The active sophistry in him made him advocate
non-intervention in Egyptian affairs as diplomatic wisdom, though it was
but personal purpose; and he almost convinced himself that he was acting
from a national stand-point. Kaid and Claridge Pasha pursued their
course of civilisation in the Soudan, and who could tell what danger
might not bring forth? If only Soolsby held his peace yet a while!

Did Faith know? Luke Claridge was gone without speaking, but had Soolsby
told Faith? How closely had he watched the faces round him at Luke
Claridge’s funeral, to see if they betrayed any knowledge!

Anxious days had followed that night in the laboratory. His boundless
egotism had widened the chasm between Hylda and himself, which had been
made on the day when she fell ill in London, with Lacey’s letter in
her hand. It had not grown less in the weeks that followed. He nursed
a grievance which had, so far as he knew, no foundation in fact; he was
vaguely jealous of a man--his brother--thousands of miles away; he was
not certain how far Hylda had pierced the disguise of sincerity which he
himself had always worn, or how far she understood him. He thought that
she shrank from what she had seen of his real self, much or little, and
he was conscious of so many gifts and abilities and attractive personal
qualities that he felt a sense of injury. Yet what would his position
be without her? Suppose David should return and take the estates and
titles, and suppose that she should close her hand upon her fortune and
leave him, where would he be?

He thought of all this as he sat in his room at the Foreign Office
and looked over St. James’s Park, his day’s work done. He was suddenly
seized by a new-born anxiety, for he had been so long used to the open
purse and the unchecked stream of gold, had taken it so much as a matter
of course, as not to realise the possibility of its being withdrawn.
He was conscious of a kind of meanness and ugly sordidness in the
suggestion; but the stake--his future, his career, his position in the
world--was too high to allow him to be too chivalrous. His sense of the
real facts was perverted. He said to himself that he must be practical.

Moved by the new thought, he seized a time-table and looked up the
trains. He had been ten days in town, receiving every morning a little
note from Hylda telling of what she had done each day; a calm, dutiful
note, written without pretence, and out of a womanly affection with
which she surrounded the man who, it seemed once--such a little while
ago--must be all in all to her. She had no element of pretence in her.
What she could give she gave freely, and it was just what it appeared to
be. He had taken it all as his due, with an underlying belief that, if
he chose to make love to her again, he could blind her to all else in
the world. Hurt vanity and egotism and jealousy had prevented him from
luring her back to that fine atmosphere in which he had hypnotised her
so few years ago. But suddenly, as he watched the swans swimming in the
pond below, a new sense of approaching loss, all that Hylda had meant
in his march and progress, came upon him; and he hastened to return to
Hamley.

Getting out of the train at Heddington, he made up his mind to walk home
by the road that David had taken on his return from Egypt, and he left
word at the station that he would send for his luggage.

His first objective was Soolsby’s hut, and, long before he reached it,
darkness had fallen. From a light shining through the crack of the blind
he knew that Soolsby was at home. He opened the door and entered without
knocking. Soolsby was seated at a table, a map and a newspaper spread
out before him. Egypt and David, always David and Egypt!

Soolsby got to his feet slowly, his eyes fixed inquiringly on his
visitor.

“I didn’t knock,” said Eglington, taking off his greatcoat and reaching
for a chair; then added, as he seated himself: “Better sit down,
Soolsby.”

After a moment he continued: “Do you mind my smoking?”

Soolsby did not reply, but sat down again. He watched Eglington light a
cigar and stretch out his hands to the wood fire with an air of comfort.

A silence followed. Eglington appeared to forget the other’s presence,
and to occupy himself with thoughts that glimmered in the fire.

At last Soolsby said moodily: “What have you come for, my lord?”

“Oh, I am my lord still, am I?” Eglington returned lazily. “Is it a
genealogical tree you are studying there?” He pointed to the map.

“I’ve studied your family tree with care, as you should know, my lord;
and a map of Egypt”--he tapped the parchment before him--“goes well with
it. And see, my lord, Egypt concerns you too. Lord Eglington is there,
and ‘tis time he was returning-ay, ‘tis time.”

There was a baleful look in Soolsby’s eyes. Whatever he might think,
whatever considerations might arise at other times, a sinister feeling
came upon him when Eglington was with him.

“And, my lord,” he went on, “I’d be glad to know that you’ve sent for
him, and told him the truth.”

“Have you?” Eglington flicked the ash from his cigar, speaking coolly.

Soolsby looked at him with his honest blue eyes aflame, and answered
deliberately: “I was not for taking your place, my lord. ‘Twas my duty
to tell you, but the rest was between you and the Earl of Eglington.”

“That was thoughtful of you, Soolsby. And Miss Claridge?”

“I told you that night, my lord, that only her father and myself knew;
and what was then is now.”

A look of relief stole across Eglington’s face. “Of course--of course.
These things need a lot of thought, Soolsby. One must act with care--no
haste, no flurry, no mistakes.”

“I would not wait too long, my lord, or be too careful.” There was
menace in the tone.

“But if you go at things blind, you’re likely to hurt where you don’t
mean to hurt. When you’re mowing in a field by a school-house, you must
look out for the children asleep in the grass. Sometimes the longest way
round is the shortest way home.”

“Do you mean to do it or not, my lord? I’ve left it to you as a
gentleman.”

“It’s going to upset more than you think, Soolsby. Suppose he, out
there in Egypt”--he pointed again to the map--“doesn’t thank me for the
information. Suppose he says no, and--”

“Right’s right. Give him the chance, my lord. How can you know, unless
you tell him the truth?”

“Do you like living, Soolsby?”

“Do you want to kill me, my lord?”

There was a dark look in Eglington’s face. “But answer me, do you want
to live?”

“I want to live long enough to see the Earl of Eglington in his own
house.”

“Well, I’ve made that possible. The other night when you were telling me
your little story, you were near sending yourself into eternity--as
near as I am knocking this ash off my cigar.” His little finger almost
touched the ash. “Your hand was as near touching a wire charged with
death. I saw it. It would have been better for me if you had gone; but I
shut off the electricity. Suppose I hadn’t, could I have been blamed?
It would have been an accident. Providence did not intervene; I did. You
owe me something, Soolsby.”

Soolsby stared at him almost blindly for a moment. A mist was before his
eyes; but through the mist, though he saw nothing of this scene in
which he now was, he saw the laboratory, and himself and Eglington, and
Eglington’s face as it peered at him, and, just before the voice called
outside, Eglington’s eyes fastened on his hand. It all flashed upon him
now, and he saw himself starting back at the sound of the voice.

Slowly he got up now, went to the door, and opened it. “My lord, it is
not true,” he said. “You have not spoken like a gentleman. It was
my lady’s voice that saved me. This is my castle, my lord--you lodge
yonder.” He pointed down into the darkness where the lights of the
village shone. “I owe you nothing. I pay my debts. Pay yours, my lord,
to him that’s beyond and away.”

Eglington kept his countenance as he drew on his great-coat and slowly
passed from the house.

“I ought to have let you die, Soolsby. Y’ou’ll think better of this
soon. But it’s quite right to leave the matter to me. It may take a
little time, but everything will come right. Justice shall be done.
Well, good night, Soolsby. You live too much alone, and imagination is a
bad thing for the lonely. Good night-good night.”

Going down the hill quickly, he said to himself: “A sort of second sight
he had about that wire. But time is on my side, time and the Soudan--and
‘The heathen in his blindness....’ I will keep what is mine. I will keep
it!”



CHAPTER XXVII. THE AWAKENING

In her heart of hearts Hylda had not greatly welcomed the Duchess of
Snowdon to Hamley. There was no one whose friendship she prized more;
but she was passing through a phase of her life when she felt that
she was better apart, finding her own path by those intuitions and
perceptions which belonged to her own personal experience. She vaguely
felt, what all realise sooner or later, that we must live our dark hours
alone.

Yet the frank downright nature of the once beautiful, now faded,
Duchess, the humorous glimmer in the pale-blue eyes, the droll irony
and dry truth of her speech, appealed to Hylda, made her smile a warm
greeting when she would rather have been alone. For, a few days before,
she had begun a quest which had absorbed her, fascinated her. The miner,
finding his way across the gap of a reef to pick up the vein of quartz
at some distant and uncertain point, could not have been more lost
to the world than was the young wife searching for a family skeleton,
indefinitely embodied in her imagination by the name, James Fetherdon.

Pile after pile of papers and letters of the late Earl and his Countess
had passed through her hands from chaos to order. As she had read, hour
after hour, the diaries of the cold, blue-eyed woman, Sybil Eglington,
who had lived without love of either husband or son, as they, in turn,
lived without love of each other, she had been overwhelmed by the
revelation of a human heart, whose powers of expression were smothered
by a shy and awkward temperament. The late Countess’s letters were the
unclothing of a heart which had never expanded to the eyes of those
whose love would have broken up a natural reserve, which became at last
a proud coldness, and gave her a reputation for lack of feeling that she
carried to her grave.

In the diaries which Hylda unearthed--the Countess had died
suddenly--was the muffled cry of a soul tortured through different
degrees of misunderstanding; from the vague pain of suffered
indifference, of being left out of her husband’s calculations, to the
blank neglect narrowing her life down to a tiny stream of duty, which
was finally lost in the sands. She had died abroad, and alone, save for
her faithful maid, who, knowing the chasm that lay between her mistress
and her lord, had brought her letters and papers back to the Cloistered
House, and locked them away with all the other papers and correspondence
which the Countess had accumulated.

Among these papers was a letter to the late Lord Eglington written the
day before she died. In the haste and confusion ensuing on her death,
the maid had not seen it. It had never reached his hands, but lay in a
pocket of the dead woman’s writing-portfolio, which Hylda had explored
without discovering. Only a few hours, however, before the Duchess
of Snowdon came, Hylda had found again an empty envelope on which was
written the name, James Fetherdon. The writing on the envelope was that
of Sybil Lady Eglington.

When she discovered the envelope, a sense of mystery and premonition
possessed her. What was the association between the Countess of
Eglington and James Fetherdon, the father of David Claridge? In vain she
searched among the voluminous letters and papers, for it would seem that
the dead woman had saved every letter she received, and kept copies of
numberless letters she had written. But she had searched without avail.
Even the diaries, curiously frank and without reserve, never mentioned
the name, so far as she could find, though here and there were strange
allusive references, hints of a trouble that weighed her down, phrases
of exasperation and defiance. One phrase, or the idea in it, was,
however, much repeated in the diaries during the course of years, and
towards the last almost feverishly emphasised--“Why should I bear it for
one who would bear nothing for me, for his sake, who would do nothing
for my sake? Is it only the mother in me, not the love in me?”

These words were haunting Hylda’s brain when the telegram from the
Duchess of Snowdon came. They followed her to Heddington, whither she
went in the carriage to bring her visitor to Hamley, and kept repeating
themselves at the back of her mind through the cheerful rallying of the
Duchess, who spread out the wings of good-humour and motherly freedom
over her.

After all, it was an agreeable thing to be taken possession of, and “put
in her proper place,” as the Duchess said; made to understand that her
own affairs were not so important, after all; and that it was far more
essential to hear the charming gossip about the new and most popular
Princess of Wales, or the quarrel between Dickens and Thackeray. Yet,
after dinner, in the little sitting-room, where the Duchess, in a white
gown with great pink bows, fitter for a girl fresh from Confirmation,
and her cheeks with their fixed colour, which changed only at the
discretion of her maid, babbled of nothing that mattered, Hylda’s mind
kept turning to the book of life an unhappy woman had left behind her.
The sitting-room had been that of the late Countess also, and on the
wall was an oil-painting of her, stately and distant and not very
alluring, though the mouth had a sweetness which seemed unable to break
into a smile.

“What was she really like--that wasn’t her quite, was it?” asked Hylda,
at last, leaning her chin on the hand which held the ‘cello she had been
playing.

“Oh, yes, it’s Sybil Eglington, my dear, but done in wood; and she
wasn’t the graven image that makes her out to be. That’s as most people
saw her; as the fellow that painted her saw her; but she had another
side to her. She disapproved of me rather, because I was squeezing the
orange dry, and trying to find yesterday’s roses in to-morrow’s garden.
But she didn’t shut her door in my face--it’s hard to do that to a
Duchess; which is one of the few advantages of living naked in the
street, as it were, with only the strawberry leaves to clothe you. No,
Sybil Eglington was a woman who never had her chance. Your husband’s
forbears were difficult, my dear. They didn’t exactly draw you out.
She needed drawing out; and her husband drove her back into her corner,
where she sulked rather till she died--died alone at Wiesbaden, with
a German doctor, a stray curate, and a stuttering maid to wish her bon
voyage. Yet I fancy she went glad enough, for she had no memories, not
even an affaire to repent of, and to cherish. La, la! she wasn’t so
stupid, Sybil there, and she was an ornament to her own sex and the
despair of the other. His Serene Highness Heinrich of Saxe-Gunden
fancied the task of breaking that ice, and he was an adept and an
Apollo, but it broke his reputation instead.

“No doubt she is happy now. I shall probably never see!”

In spite of the poignant nature of the talk, Hylda could not but smile
at the last words.

“Don’t despair,” she rejoined; “one star differeth from another star in
glory, but that is no reason why they should not be on visiting terms.”

“My dear, you may laugh--you may laugh, but I am sixty-five, and I
am not laughing at the idea of what company I may be obliged to keep
presently. In any case I’m sure I shall not be comfortable. If I’m
where she is, I shall be dull; if I’m where her husband is, I’ll have
no reputation; and if there is one thing I want, it is a spotless
reputation--sometime.”

Hylda laughed--the manner and the voice were so droll--but her face
saddened too, and her big eyes with the drooping lashes looked up
pensively at the portrait of her husband’s mother.

“Was it ever a happy family, or a lucky family?” she asked.

“It’s lucky now, and it ought to be happy now,” was the meaning reply.

Hylda made no answer, but caught the strings of the ‘cello lightly,
and shook her head reprovingly, with a smile meant to be playful. For a
moment she played, humming to herself, and then the Duchess touched the
hand that was drawing the bow softly across the strings. She had behind
her garishness a gift for sympathy and a keen intuition, delicacy, and
allusiveness. She knew what to say and what to leave unsaid, when her
heart was moved.

“My darling,” she said now, “you are not quite happy; but that is
because you don’t allow yourself to get well. You’ve never recovered
from your attack last summer; and you won’t, until you come out into
the world again and see people. This autumn you ought to have been at
Homburg or at Aix, where you’d take a little cure of waters and a great
deal of cure of people. You were born to bask in friendship and the sun,
and to draw from the world as much as you deserve, a little from many,
for all you give in return. Because, dearest, you are a very agreeable
person, with enough wit and humanity to make it worth the world’s while
to conspire to make you do what will give it most pleasure, and let
yourself get most--and that’s why I’ve come.”

“What a person of importance I am!” answered Hylda, with a laugh that
was far from mirthful, though she caught the plump, wrinkled little hand
of the Duchess and pressed it. “But really I’m getting well here
fast. I’m very strong again. It is so restful, and one’s days go by so
quietly.”

“Yet, I’m not sure that it’s rest you want. I don’t think it is. You
want tonics--men and women and things. Monte Carlo would do you a world
of good--I’d go with you. Eglington gambles here”--she watched Hylda
closely--“why shouldn’t you gamble there?”

“Eglington gambles?” Hylda’s face took on a frightened look, then
it cleared again, and she smiled. “Oh, of course, with international
affairs, you mean. Well, I must stay here and be the croupier.”

“Nonsense! Eglington is his own croupier. Besides, he is so much in
London, and you so much here. You sit with the distaff; he throws the
dice.”

Hylda’s lips tightened a little. Her own inner life, what Eglington was
to her or she to Eglington, was for the ears of no human being, however
friendly. She had seen little of him of late, but in one sense that had
been a relief, though she would have done anything to make that feeling
impossible. His rather precise courtesy and consideration, when he
was with her, emphasised the distance between “the first fine careless
rapture” and this grey quiet. And, strange to say, though in the first
five years after the Cairo days and deeds, Egypt seemed an infinite
space away, and David a distant, almost legendary figure, now Egypt
seemed but beyond the door--as though, opening it, she would stand
near him who represented the best of all that she might be capable of
thinking. Yet all the time she longed for Eglington to come and say one
word, which would be like touching the lever of the sluice-gates of
her heart, to let loose the flood. As the space grew between her and
Eglington, her spirit trembled, she shrank back, because she saw that
sea towards which she was drifting.

As she did not answer the last words of the Duchess, the latter said
presently: “When do you expect Eglington?”

“Not till the week-end; it is a busy week with him,” Hylda answered;
then added hastily, though she had not thought of it till this moment:
“I shall probably go up to town with you to-morrow.”

She did not know that Eglington was already in the house, and had given
orders to the butler that she was not to be informed of his arrival for
the present.

“Well, if you get that far, will you come with me to the Riviera, or
to Florence, or Sicily--or Cairo?” the other asked, adjusting her
gold-brown wig with her babyish hands.

Cairo! Cairo! A light shot up into Hylda’s eyes. The Duchess had spoken
without thought, but, as she spoke, she watched the sudden change in
Hylda. What did it mean? Cairo--why should Cairo have waked her so?
Suddenly she recalled certain vague references of Lord Windlehurst, and,
for the first time, she associated Hylda with Claridge Pasha in a way
which might mean much, account for much, in this life she was leading.

“Perhaps! Perhaps!” answered Hylda abstractedly, after a moment.

The Duchess got to her feet. She had made progress. She would let her
medicine work.

“I’m going to bed, my dear. I’m sixty-five, and I take my sleep when I
can get it. Think it over, Sicily--Cairo!”

She left the room, saying to herself that Eglington was a fool, and
that danger was ahead. “But I hold a red light--poor darling!” she said
aloud, as she went up the staircase. She did not know that Eglington,
standing in a deep doorway, heard her, and seized upon the words eagerly
and suspiciously, and turned them over in his mind.

Below, at the desk where Eglington’s mother used to write, Hylda sat
with a bundle of letters before her. For some moments she opened,
glanced through them, and put them aside. Presently she sat back in her
chair, thinking--her mind was invaded by the last words of the Duchess;
and somehow they kept repeating themselves with the words in the late
Countess’s diary: “Is it only the mother in me, not the love in me?”
 Mechanically her hand moved over the portfolio of the late Countess, and
it involuntarily felt in one of its many pockets. Her hand came upon
a letter. This had remained when the others had been taken out. It was
addressed to the late Earl, and was open. She hesitated a moment, then,
with a strange premonition and a tightening of her heart-strings, she
spread it out and read it.

At first she could scarcely see because of the mist in her eyes; but
presently her sight cleared, and she read quickly, her cheeks burning
with excitement, her heart throbbing violently. The letter was the
last expression of a disappointed and barren life. The slow, stammering
tongue of an almost silent existence had found the fulness of speech.
The fountains of the deep had been broken up, and Sybil Eglington’s
repressed emotions, undeveloped passions, tortured by mortal sufferings,
and refined and vitalised by the atmosphere blown in upon her last hours
from the Hereafter, were set free, given voice and power at last.

The letter reviewed the life she had lived with her husband during
twenty-odd years, reproved herself for not speaking out and telling him
his faults at the beginning, and for drawing in upon herself, when she
might have compelled him to a truer understanding; and, when all
that was said, called him to such an account as only the dying might
make--the irrevocable, disillusionising truth which may not be altered,
the poignant record of failure and its causes.

   “... I could not talk well, I never could, as a girl,” the
   letter ran; “and you could talk like one inspired, and so
   speciously, so overwhelmingly, that I felt I could say nothing in
   disagreement, not anything but assent; while all the time I felt how
   hollow was so much you said--a cloak of words to cover up the real
   thought behind. Before I knew the truth, I felt the shadow of
   secrecy in your life. When you talked most, I felt you most
   secretive, and the feeling slowly closed the door upon all frankness
   and sympathy and open speech between us. I was always shy and self-
   conscious and self-centred, and thought little of myself; and I
   needed deep love and confidence and encouragement to give out what
   was in me. I gave nothing out, nothing to you that you wanted, or
   sought for, or needed. You were complete, self-contained. Harry,
   my beloved babe Harry, helped at first; but, as the years went on,
   he too began to despise me for my little intellect and slow
   intelligence, and he grew to be like you in all things--and
   secretive also, though I tried so hard to be to him what a mother
   should be. Oh, Bobby, Bobby--I used to call you that in the days
   before we were married, and I will call you that now when all is
   over and done--why did you not tell me all? Why did you not tell me
   that my boy, my baby Harry, was not your only child, that there had
   been another wife, and that your eldest son was alive?

   “I know all. I have known all for years. The clergyman who married
   you to Mercy Claridge was a distant relative of my mother’s, and
   before he died he told me. When you married her, he knew you only
   as James Fetherdon, but, years afterwards, he saw and recognised
   you. He held his peace then, but at last he came to me. And I did
   not speak. I was not strong enough, nor good enough, to face the
   trouble of it all. I could not endure the scandal, to see my own
   son take the second place--he is so brilliant and able and
   unscrupulous, like yourself; but, oh, so sure of winning a great
   place in the world, surer than yourself ever was, he is so
   calculating and determined and ambitious! And though he loves me
   little, as he loves you little, too, yet he is my son, and for what
   he is we are both responsible, one way or another; and I had not the
   courage to give him the second place, and the Quaker, David
   Claridge, the first place. Why Luke Claridge, his grandfather,
   chose the course he did, does not concern me, no more than why you
   chose secrecy, and kept your own firstborn legitimate son, of whom
   you might well be proud, a stranger to you and his rights all these
   years. Ah, Eglington, you never knew what love was, you never had
   a heart--experiment, subterfuge, secrecy, ‘reaping where you had
   not sowed, and gathering where you had not strawed.’ Always,
   experiment, experiment, experiment!

   “I shall be gone in a few hours--I feel it, but before I go I must
   try to do right, and to warn you. I have had such bad dreams about
   you and Harry--they haunt me--that I am sure you will suffer
   terribly, will have some awful tragedy, unless you undo what was
   done long ago, and tell the truth to the world, and give your titles
   and estates where they truly belong. Near to death, seeing how
   little life is, and how much right is in the end, I am sure that I
   was wrong in holding my peace; for Harry cannot prosper with this
   black thing behind him, and you cannot die happy if you smother up
   the truth. Night after night I have dreamed of you in your
   laboratory, a vague, dark, terrifying dream of you in that
   laboratory which I have hated so. It has always seemed to me the
   place where some native evil and cruelty in your blood worked out
   its will. I know I am an ignorant woman, with no brain, but God has
   given me clear sight at the last, and the things I see are true
   things, and I must warn you. Remember that....”

The letter ended there. She had been interrupted or seized with illness,
and had never finished it, and had died a few hours afterwards; and the
letter was now, for the first time, read by her whom it most concerned,
into whose heart and soul the words sank with an immitigable pain
and agonised amazement. A few moments with this death-document had
transformed Hylda’s life.

Her husband and--and David, were sons of the same father; and the
name she bore, the home in which she was living, the estates the title
carried, were not her husband’s, but another’s--David’s. She fell back
in her chair, white and faint, but, with a great effort, she conquered
the swimming weakness which blinded her. Sons of the same father! The
past flashed before her, the strange likeness she had observed, the
trick of the head, the laugh, the swift gesture, the something in the
voice. She shuddered as she had done in reading the letter. But they
were related only in name, in some distant, irreconcilable way--in a way
which did not warrant the sudden scarlet flush that flooded her face.
Presently she recovered herself. She--what did she suffer, compared
with her who wrote this revelation of a lifetime of pain, of bitter and
torturing knowledge! She looked up at the picture on the wall, at
the still, proud, emotionless face, the conventional, uninspired
personality, behind which no one had seen, which had agonised alone till
the last. With what tender yet pitiless hand had she laid bare the lives
of her husband and her son! How had the neglected mother told the bitter
truth of him to whom she had given birth! “So brilliant and able, and
unscrupulous, like yourself; but, oh, sure of winning a great place
in the world... so calculating and determined and ambitious.... That
laboratory which I have hated so. It has always seemed to me the
place where some native evil and cruelty in your blood worked out its
will....”

With a deep-drawn sigh Hylda said to herself: “If I were dying
to-morrow, would I say that? She loved them so--at first must have loved
them so; and yet this at the last! And I--oh, no, no, no!” She looked at
a portrait of Eglington on the table near, touched it caressingly, and
added, with a sob in her voice: “Oh, Harry, no, it is not true! It is
not native evil and cruelty in your blood. It has all been a mistake.
You will do right. We will do right, Harry. You will suffer, it will
hurt, the lesson will be hard--to give up what has meant so much to you;
but we will work it out together, you and I, my very dear. Oh, say that
we shall, that....” She suddenly grew silent. A tremor ran through her,
she became conscious of his presence near her, and turned, as though he
were behind her. There was nothing. Yet she felt him near, and, as she
did so, the soul-deep feeling with which she had spoken to the portrait
fled. Why was it that, so often, when absent from him, her imagination
helped her to make excuses for him, inspired her to press the real truth
out of sight, and to make believe that he was worthy of a love which,
but through some inner fault of her own, might be his altogether, and
all the love of which he was capable might be hers?

She felt him near her, and the feelings possessing her a moment before
slowly chilled and sank away. Instinctively her eyes glanced towards
the door. She saw the handle turn, and she slipped the letter inside the
portfolio again.

The door opened briskly now, and Eglington entered with what his enemies
in the newspaper press had called his “professional smile”--a criticism
which had angered his wife, chiefly because it was so near the truth.
He smiled. Smiling was part of his equipment, and was for any one at any
time that suited him.

Her eyes met his, and he noted in her something that he had never seen
before. Something had happened. The Duchess of Snowdon was in the house;
had it anything to do with her? Had she made trouble? There was trouble
enough without her. He came forward, took Hylda’s hand and kissed it,
then kissed her on the cheek. As he did so, she laid a hand on his arm
with a sudden impulse, and pressed it. Though his presence had chilled
the high emotions of a few moments before, yet she had to break to him
a truth which would hurt him, dismay him, rob his life of so much that
helped it; and a sudden protective, maternal sense was roused in her,
reached out to shelter him as he faced his loss and the call of duty.

“You have just come?” she said, in a voice that, to herself, seemed far
away.

“I have been here some hours,” he answered. Secrecy again--always
the thing that had chilled the dead woman, and laid a cold hand upon
herself--“I felt the shadow of secrecy in your life. When you talked
most I felt you most secretive, and the feeling slowly closed the door
upon all frankness and sympathy and open speech between us.”

“Why did you not see me--dine with me?” she asked. “What can
the servants think?” Even in such a crisis the little things had
place--habit struck its note in the presence of her tragedy.

“You had the Duchess of Snowdon, and we are not precisely congenial;
besides, I had much to do in the laboratory. I’m working for that new
explosive of which I told you. There’s fame and fortune in it, and I’m
on the way. I feel it coming”--his eyes sparkled a little. “I made it
right with the servants; so don’t be apprehensive.”

“I have not seen you for nearly a week. It doesn’t seem--friendly.”

“Politics and science are stern masters,” he answered gaily.

“They leave little time for your mistress,” she rejoined meaningly.

“Who is my mistress?”

“Well, I am not greatly your wife,” she replied. “I have the dregs of
your life. I help you--I am allowed to help you--so little, to share so
little in the things that matter to you.”

“Now, that’s imagination and misunderstanding,” he rejoined. “It has
helped immensely your being such a figure in society, and entertaining
so much, and being so popular, at any rate until very lately.”

“I do not misunderstand,” she answered gravely. “I do not share your
real life. I do not help you where your brain works, in the plans and
purposes and hopes that lie behind all that you do--oh, yes, I know your
ambitions and what positions you are aiming for; but there is something
more than that. There is the object of it all, the pulse of it, the
machinery down, down deep in your being that drives it all. Oh, I am not
a child! I have some intellect, and I want--I want that we should work
it out together.”

In spite of all that had come and gone, in spite of the dead mother’s
words and all her own convictions, seeing trouble coming upon him, she
wanted to make one last effort for what might save their lives--her
life--from shipwreck in the end. If she failed now, she foresaw a
bitter, cynical figure working out his life with a narrowing soul, a
hard spirit unrelieved by the softening influence of a great love--even
yet the woman in her had a far-off hope that, where the law had made
them one by book and scrip, the love which should consecrate such a
union, lift it above an almost offensive relation, might be theirs. She
did not know how much of her heart, of her being, was wandering over
the distant sands of Egypt, looking for its oasis. Eglington had never
needed or wanted more than she had given him--her fortune, her person,
her charm, her ability to play an express and definite part in his
career. It was this material use to which she was so largely assigned,
almost involuntarily but none the less truly, that had destroyed all of
the finer, dearer, more delicate intimacy invading his mind sometimes,
more or less vaguely, where Faith was concerned. So extreme was his
egotism that it had never occurred to him, as it had done to the Duchess
of Snowdon and Lord Windlehurst, that he might lose Hylda herself as
well as her fortune; that the day might come when her high spirit could
bear it no longer. As the Duchess of Snowdon had said: “It would all
depend upon the other man, whoever he might be.”

So he answered her with superficial cheerfulness now; he had not the
depth of soul to see that they were at a crisis, and that she could bear
no longer the old method of treating her as though she were a child, to
be humoured or to be dominated.

“Well, you see all there is,” he answered; “you are so imaginative,
crying for some moon there never was in any sky.”

In part he had spoken the truth. He had no high objects or ends or
purposes. He wanted only success somehow or another, and there was no
nobility of mind or aspiration behind it. In her heart of hearts she
knew it; but it was the last cry of her soul to him, seeking, though in
vain, for what she had never had, could never have.

“What have you been doing?” he added, looking at the desk where she
had sat, glancing round the room. “Has the Duchess left any rags on
the multitude of her acquaintances? I wonder that you can make yourself
contented here with nothing to do. You don’t look much stronger. I’m
sure you ought to have a change. My mother was never well here; though,
for the matter of that, she was never very well anywhere. I suppose it’s
the laboratory that attracts me here, as it did my father, playing with
the ancient forces of the world in these Arcadian surroundings--Arcady
without beauty or Arcadians.” He glanced up at his mother’s picture.
“No, she never liked it--a very silent woman, secretive almost.”

Suddenly her eyes flared up. Anger possessed her. She choked it down.
Secretive--the poor bruised soul who had gone to her grave with a broken
heart!

“She secretive? No, Eglington,” she rejoined gravely, “she was
congealed. She lived in too cold an air. She was not secretive, but yet
she kept a secret--another’s.”

Again Eglington had the feeling which possessed him when he entered the
room. She had changed. There was something in her tone, a meaning, he
had never heard before. He was startled. He recalled the words of the
Duchess as she went up the staircase.

What was it all about?

“Whose secrets did she keep?” he asked, calmly enough.

“Your father’s, yours, mine,” she replied, in a whisper almost.

“Secret? What secret? Good Lord, such mystery!” He laughed mirthlessly.

She came close to him. “I am sorry--sorry, Harry,” she said with
difficulty. “It will hurt you, shock you so. It will be a blow to you,
but you must bear it.”

She tried to speak further, but her heart was beating so violently that
she could not. She turned quickly to the portfolio on the desk, drew
forth the fatal letter, and, turning to the page which contained the
truth concerning David, handed it to him. “It is there,” she said.

He had great self-control. Before looking at the page to which she had
directed his attention, he turned the letter over slowly, fingering the
pages one by one. “My mother to my father,” he remarked.

Instinctively he knew what it contained. “You have been reading my
mother’s correspondence,” he added in cold reproof.

“Do you forget that you asked me to arrange her papers?” she retorted,
stung by his suggestion.

“Your imagination is vivid,” he exclaimed. Then he bethought himself
that, after all, he might sorely need all she could give, if things
went against him, and that she was the last person he could afford to
alienate; “but I do remember that I asked you that,” he added--“no doubt
foolishly.”

“Read what is there,” she broke in, “and you will see that it was not
foolish, that it was meant to be.” He felt a cold dead hand reaching
out from the past to strike him; but he nerved himself, and his eyes
searched the paper with assumed coolness-even with her he must still be
acting. The first words he saw were: “Why did you not tell me that my
boy, my baby Harry, was not your only child, and that your eldest son
was alive?”

So that was it, after all. Even his mother knew. Master of his nerves
as he was, it blinded him for a moment. Presently he read on--the whole
page--and lingered upon the words, that he might have time to think what
he must say to Hylda. Nothing of the tragedy of his mother touched him,
though he was faintly conscious of a revelation of a woman he had
never known, whose hungering caresses had made him, as a child, rather
peevish, when a fit of affection was not on him. Suddenly, as he read
the lines touching himself, “Brilliant and able and unscrupulous.... and
though he loves me little, as he loves you little too,” his eye lighted
up with anger, his face became pale--yet he had borne the same truths
from Faith without resentment, in the wood by the mill that other year.
For a moment he stood infuriated, then, going to the fireplace, he
dropped the letter on the coals, as Hylda, in horror, started forward to
arrest his hand.

“Oh, Eglington--but no--no! It is not honourable. It is proof of all!”

He turned upon her slowly, his face rigid, a strange, cold light in his
eyes. “If there is no more proof than that, you need not vex your mind,”
 he said, commanding his voice to evenness.

A bitter anger was on him. His mother had read him through and
through--he had not deceived her even; and she had given evidence
against him to Hylda, who, he had ever thought, believed in him
completely. Now there was added to the miserable tale, that first
marriage, and the rights of David--David, the man who, he was convinced,
had captured her imagination. Hurt vanity played a disproportionate part
in this crisis.

The effect on him had been different from what Hylda had anticipated.
She had pictured him stricken and dumfounded by the blow. It had never
occurred to her, it did not now, that he had known the truth; for, of
course, to know the truth was to speak, to restore to David his own,
to step down into the second and unconsidered place. After all, to her
mind, there was no disgrace. The late Earl had married secretly, but he
had been duly married, and he did not marry again until Mercy Claridge
was dead. The only wrong was to David, whose grandfather had been even
more to blame than his own father. She had looked to help Eglington in
this moment, and now there seemed nothing for her to do. He was superior
to the situation, though it was apparent in his pale face and rigid
manner that he had been struck hard.

She came near to him, but there was no encouragement to her to play
that part which is a woman’s deepest right and joy and pain in one--to
comfort her man in trouble, sorrow, or evil. Always, always, he stood
alone, whatever the moment might be, leaving her nothing to do--“playing
his own game with his own weapons,” as he had once put it. Yet there was
strength in it too, and this came to her mind now, as though in excuse
for whatever else there was in the situation which, against her will,
repelled her.

“I am so sorry for you,” she said at last.

“What do you mean?” he asked.

“To lose all that has been yours so long.”

This was their great moment. The response to this must be the touchstone
of their lives. A--half dozen words might alter all the future, might
be the watch word to the end of all things. Involuntarily her heart
fashioned the response he ought to give--“I shall have you left, Hylda.”

The air seemed to grow oppressive, and the instant’s silence a torture,
and, when he spoke, his words struck a chill to her heart--rough notes
of pain. “I have not lost yet,” were his words.

She shrank. “You will not hide it. You will do right by--by him,” she
said with difficulty.

“Let him establish his claim to the last item of fact,” he said with
savage hate.

“Luke Claridge knew. The proofs are but just across the way, no doubt,”
 she answered, almost coldly, so had his words congealed her heart.

Their great moment had passed. It was as though a cord had snapped that
held her to him, and in the recoil she had been thrown far off from him.
Swift as his mind worked, it had not seen his opportunity to win her to
his cause, to asphyxiate her high senses, her quixotic justice, by that
old flood of eloquence and compelling persuasion of the emotions with
which he had swept her to the altar--an altar of sacrifice. He had
not even done what he had left London to do--make sure of her, by an
alluring flattery and devotion, no difficult duty with one so beautiful
and desirable; though neither love of beauty nor great desire was strong
enough in him to divert him from his course for an hour, save by his own
initiative. His mother’s letter had changed it all. A few hours before
he had had a struggle with Soolsby, and now another struggle on the
same theme was here. Fate had dealt illy with him, who had ever been its
spoiled child and favourite. He had not learned yet the arts of defence
against adversity.

“Luke Claridge is dead,” he answered sharply. “But you will tell--him,
you will write to Egypt and tell your brother?” she said, the conviction
slowly coming to her that he would not.

“It is not my duty to displace myself, to furnish evidence against
myself--”

“You have destroyed the evidence,” she intervened, a little scornfully.

“If there were no more than that--” He shrugged his shoulders
impatiently.

“Do you know there is more?” she asked searchingly. “In whose interests
are you speaking?” he rejoined, with a sneer. A sudden fury possessed
him. Claridge Pasha--she was thinking of him!

“In yours--your conscience, your honour.”

“There is over thirty years’ possession on my side,” he rejoined.

“It is not as if it were going from your family,” she argued.

“Family--what is he to me!”

“What is any one to you?” she returned bitterly.

“I am not going to unravel a mystery in order to facilitate the cutting
of my own throat.”

“It might be worth while to do something once for another’s sake than
your own--it would break the monotony,” she retorted, all her sense
tortured by his words, and even more so by his manner.

Long ago Faith had said in Soolsby’s but that he “blandished” all with
whom he came in contact; but Hylda realised with a lacerated heart that
he had ceased to blandish her. Possession had altered that. Yet how had
he vowed to her in those sweet tempestuous days of his courtship when
the wind of his passion blew so hard! Had one of the vows been kept?

Even as she looked at him now, words she had read some days before
flashed through her mind--they had burnt themselves into her brain:

          “Broken faith is the crown of evils,
          Broken vows are the knotted thongs
          Set in the hands of laughing devils,
          To scourge us for deep wrongs.

          “Broken hearts, when all is ended,
          Bear the better all after-stings;
          Bruised once, the citadel mended,
          Standeth through all things.”

Suddenly he turned upon her with aggrieved petulance. “Why are you so
eager for proof?”

“Oh, I have,” she said, with a sudden flood of tears in her voice,
though her eyes were dry--“I have the feeling your mother had, that
nothing will be well until you undo the wrong your father did. I know
it was not your fault. I feel for you--oh, believe me, I feel as I have
never felt, could never feel, for myself. It was brought on you by your
father, but you must be the more innocent because he was so guilty. You
have had much out of it, it has helped you on your way. It does not mean
so much now. By-and-by another--an English-peerage may be yours by your
own achievement. Let it go. There is so much left, Harry. It is a small
thing in a world of work. It means nothing to me.” Once again, even when
she had given up all hope, seeing what was the bent of his mind--once
again she made essay to win him out of his selfishness. If he would only
say, “I have you left,” how she would strive to shut all else out of her
life!

He was exasperated. His usual prescience and prudence forsook him. It
angered him that she should press him to an act of sacrifice for the
man who had so great an influence upon her. Perversity possessed him.
Lifelong egotism was too strong for wisdom, or discretion.

Suddenly he caught her hands in both of his and said hoarsely: “Do you
love me--answer me, do you love me with all your heart and soul? The
truth now, as though it were your last word on earth.”

Always self. She had asked, if not in so many words, for a little love,
something for herself to feed on in the darkening days for him, for her,
for both; and he was thinking only of himself.

She shrank, but her hands lay passive in his. “No, not with all my heart
and soul--but, oh--!”

He flung her hands from him. “No, not with all your heart and soul--I
know! You are willing to sacrifice me for him, and you think I do not
understand.”

She drew herself up, with burning cheeks and flashing eyes. “You
understand nothing--nothing. If you had ever understood me, or any human
being, or any human heart, you would not have ruined all that might
have given you an undying love, something that would have followed
you through fire and flood to the grave. You cannot love. You do not
understand love. Self--self, always self. Oh, you are mad, mad, to have
thrown it all away, all that might have given happiness! All that I
have, all that I am, has been at your service; everything has been bent
and tuned to your pleasure, for your good. All has been done for
you, with thought of you and your position and your advancement, and
now--now, when you have killed all that might have been yours, you cry
out in anger that it is dying, and you insinuate what you should kill
another for insinuating. Oh, the wicked, cruel folly of it all! You
suggest--you dare! I never heard a word from David Claridge that might
not be written on the hoardings. His honour is deeper than that which
might attach to the title of Earl of Eglington.”

She seemed to tower above him. For an instant she looked him in the eyes
with frigid dignity, but a great scorn in her face. Then she went to the
door--he hastened to open it for her.

“You will be very sorry for this,” he said stubbornly. He was too
dumfounded to be discreet, too suddenly embarrassed by the turn affairs
had taken. He realised too late that he had made a mistake, that he had
lost his hold upon her.

As she passed through, there suddenly flashed before her mind the scene
in the laboratory with the chairmaker. She felt the meaning of it now.

“You do not intend to tell him--perhaps Soolsby has done so,” she said
keenly, and moved on to the staircase.

He was thunderstruck at her intuition. “Why do you want to rob
yourself?” he asked after her vaguely. She turned back. “Think of your
mother’s letter that you destroyed,” she rejoined solemnly and quietly.
“Was it right?”

He shut the door, and threw himself into a chair. “I will put it
straight with her to-morrow,” he said helplessly.

He sat for a half-hour silent, planning his course.

At last there came a tap at the door, and the butler appeared.

“Some one from the Foreign Office, my lord,” he said. A moment
afterwards a young official, his subordinate, entered. “There’s the
deuce to pay in Egypt, sir; I’ve brought the despatch,” he said.



CHAPTER XXVIII. NAHOUM TURNS THE SCREW

Laughing to himself, Higli Pasha sat with the stem of a narghileh in his
mouth. His big shoulders kept time to the quivering of his fat stomach.
He was sitting in a small court-yard of Nahoum Pasha’s palace, waiting
for its owner to appear. Meanwhile he exercised a hilarious patience.
The years had changed him little since he had been sent on that
expedition against the southern tribes which followed hard on David’s
appointment to office. As David had expected, few of the traitorous
officers returned. Diaz had ignominiously died of the bite of a
tarantula before a blow had been struck, but Higli had gratefully
received a slight wound in the first encounter, which enabled him
to beat a safe retreat to Cairo. He alone of the chief of the old
conspirators was left. Achmet was still at the Place of Lepers, and the
old nest of traitors was scattered for ever.

Only Nahoum and Higli were left, and between these two there had never
been partnership or understanding. Nahoum was not the man to trust to
confederates, and Higli Pasha was too contemptible a coadjutor. Nahoum
had faith in no one save Mizraim the Chief Eunuch, but Mizraim alone was
better than a thousand; and he was secret--and terrible. Yet Higli had a
conviction that Nahoum’s alliance with David was a sham, and that David
would pay the price of misplaced confidence one day. More than once when
David’s plans had had a set-back, Higli had contrived a meeting with
Nahoum, to judge for himself the true position.

For his visit to-day he had invented a reason--a matter of finance; but
his real reason was concealed behind the malevolent merriment by which
he was now seized. So absorbed was he that he did not heed the approach
of another visitor down an angle of the court-yard. He was roused by a
voice.

“Well, what’s tickling you so, pasha?”

The voice was drawling, and quite gentle; but at the sound of it,
Higli’s laugh stopped short, and the muscles of his face contracted.
If there was one man of whom he had a wholesome fear--why, he could not
tell--it was this round-faced, abrupt, imperturbable American, Claridge
Pasha’s right-hand man. Legends of resourcefulness and bravery had
gathered round his name. “Who’s been stroking your chin with a feather,
pasha?” he continued, his eye piercing the other like a gimlet.

“It was an amusing tale I heard at Assiout, effendi,” was Higli’s
abashed and surly reply.

“Oh, at Assiout!” rejoined Lacey. “Yes, they tell funny stories at
Assiout. And when were you at Assiout, pasha?”

“Two days ago, effendi.”

“And so you thought you’d tell the funny little story to Nahoum as quick
as could be, eh? He likes funny stories, same as you--damn, nice, funny
little stories, eh?”

There was something chilly in Lacey’s voice now, which Higli did
not like; something much too menacing and contemptuous for a mere
man-of-all-work to the Inglesi. Higli bridled up, his eyes glared
sulkily.

“It is but my own business if I laugh or if I curse, effendi,” he
replied, his hand shaking a little on the stem of the narghileh.

“Precisely, my diaphanous polyandrist; but it isn’t quite your own
affair what you laugh at--not if I know it!”

“Does the effendi think I was laughing at him?”

“The effendi thinks not. The effendi knows that the descendant of a
hundred tigers was laughing at the funny little story, of how the two
cotton-mills that Claridge Pasha built were burned down all in one
night, and one of his steamers sent down the cataract at Assouan. A
knock-down blow for Claridge Pasha, eh? That’s all you thought of,
wasn’t it? And it doesn’t matter to you that the cotton-mills made
thousands better off, and started new industries in Egypt. No, it only
matters to you that Claridge Pasha loses half his fortune, and that you
think his feet are in the quicksands, and ‘ll be sucked in, to make an
Egyptian holiday. Anything to discredit him here, eh? I’m not sure what
else you know; but I’ll find out, my noble pasha, and if you’ve had
your hand in it--but no, you ain’t game-cock enough for that! But if
you were, if you had a hand in the making of your funny little story,
there’s a nutcracker that ‘d break the shell of that joke--”

He turned round quickly, seeing a shadow and hearing a movement. Nahoum
was but a few feet away. There was a bland smile on his face, a look of
innocence in his magnificent blue eye. As he met Lacey’s look, the smile
left his lips, a grave sympathy appeared to possess them, and he spoke
softly:

“I know the thing that burns thy heart, effendi, to whom be the flowers
of hope and the fruits of merit. It is even so, a great blow has fallen.
Two hours since I heard. I went at once to see Claridge Pasha, but found
him not. Does he know, think you?” he added sadly.

“May your heart never be harder than it is, pasha, and when I left the
Saadat an hour ago, he did not know. His messenger hadn’t a steamer
like Higli Pasha there. But he was coming to see you; and that’s why I’m
here. I’ve been brushing the flies off this sore on the hump of Egypt
while waiting.” He glanced with disdain at Higli.

A smile rose like liquid in the eye of Nahoum and subsided, then he
turned to Higli inquiringly.

“I have come on business, Excellency; the railway to Rosetta, and--”

“To-morrow--or the next day,” responded Nahoum irritably, and turned
again to Lacey.

As Higli’s huge frame disappeared through a gateway, Nahoum motioned
Lacey to a divan, and summoned a slave for cooling drinks. Lacey’s eyes
now watched him with an innocence nearly as childlike as his own. Lacey
well knew that here was a foe worthy of the best steel. That he was a
foe, and a malignant foe, he had no doubt whatever; he had settled the
point in his mind long ago; and two letters he had received from Lady
Eglington, in which she had said in so many words, “Watch Nahoum!”
 had made him vigilant and intuitive. He knew, meanwhile, that he was
following the trail of a master-hunter who covered up his tracks. Lacey
was as certain as though he had the book of Nahoum’s mind open in his
hand, that David’s work had been torn down again--and this time with
dire effect--by this Armenian, whom David trusted like a brother. But
the black doors that closed on the truth on every side only made him
more determined to unlock them; and, when he faltered as to his own
powers, he trusted Mahommed Hassan, whose devotion to David had given
him eyes that pierced dark places.

“Surely the God of Israel has smitten Claridge Pasha sorely. My
heart will mourn to look upon his face. The day is insulting in its
brightness,” continued Nahoum with a sigh, his eyes bent upon Lacey,
dejection in his shoulders.

Lacey started. “The God of Israel!” How blasphemous it sounded from the
lips of Nahoum, Oriental of Orientals, Christian though he was also!

“I think, perhaps, you’ll get over it, pasha. Man is born to trouble,
and you’ve got a lot of courage. I guess you could see other people bear
a pile of suffering, and never flinch.”

Nahoum appeared not to notice the gibe. “It is a land of suffering,
effendi,” he sighed, “and one sees what one sees.”

“Have you any idea, any real sensible idea, how those cotton-mills got
afire?” Lacey’s eyes were fixed on Nahoum’s face.

The other met his gaze calmly. “Who can tell! An accident, perhaps,
or--”

“Or some one set the mills on fire in several places at once--they say
the buildings flamed out in every corner; and it was the only time in a
month they hadn’t been running night and day. Funny, isn’t it?”

“It looks like the work of an enemy, effendi.” Nahoum shook his head
gravely. “A fortune destroyed in an hour, as it were. But we shall get
the dog. We shall find him. There is no hole deep enough to hide him
from us.”

“Well, I wouldn’t go looking in holes for him, pasha.

“He isn’t any cave-dweller, that incendiary; he’s an artist--no palace
is too unlikely for him. No, I wouldn’t go poking in mud-huts to find
him.”

“Thou dost not think that Higli Pasha--” Nahoum seemed startled out
of equanimity by the thought. Lacey eyed him meditatively, and said
reflectively: “Say, you’re an artist, pasha. You are a guesser of the
first rank. But I’d guess again. Higli Pasha would have done it, if it
had ever occurred to him; and he’d had the pluck. But it didn’t, and he
hadn’t. What I can’t understand is that the artist that did it should
have done it before Claridge Pasha left for the Soudan. Here we were
just about to start; and if we’d got away south, the job would have done
more harm, and the Saadat would have been out of the way. No, I can’t
understand why the firebug didn’t let us get clean away; for if the
Saadat stays here, he’ll be where he can stop the underground mining.”

Nahoum’s self-control did not desert him, though he fully realised that
this man suspected him. On the surface Lacey was right. It would have
seemed better to let David go, and destroy his work afterwards, but he
had been moved by other considerations, and his design was deep. His
own emissaries were in the Soudan, announcing David’s determination to
abolish slavery, secretly stirring up feeling against him, preparing for
the final blow to be delivered, when he went again among the southern
tribes. He had waited and waited, and now the time was come. Had he,
Nahoum, not agreed with David that the time had come for the slave-trade
to go? Had he not encouraged him to take this bold step, in the sure
belief that it would overwhelm him, and bring him an ignominious death,
embittered by total failure of all he had tried to do?

For years he had secretly loosened the foundations of David’s work,
and the triumph of Oriental duplicity over Western civilisation and
integrity was sweet in his mouth. And now there was reason to believe
that, at last, Kaid was turning against the Inglesi. Everything would
come at once. If all that he had planned was successful, even this man
before him should aid in his master’s destruction.

“If it was all done by an enemy,” he said, in answer to Lacey, at last,
“would it all be reasoned out like that? Is hatred so logical? Dost
thou think Claridge Pasha will not go now? The troops are ready at
Wady-Halfa, everything is in order; the last load of equipment has gone.
Will not Claridge Pasha find the money somehow? I will do what I can. My
heart is moved to aid him.”

“Yes, you’d do what you could, pasha,” Lacey rejoined enigmatically,
“but whether it would set the Saadat on his expedition or not is a
question. But I guess, after all, he’s got to go. He willed it so.
People may try to stop him, and they may tear down what he does, but he
does at last what he starts to do, and no one can prevent him--not any
one. Yes, he’s going on this expedition; and he’ll have the money,
too.” There was a strange, abstracted look in his face, as though he saw
something which held him fascinated.

Presently, as if with an effort, he rose to his feet, took the red
fez from his head, and fanned himself with it for a moment. “Don’t you
forget it, pasha; the Saadat will win. He can’t be beaten, not in a
thousand years. Here he comes.”

Nahoum got to his feet, as David came quickly through the small gateway
of the court-yard, his head erect, his lips smiling, his eyes sweeping
the place. He came forward briskly to them. It was plain he had not
heard the evil news.

“Peace be to thee, Saadat, and may thy life be fenced about with
safety!” said Nahoum.

David laid a hand on Lacey’s arm and squeezed it, smiling at him with
such friendship that Lacey’s eyes moistened, and he turned his head
away.

There was a quiet elation in David’s look. “We are ready at last,” he
said, looking from one to the other. “Well, well,” he added, almost
boyishly, “has thee nothing to say, Nahoum?”

Nahoum turned his head away as though overcome. David’s face grew
instantly grave. He turned to Lacey. Never before had he seen Lacey’s
face with a look like this. He grasped Lacey’s arm. “What is it?” he
asked quietly. “What does thee want to say to me?”

But Lacey could not speak, and David turned again to Nahoum. “What is
there to say to me?” he asked. “Something has happened--what is it?...
Come, many things have happened before. This can be no worse. Do thee
speak,” he urged gently.

“Saadat,” said Nahoum, as though under the stress of feeling, “the
cotton-mills at Tashah and Mini are gone--burned to the ground.”

For a moment David looked at him without sight in his eyes, and his face
grew very pale. “Excellency, all in one night, the besom of destruction
was abroad,” he heard Nahoum say, as though from great depths below him.
He slowly turned his head to look at Lacey. “Is this true?” he asked at
last in an unsteady voice. Lacey could not speak, but inclined his head.

David’s figure seemed to shrink for a moment, his face had a withered
look, and his head fell forward in a mood of terrible dejection.

“Saadat! Oh, my God, Saadat, don’t take it so!” said Lacey brokenly, and
stepped between David and Nahoum. He could not bear that the stricken
face and figure should be seen by Nahoum, whom he believed to be
secretly gloating. “Saadat,” he said brokenly, “God has always been with
you; He hasn’t forgotten you now.

“The work of years,” David murmured, and seemed not to hear.

“When God permits, shall man despair?” interposed Nahoum, in a voice
that lingered on the words. Nahoum accomplished what Lacey had failed to
do. His voice had pierced to some remote corner in David’s nature, and
roused him. Was it that doubt, suspicion, had been wakened at last? Was
some sensitive nerve touched, that this Oriental should offer Christian
comfort to him in his need--to him who had seen the greater light? Or
was it that some unreality in the words struck a note which excited
a new and subconscious understanding? Perhaps it was a little of all
three. He did not stop to inquire. In crises such as that through which
he was passing, the mind and body act without reason, rather by the
primal instinct, the certain call of the things that were before reason
was.

“God is with the patient,” continued Nahoum; and Lacey set his teeth to
bear this insult to all things. But Nahoum accomplished what he had not
anticipated. David straightened himself up, and clasped his hands behind
him. By a supreme effort of the will he controlled himself, and the
colour came back faintly to his face. “God’s will be done,” he said, and
looked Nahoum calmly in the eyes. “It was no accident,” he added with
conviction. “It was an enemy of Egypt.” Suddenly the thing rushed over
him again, going through his veins like a poisonous ether, and clamping
his heart as with iron. “All to do over again!” he said brokenly, and
again he caught Lacey’s arm.

With an uncontrollable impulse Lacey took David’s hand in his own warm,
human grasp.

“Once I thought I lost everything in Mexico, Saadat, and I understand
what you feel. But all wasn’t lost in Mexico, as I found at last, and I
got something, too, that I didn’t put in. Say, let us go from here. God
is backing you, Saadat. Isn’t it all right--same as ever?”

David was himself again. “Thee is a good man,” he said, and through the
sadness of his eyes there stole a smile. “Let us go,” he said. Then he
added in a businesslike way: “To-morrow at seven, Nahoum. There is much
to do.”

He turned towards the gate with Lacey, where the horses waited. Mahommed
Hassan met them as they prepared to mount. He handed David a letter.
It was from Faith, and contained the news of Luke Claridge’s death.
Everything had come at once. He stumbled into the saddle with a moan.

“At last I have drawn blood,” said Nahoum to himself with grim
satisfaction, as they disappeared. “It is the beginning of the end. It
will crush him-I saw it in his eyes. God of Israel, I shall rule again
in Egypt!”



CHAPTER XXIX. THE RECOIL


It was a great day in the Muslim year. The Mahmal, or Sacred Carpet, was
leaving Cairo on its long pilgrimage of thirty-seven days to Mecca and
Mahomet’s tomb. Great guns boomed from the Citadel, as the gorgeous
procession, forming itself beneath the Mokattam Hills, began its slow
march to where, seated in the shade of an ornate pavilion, Prince Kaid
awaited its approach to pay devout homage. Thousands looked down at the
scene from the ramparts of the Citadel, from the overhanging cliffs,
and from the tops of the houses that hung on the ledges of rock rising
abruptly from the level ground, to which the last of the famed Mamelukes
leaped to their destruction.

Now to Prince Kaid’s ears there came from hundreds of hoarse throats the
cry: “Allah! Allah! May thy journey be with safety to Arafat!” mingling
with the harsh music of the fifes and drums.

Kaid looked upon the scene with drawn face and lowering brows. His
retinue watched him with alarm. A whisper had passed that, two nights
before, the Effendina had sent in haste for a famous Italian physician
lately come to Cairo, and that since his visit Kaid had been sullen and
depressed. It was also the gossip of the bazaars that he had suddenly
shown favour to those of the Royal House and to other reactionaries, who
had been enemies to the influence of Claridge Pasha.

This rumour had been followed by an official proclamation that no
Europeans or Christians would be admitted to the ceremony of the Sacred
Carpet.

Thus it was that Kaid looked out on a vast multitude of Muslims, in
which not one European face showed, and from lip to lip there passed the
word, “Harrik--Harrik--remember Harrik! Kaid turns from the infidel!”

They crowded near the great pavilion--as near as the mounted Nubians
would permit--to see Kaid’s face; while he, with eyes wandering over
the vast assemblage, was lost in dark reflections. For a year he had
struggled against a growing conviction that some obscure disease was
sapping his strength. He had hid it from every one, until, at last,
distress and pain had overcome him. The verdict of the Italian expert
was that possible, but by no means certain, cure might come from an
operation which must be delayed for a month or more.

Suddenly, the world had grown unfamiliar to him; he saw it from afar;
but his subconscious self involuntarily registered impressions, and he
moved mechanically through the ceremonies and duties of the immediate
present. Thrown back upon himself, to fight his own fight, with the
instinct of primary life his mind involuntarily drew for refuge to
the habits and predispositions of youth; and for two days he had shut
himself away from the activities with which David and Nahoum were
associated. Being deeply engaged with the details of the expedition to
the Soudan, David had not gone to the Palace; and he was unaware of the
turn which things had taken.

Three times, with slow and stately steps, the procession wound in a
circle in the great square, before it approached the pavilion where the
Effendina sat, the splendid camels carrying the embroidered tent wherein
the Carpet rested, and that which bore the Emir of the pilgrims, moving
gracefully like ships at sea. Naked swordsmen, with upright and shining
blades, were followed by men on camels bearing kettle-drums. After them
came Arab riders with fresh green branches fastened to the saddles like
plumes, while others carried flags and banners emblazoned with texts
and symbols. Troops of horsemen in white woollen cloaks, sheikhs and
Bedouins with flowing robes and huge turbans, religious chiefs of the
great sects, imperturbable and statuesque, were in strange contrast to
the shouting dervishes and camel-drivers and eager pilgrims.

At last the great camel with its sacred burden stopped in front of
Kaid for his prayer and blessing. As he held the tassels, lifted the
gold-fringed curtain, and invoked Allah’s blessing, a half-naked sheikh
ran forward, and, raising his hand high above his head, cried shrilly:
“Kaid, Kaid, hearken!”

Rough hands caught him away, but Kaid commanded them to desist; and the
man called a blessing on him; and cried aloud:

“Listen, O Kaid, son of the stars and the light of day. God hath exalted
thee. Thou art the Egyptian of all the Egyptians. In thy hand is power.
But thou art mortal even as I. Behold, O Kaid, in the hour that I was
born thou wast born, I in the dust without thy Palace wall, thou amid
the splendid things. But thy star is my star. Behold, as God ordains,
the Tree of Life was shaken on the night when all men pray and cry aloud
to God--even the Night of the Falling Leaves. And I watched the falling
leaves; and I saw my leaf, and it was withered, but only a little
withered, and so I live yet a little. But I looked for thy leaf, thou
who wert born in that moment when I waked to the world. I looked long,
but I found no leaf, neither green nor withered. But I looked again upon
my leaf, and then I saw that thy name now was also upon my leaf, and
that it was neither green nor withered; but was a leaf that drooped as
when an evil wind has passed and drunk its life. Listen, O Kaid! Upon
the tomb of Mahomet I will set my lips, and it may be that the leaf of
my life will come fresh and green again. But thou--wilt thou not
come also to the lord Mahomet’s tomb? Or”--he paused and raised his
voice--“or wilt thou stay and lay thy lips upon the cross of the
infidel? Wilt thou--”

He could say no more, for Kaid’s face now darkened with anger. He made
a gesture, and, in an instant, the man was gagged and bound, while a
sullen silence fell upon the crowd. Kaid suddenly became aware of this
change of feeling, and looked round him. Presently his old prudence
and subtlety came back, his face cleared a little, and he called aloud,
“Unloose the man, and let him come to me.” An instant after, the man was
on his knees, silent before him.

“What is thy name?” Kaid asked.

“Kaid Ibrahim, Effendina,” was the reply.

“Thou hast misinterpreted thy dream, Kaid Ibrahim,” answered the
Effendina. “The drooping leaf was token of the danger in which thy life
should be, and my name upon thy leaf was token that I should save thee
from death. Behold, I save thee. Inshallah, go in peace! There is no God
but God, and the Cross is the sign of a false prophet. Thou art mad. God
give thee a new mind. Go.”

The man was presently lost in the sweltering, half-frenzied crowd; but
he had done his work, and his words rang in the ears of Kaid as he rode
away.

A few hours afterwards, bitter and rebellious, murmuring to himself,
Kaid sat in a darkened room of his Nile Palace beyond the city. So
few years on the throne, so young, so much on which to lay the hand of
pleasure, so many millions to command; and yet the slave at his door had
a surer hold on life and all its joys and lures than he, Prince Kaid,
ruler of Egypt! There was on him that barbaric despair which has taken
dreadful toll of life for the decree of destiny. Across the record of
this day, as across the history of many an Eastern and pagan tyrant, was
written: “He would not die alone.” That the world should go on when he
was gone, that men should buy and sell and laugh and drink, and flaunt
it in the sun, while he, Prince Kaid, would be done with it all.

He was roused by the rustling of a robe. Before him stood the Arab
physician, Sharif Bey, who had been in his father’s house and his own
for a lifetime. It was many a year since his ministrations to Kaid had
ceased; but he had remained on in the Palace, doing service to those
who received him, and--it was said by the evil-tongued--granting
certificates of death out of harmony with dark facts, a sinister and
useful figure. His beard was white, his face was friendly, almost
benevolent, but his eyes had a light caught from no celestial flame.

His look was confident now, as his eyes bent on Kaid. He had lived long,
he had seen much, he had heard of the peril that had been foreshadowed
by the infidel physician; and, by a sure instinct, he knew that his
own opportunity had come. He knew that Kaid would snatch at any offered
comfort, would cherish any alleviating lie, would steal back from
science and civilisation and the modern palace to the superstition of
the fellah’s hut. Were not all men alike when the neboot of Fate struck
them down into the terrible loneliness of doom, numbing their minds?
Luck would be with him that offered first succour in that dark hour.
Sharif had come at the right moment for Sharif.

Kaid looked at him with dull yet anxious eyes. “Did I not command that
none should enter?” he asked presently in a thick voice.

“Am I not thy physician, Effendina, to whom be the undying years? When
the Effendina is sick, shall I not heal? Have I not waited like a dog
at thy door these many years, till that time would come when none could
heal thee save Sharif?”

“What canst thou give me?”

“What the infidel physician gave thee not--I can give thee hope. Hast
thou done well, oh, Effendina, to turn from thine own people? Did not
thine own father, and did not Mehemet Ali, live to a good age? Who
were their physicians? My father and I, and my father’s father, and his
father’s father.”

“Thou canst cure me altogether?” asked Kaid hesitatingly.

“Wilt thou not have faith in one of thine own race? Will the infidel
love thee as do we, who are thy children and thy brothers, who are
to thee as a nail driven in the wall, not to be moved? Thou shalt
live--Inshallah, thou shalt have healing and length of days!”

He paused at a gesture from Kaid, for a slave had entered and stood
waiting.

“What dost thou here? Wert thou not commanded?” asked Kaid.

“Effendina, Claridge Pasha is waiting,” was the reply.

Kaid frowned, hesitated; then, with a sudden resolve, made a gesture of
dismissal to Sharif Bey, and nodded David’s admittance to the slave.

As David entered, he passed Sharif Bey, and something in the look on
the Arab physician’s face--a secret malignancy and triumph--struck him
strangely. And now a fresh anxiety and apprehension rose in his mind as
he glanced at Kaid. The eye was heavy and gloomy, the face was clouded,
the lips once so ready to smile at him were sullen and smileless now.
David stood still, waiting.

“I did not expect thee till to-morrow, Saadat,” said Kaid moodily at
last.

“The business is urgent?”

“Effendina,” said David, with every nerve at tension, yet with outward
self-control, “I have to report--” He paused, agitated; then, in a firm
voice, he told of the disaster which had befallen the cotton-mills and
the steamer.

As David spoke, Kaid’s face grew darker, his fingers fumbled vaguely
with the linen of the loose white robe he wore. When the tale was
finished he sat for a moment apparently stunned by the news, then he
burst out fiercely:

“Bismillah, am I to hear only black words to-day? Hast thou naught to
say but this--the fortune of Egypt burned to ashes!”

David held back the quick retort that came to his tongue.

“Half my fortune is in the ashes,” he answered with dignity. “The rest
came from savings never made before by this Government. Is the work less
worthy in thy sight, Effendina, because it has been destroyed? Would thy
life be less great and useful because a blow took thee from behind?”

Kaid’s face turned black. David had bruised an open wound.

“What is my life to thee--what is thy work to me?”

“Thy life is dear to Egypt, Effendina,” urged David soothingly, “and my
labour for Egypt has been pleasant in thine eyes till now.”

“Egypt cannot be saved against her will,” was the moody response. “What
has come of the Western hand upon the Eastern plough?” His face grew
blacker; his heart was feeding on itself.

“Thou, the friend of Egypt, hast come of it, Effendina.”

“Harrik was right, Harrik was right,” Kaid answered, with stubborn gloom
and anger. “Better to die in our own way, if we must die, than live in
the way of another. Thou wouldst make of Egypt another England; thou
wouldst civilise the Soudan--bismillah, it is folly!”

“That is not the way Mehemet Ali thought, nor Ibrahim. Nor dost thou
think so, Effendina,” David answered gravely. “A dark spirit is on thee.
Wouldst thou have me understand that what we have done together, thou
and I, was ill done, that the old bad days were better?”

“Go back to thine own land,” was the surly answer. “Nation after nation
ravaged Egypt, sowed their legions here, but the Egyptian has lived them
down. The faces of the fellaheen are the faces of Thotmes and Seti. Go
back. Egypt will travel her own path. We are of the East; we are Muslim.
What is right to you is wrong to us. Ye would make us over--give us
cotton beds and wooden floors and fine flour of the mill, and cleanse
the cholera-hut with disinfectants, but are these things all? How many
of your civilised millions would die for their prophet Christ? Yet
all Egypt would rise up from the mud-floor, the dourha-field and the
mud-hut, and would come out to die for Mahomet and Allah--ay, as
Harrik knew, as Harrik knew! Ye steal into corners, and hide behind the
curtains of your beds to pray; we pray where the hour of prayer finds
us--in the street, in the market-place, where the house is building,
the horse being shod, or the money-changers are. Ye hear the call of
civilisation, but we heap the Muezzin--”

He stopped, and searched mechanically for his watch. “It is the hour the
Muezzin calls,” said David gently. “It is almost sunset. Shall I open
the windows that the call may come to us?” he added.

While Kaid stared at him, his breast heaving with passion, David went to
a window and opened the shutters wide.

The Palace faced the Nile, which showed like a tortuous band of blue and
silver a mile or so away. Nothing lay between but the brown sand, and
here and there a handful of dark figures gliding towards the river, or a
little train of camels making for the bare grey hills from the ghiassas
which had given them their desert loads. The course of the Nile was
marked by a wide fringe of palms showing blue and purple, friendly and
ancient and solitary. Beyond the river and the palms lay the grey-brown
desert, faintly touched with red. So clear was the sweet evening air
that the irregular surface of the desert showed for a score of miles as
plainly as though it were but a step away. Hummocks of sand--tombs and
fallen monuments gave a feeling as of forgotten and buried peoples; and
the two vast pyramids of Sakkarah stood up in the plaintive glow of
the evening skies, majestic and solemn, faithful to the dissolved and
absorbed races who had built them. Curtains of mauve and saffron-red
were hung behind them, and through a break of cloud fringing the horizon
a yellow glow poured, to touch the tips of the pyramids with poignant
splendour. But farther over to the right, where Cairo lay, there hung
a bluish mist, palpable and delicate, out of which emerged the vast
pyramids of Cheops; and beside it the smiling inscrutable Sphinx faced
the changeless centuries. Beyond the pyramids the mist deepened into a
vast deep cloud of blue and purple, which seemed the end to some mystic
highway untravelled by the sons of men.

Suddenly there swept over David a wave of feeling such as had passed
over Kaid, though of a different nature. Those who had built the
pyramids were gone, Cheops and Thotmes and Amenhotep and Chefron and the
rest. There had been reformers in those lost races; one age had sought
to better the last, one man had toiled to save--yet there only remained
offensive bundles of mummied flesh and bone and a handful of relics
in tombs fifty centuries old. Was it all, then, futile? Did it matter,
then, whether one man laboured or a race aspired?

Only for a moment these thoughts passed through his mind; and then,
as the glow through the broken cloud on the opposite horizon suddenly
faded, and veils of melancholy fell over the desert and the river and
the palms, there rose a call, sweetly shrill, undoubtingly insistent.
Sunset had come, and, with it, the Muezzin’s call to prayer from the
minaret of a mosque hard by.

David was conscious of a movement behind him--that Kaid was praying with
hands uplifted; and out on the sands between the window and the river
he saw kneeling figures here and there, saw the camel-drivers halt their
trains, and face the East with hands uplifted. The call went on--“La
ilaha illa-llah!”

It called David, too. The force and searching energy and fire in it
stole through his veins, and drove from him the sense of futility
and despondency which had so deeply added to his trouble. There was
something for him, too, in that which held infatuated the minds of so
many millions.

A moment later Kaid and he faced each other again. “Effendina,” he said,
“thou wilt not desert our work now?”

“Money--for this expedition? Thou hast it?” Kaid asked ironically.

“I have but little money, and it must go to rebuild the mills,
Effendina. I must have it of thee.”

“Let them remain in their ashes.”

“But thousands will have no work.”

“They had work before they were built, they will have work now they are
gone.”

“Effendina, I stayed in Egypt at thy request. The work is thy work. Wilt
thou desert it?”

“The West lured me--by things that seemed. Now I know things as they
are.”

“They will lure thee again to-morrow,” said David firmly, but with a
weight on his spirit. His eyes sought and held Kaid’s. “It is too late
to go back; we must go forward or we shall lose the Soudan, and a Mahdi
and his men will be in Cairo in ten years.”

For an instant Kaid was startled. The old look of energy and purpose
leaped up into his eye; but it faded quickly again. If, as the Italian
physician more than hinted, his life hung by a thread, did it matter
whether the barbarian came to Cairo? That was the business of those who
came after. If Sharif was right, and his life was saved, there would be
time enough to set things right.

“I will not pour water on the sands to make an ocean,” he answered.
“Will a ship sail on the Sahara? Bismillah, it is all a dream! Harrik
was right. But dost thou think to do with me as thou didst with Harrik?”
 he sneered. “Is it in thy mind?”

David’s patience broke down under the long provocation. “Know then,
Effendina,” he said angrily, “that I am not thy subject, nor one
beholden to thee, nor thy slave. Upon terms well understood, I have
laboured here. I have kept my obligations, and it is thy duty to keep
thy obligations, though the hand of death were on thee. I know not what
has poisoned thy mind, and driven thee from reason and from justice. I
know that, Prince Pasha of Egypt as thou art, thou art as bound to me as
any fellah that agrees to tend my door or row my boat. Thy compact
with me is a compact with England, and it shall be kept, if thou art an
honest man. Thou mayst find thousands in Egypt who will serve thee at
any price, and bear thee in any mood. I have but one price. It is well
known to thee. I will not be the target for thy black temper. This is
not the middle ages; I am an Englishman, not a helot. The bond must
be kept; thou shalt not play fast and loose. Money must be found; the
expedition must go. But if thy purpose is now Harrik’s purpose, then
Europe should know, and Egypt also should know. I have been thy right
hand, Effendina; I will not be thy old shoe, to be cast aside at thy
will.”

In all the days of his life David had never flamed out as he did now.
Passionate as his words were, his manner was strangely quiet, but his
white and glistening face and his burning eyes showed how deep was his
anger.

As he spoke, Kaid sank upon the divan. Never had he been challenged so.
With his own people he had ever been used to cringing and abasement, and
he had played the tyrant, and struck hard and cruelly, and he had
been feared; but here, behind David’s courteous attitude, there was a
scathing arraignment of his conduct which took no count of consequence.
In other circumstances his vanity would have shrunk under this whip of
words, but his native reason and his quick humour would have justified
David. In this black distemper possessing him, however, only outraged
egotism prevailed. His hands clenched and unclenched, his lips were
drawn back on his teeth in rage.

When David had finished, Kaid suddenly got to his feet and took a step
forward with a malediction, but a faintness seized him and he staggered
back. When he raised his head again David was gone.



CHAPTER XXX. LACEY MOVES

If there was one glistening bead of sweat on the bald pate of Lacey of
Chicago there were a thousand; and the smile on his face was not less
shining and unlimited. He burst into the rooms of the palace where David
had residence, calling: “Oyez! Oyez! Saadat! Oh, Pasha of the Thousand
Tails! Oyez! Oyez!”

Getting no answer, he began to perform a dance round the room, which in
modern days is known as the negro cake-walk. It was not dignified, but
it would have been less dignified still performed by any other living
man of forty-five with a bald head and a waist-band ten inches too
large. Round the room three times he went, and then he dropped on a
divan. He gasped, and mopped his face and forehead, leaving a little
island of moisture on the top of his head untouched. After a moment, he
gained breath and settled down a little. Then he burst out:

     “Are you coming to my party, O effendi?
     There’ll be high jinks, there’ll be welcome, there’ll be room;
     For to-morrow we are pulling stakes for Shendy.
     Are you coming to my party, O Nahoum?”

“Say, I guess that’s pretty good on the spur of the moment,” he wheezed,
and, taking his inseparable note book from his pocket, wrote the
impromptu down. “I guess She’ll like that-it rings spontaneous. She’ll
be tickled, tickled to death, when she knows what’s behind it.” He
repeated it with gusto. “She’ll dote on it,” he added--the person to
whom he referred being the sister of the American Consul, the little
widow, “cute as she can be,” of whom he had written to Hylda in the
letter which had brought a crisis in her life. As he returned the
note-book to his pocket a door opened. Mahommed Hassan slid forward into
the room, and stood still, impassive and gloomy. Lacey beckoned, and
said grotesquely:

    “‘Come hither, come hither, my little daughter,
     And do not tremble so!’”

A sort of scornful patience was in Mahommed’s look, but he came nearer
and waited.

“Squat on the ground, and smile a smile of mirth, Mahommed,” Lacey said
riotously. “‘For I’m to be Queen o’ the May, mother, I’m to be Queen o’
the May!’”

Mahommed’s face grew resentful. “O effendi, shall the camel-driver laugh
when the camels are lost in the khamsin and the water-bottle is empty?”

“Certainly not, O son of the spreading palm; but this is not a desert,
nor a gaudy caravan. This is a feast of all angels. This is the day when
Nahoum the Nefarious is to be buckled up like a belt, and ridden in a
ring. Where is the Saadat?”

“He is gone, effendi! Like a mist on the face of the running water, so
was his face; like eyes that did not see, so was his look. ‘Peace be to
thee, Mahommed, thou art faithful as Zaida,’ he said, and he mounted and
rode into the desert. I ran after till he was come to the edge of the
desert; but he sent me back, saying that I must wait for thee; and this
word I was to say, that Prince Kaid had turned his face darkly from him,
and that the finger of Sharif--”

“That fanatical old quack--Harrik’s friend!”

“--that the finger of Sharif was on his pulse; but the end of all was in
the hands of God.”

“Oh yes, exactly, the finger of Sharif on his pulse! The old story-the
return to the mother’s milk, throwing back to all the Pharaohs. Well,
what then?” he added cheerfully, his smile breaking out again. “Where
has he gone, our Saadat?”

“To Ebn Ezra Bey at the Coptic Monastery by the Etl Tree, where your
prophet Christ slept when a child.”

Lacey hummed to himself meditatively. “A sort of last powwow--Rome
before the fall. Everything wrong, eh? Kaid turned fanatic, Nahoum on
the tiles watching for the Saadat to fall, things trembling for want of
hard cash. That’s it, isn’t it, Mahommed?”

Mahommed nodded, but his look was now alert, and less sombre. He had
caught at something vital and confident in Lacey’s tone. He drew nearer,
and listened closely.

“Well, now, my gentle gazelle, listen unto me,” continued Lacey. He
suddenly leaned forward, and spoke in subdued but rapid tones. “Say,
Mahommed, once upon a time there was an American man, with a shock of
red hair, and a nature like a spring-lock. He went down to Mexico, with
a million or two of his own money got honestly by an undisputed will
from an undisputed father--you don’t understand that, but it doesn’t
matter--and with a few millions of other people’s money, for to gamble
in mines and railways and banks and steamship companies--all to do with
Mexico what the Saadat has tried to do in Egypt with less money; but not
for the love of Allah, same as him. This American was going to conquer
like Cortez, but his name was Thomas Tilman Lacey, and he had a lot of
gall. After years of earnest effort, he lost his hair and the millions
of the Infatuated Conquistadores. And by-and-by he came to Cairo with
a thimbleful of income, and began to live again. There was a civil
war going on in his own country, but he thought that one out of forty
millions would not be strictly missed. So he stayed in Egypt; and the
tale of his days in Egypt, is it not written with a neboot of domwood in
the book of Mahommed Hassan the scribe?”

He paused and beamed upon the watchful Mahommed, who, if he did not
understand all that had been said, was in no difficulty as to the drift
and meaning of the story.

“Aiwa, effendi,” he urged impatiently. “It is a long ride to the Etl
Tree, and the day is far spent.”

“Inshallah, you shall hear, my turtle-dove! One day there came to Cairo,
in great haste, a man from Mexico, looking for the foolish one called T.
T. Lacey, bearing glad news. And the man from Mexico blew his trumpet,
and straightway T. T. Lacey fell down dismayed. The trumpet said that
a million once lost in Mexico was returned, with a small flock of other
millions; for a mine, in which it was sunk, had burst forth with a stony
stream of silver. And behold! Thomas Tilman Lacey, the despised waster
of his patrimony and of other people’s treasure, is now, O son of the
fig-flower, richer than Kaid Pasha and all his eunuchs.”

Suddenly Mahommed Hassan leaned forward, then backward, and, after the
fashion of desert folk, gave a shrill, sweet ululation that seemed to
fill the palace.

“Say, that’s A1,” Lacey said, when Mahommed’s voice sank to a whisper
of wild harmony. “Yes, you can lick my boots, my noble sheikh of
Manfaloot,” he added, as Mahommed caught his feet and bent his head upon
them. “I wanted to do something like that myself. Kiss ‘em, honey; it’ll
do you good.”

After a moment, Mahommed drew back and squatted before him in an
attitude of peace and satisfaction. “The Saadat--you will help him? You
will give him money?”

“Let’s put it in this way, Mahommed: I’ll invest in an expedition out of
which I expect to get something worth while--concessions for mines
and railways, et cetera.” He winked a round, blue eye. “Business is
business, and the way to get at the Saadat is to talk business; but you
can make up your mind that,

    “‘To-morrow, we are pulling stakes for Shendy!
     Are you coming to my party, O Nahoum?’”

“By the prophet Abraham, but the news is great news,” said Mahommed with
a grin. “But the Effendina?”

“Well, I’ll try and square the Effendina,” answered Lacey. “Perhaps the
days of backsheesh aren’t done in Egypt, after all.”

“And Nahoum Pasha?” asked Mahommed, with a sinister look.

“Well, we’ll try and square him, too, but in another way.”

“The money, it is in Egypt?” queried Mahommed, whose idea was that money
to be real must be seen. “Something that’s as handy and as marketable,”
 answered Lacey. “I can raise half a million to-morrow; and that will do
a lot of what we want. How long will it take to ride to the monastery?”

Mahommed told him.

Lacey was about to leave the room, when he heard a voice outside.
“Nahoum!” he said, and sat down again on the divan. “He has come to see
the Saadat, I suppose; but it’ll do him good to see me, perhaps. Open
the sluices, Mahommed.”

Yes, Nahoum would be glad to see the effendi, since Claridge Pasha was
not in Cairo. When would Claridge Pasha return? If, then, the effendi
expected to see the Saadat before his return to Cairo, perhaps he would
convey a message. He could not urge his presence on the Saadat, since he
had not been honoured with any communication since yesterday.

“Well, that’s good-mannered, anyhow, pasha,” said Lacey with cheerful
nonchalance. “People don’t always know when they’re wanted or not
wanted.”

Nahoum looked at him guardedly, sighed and sat down. “Things have grown
worse since yesterday,” he said. “Prince Kaid received the news badly.”
 He shook his head. “He has not the gift of perfect friendship. That is
a Christian characteristic; the Muslim does not possess it. It was too
strong to last, maybe--my poor beloved friend, the Saadat.”

“Oh, it will last all right,” rejoined Lacey coolly. “Prince Kaid has
got a touch of jaundice, I guess. He knows a thing when he finds it,
even if he hasn’t the gift of ‘perfect friendship,’ same as Christians
like you and me. But even you and me don’t push our perfections too
far--I haven’t noticed you going out of your way to do things for your
‘poor beloved friend, the Saadat’.”

“I have given him time, energy, experience--money.”

Lacey nodded. “True. And I’ve often wondered why, when I’ve seen the
things you didn’t give and the things you took away.”

Nahoum’s eyes half closed. Lacey was getting to close quarters with
suspicion and allusion; but it was not his cue to resent them yet.

“I had come now to offer him help; to advance him enough to carry
through his expedition.”

“Well, that sounds generous, but I guess he would get on without it,
pasha. He would not want to be under any more obligations to you.”

“He is without money. He must be helped.”

“Just so.”

“He cannot go to the treasury, and Prince Kaid has refused. Why should
he decline help from his friend?” Suddenly Lacey changed his tactics. He
had caught a look in Nahoum’s eyes which gave him a new thought. “Well,
if you’ve any proposition, pasha, I’ll take it to him. I’ll be seeing
him to-night.”

“I can give him fifty thousand pounds.”

“It isn’t enough to save the situation, pasha.”

“It will help him over the first zareba.”

“Are there any conditions?”

“There are no conditions, effendi.”

“And interest?”

“There would be no interest in money.”

“Other considerations?”

“Yes, other considerations, effendi.”

“If they were granted, would there be enough still in the stocking to
help him over a second zareba--or a third, perhaps?”

“That would be possible, even likely, I think. Of course we speak in
confidence, effendi.”

“The confidence of the ‘perfect friendship.’”

“There may be difficulty, because the Saadat is sensitive; but it is the
only way to help him. I can get the money from but one source; and to
get it involves an agreement.”

“You think his Excellency would not just jump at it--that it might hurt
some of his prejudices, eh?”

“So, effendi.”

“And me--where am I in it, pasha?”

“Thou hast great influence with his Excellency.”

“I am his servant--I don’t meddle with his prejudices, pasha.”

“But if it were for his own good, to save his work here.”

Lacey yawned almost ostentatiously. “I guess if he can’t save it himself
it can’t be saved, not even when you reach out the hand of perfect
friendship. You’ve been reaching out for a long time, pasha, and it
didn’t save the steamer or the cotton-mills; and it didn’t save us when
we were down by Sobat a while ago, and you sent Halim Bey to teach us to
be patient. We got out of that nasty corner by sleight of hand, but not
your sleight of hand, pasha. Your hand is a quick hand, but a sharp eye
can see the trick, and then it’s no good, not worth a button.”

There was something savage behind Nahoum’s eyes, but they did not show
it; they blinked with earnest kindness and interest. The time would come
when Lacey would go as his master should go, and the occasion was
not far off now; but it must not be forced. Besides, was this fat,
amorous-looking factotum of Claridge Pasha’s as Spartan-minded as his
master? Would he be superior to the lure of gold? He would see. He spoke
seriously, with apparent solicitude.

“Thou dost not understand, effendi. Claridge Pasha must have money.
Prestige is everything in Egypt, it is everything with Kaid. If Claridge
Pasha rides on as though nothing has happened--and money is the only
horse that can carry him--Kaid will not interfere, and his black mood
may pass; but any halting now and the game is done.”

“And you want the game to go on right bad, don’t you? Well, I guess
you’re right. Money is the only winner in this race. He’s got to have
money, sure. How much can you raise? Oh, yes, you told me! Well, I don’t
think it’s enough; he’s got to have three times that; and if he can’t
get it from the Government, or from Kaid, it’s a bad lookout. What’s the
bargain you have in your mind?”

“That the slave-trade continue, effendi.”

Lacey did not wink, but he had a shock of surprise. On the instant he
saw the trap--for the Saadat and for himself.

“He would not do it--not for money, pasha.”

“He would not be doing it for money. The time is not ripe for it, it is
too dangerous. There is a time for all things. If he will but wait!”

“I wouldn’t like to be the man that’d name the thing to him. As you say,
he’s got his prejudices. They’re stronger than in most men.”

“It need not be named to him. Thou canst accept the money for him,
and when thou art in the Soudan, and he is going to do it, thou canst
prevent it.”

“Tell him that I’ve taken the money and that he’s used it, and he
oughtn’t to go back on the bargain I made for him? So that he’ll be
bound by what I did?”

“It is the best way, effendi.”

“He’d be annoyed,” said Lacey with a patient sigh.

“He has a great soul; but sometimes he forgets that expediency is the
true policy.”

“Yet he’s done a lot of things without it. He’s never failed in what he
set out to do. What he’s done has been kicked over, but he’s done it all
right, somehow, at last.”

“He will not be able to do this, effendi, except with my help--and
thine.”

“He’s had quite a lot of things almost finished, too,” said Lacey
reflectively, “and then a hand reached out in the dark and cut the
wires--cut them when he was sleeping, and he didn’t know; cut them when
he was waking, and he wouldn’t understand; cut them under his own eyes,
and he wouldn’t see; because the hand that cut them was the hand of the
perfect friend.”

He got slowly to his feet, as a cloud of colour drew over the face of
Nahoum and his eyes darkened with astonishment and anger. Lacey put his
hands in his pockets and waited till Nahoum also rose. Then he gathered
the other’s eyes to his, and said with drawling scorn:

“So, you thought I didn’t understand! You thought I’d got a brain like
a peanut, and wouldn’t drop onto your game or the trap you’ve set. You’d
advance money--got from the slave-dealers to prevent the slave-trade
being stopped! If Claridge Pasha took it and used it, he could never
stop the slave-trade. If I took it and used it for him on the same
terms, he couldn’t stop the slave-trade, though he might know no more
about the bargain than a babe unborn. And if he didn’t stand by the
bargain I made, and did prohibit slave-dealing, nothing’d stop the
tribes till they marched into Cairo. He’s been safe so far, because they
believed in him, and because he’d rather die a million deaths than go
crooked. Say, I’ve been among the Dagos before--down in Mexico--and I’m
onto you. I’ve been onto you for a good while; though there was nothing
I could spot certain; but now I’ve got you, and I’ll break the ‘perfect
friendship’ or I’ll eat my shirt. I’ll--”

He paused, realising the crisis in which David was moving, and that
perils were thick around their footsteps. But, even as he thought of
them, he remembered David’s own frank, fearless audacity in danger and
difficulty, and he threw discretion to the winds. He flung his flag
wide, and believed with a belief as daring as David’s that all would be
well.

“Well, what wilt thou do?” asked Nahoum with cool and deadly menace.
“Thou wilt need to do it quickly, because, if it is a challenge, within
forty-eight hours Claridge Pasha and thyself will be gone from Egypt--or
I shall be in the Nile.”

“I’ll take my chances, pasha,” answered Lacey, with equal coolness. “You
think you’ll win. It’s not the first time I’ve had to tackle men like
you--they’ve got the breed in Mexico. They beat me there, but I learned
the game, and I’ve learned a lot from you, too. I never knew what your
game was here. I only know that the Saadat saved your life, and got
you started again with Kaid. I only know that you called yourself a
Christian, and worked on him till he believed in you, and Hell might
crackle round you, but he’d believe, till he saw your contract signed
with the Devil--and then he’d think the signature forged. But he’s got
to know now. We are not going out of Egypt, though you may be going to
the Nile; but we are going to the Soudan, and with Kaid’s blessing, too.
You’ve put up the bluff, and I take it. Be sure you’ve got Kaid solid,
for, if you haven’t, he’ll be glad to know where you keep the money you
got from the slave-dealers.”

Nahoum shrugged his shoulders. “Who has seen the money? Where is the
proof? Kaid would know my reasons. It is not the first time virtue has
been tested in Egypt, or the first time that it has fallen.”

In spite of himself Lacey laughed. “Say, that’s worthy of a great
Christian intellect. You are a bright particular star, pasha. I take it
back--they’d learn a lot from you in Mexico. But the only trouble with
lying is, that the demand becomes so great you can’t keep all the cards
in your head, and then the one you forget does you. The man that isn’t
lying has the pull in the long run. You are out against us, pasha, and
we’ll see how we stand in forty-eight hours. You have some cards up your
sleeve, I suppose; but--well, I’m taking you on. I’m taking you on with
a lot of joy, and some sorrow, too, for we might have pulled off a big
thing together, you and Claridge Pasha, with me to hold the stirrups.
Now it’s got to be war. You’ve made it so. It’s a pity, for when we grip
there’ll be a heavy fall.”

“For a poor man thou hast a proud stomach.”

“Well, I’ll admit the stomach, pasha. It’s proud; and it’s strong, too;
it’s stood a lot in Egypt; it’s standing a lot to-day.”

“We’ll ease the strain, perhaps,” sneered Nahoum. He made a perfunctory
salutation and walked briskly from the room.

Mahommed Hassan crept in, a malicious grin on his face. Danger and
conflict were as meat and drink to him.

“Effendi, God hath given thee a wasp’s sting to thy tongue. It is well.
Nahoum Pasha hath Mizraim: the Saadat hath thee and me.”

“There’s the Effendina,” said Lacey reflectively. “Thou saidst thou
would ‘square’ him, effendi.”

“I say a lot,” answered Lacey rather ruefully. “Come, Mahommed, the
Saadat first, and the sooner the better.”



CHAPTER XXXI. THE STRUGGLE IN THE DESERT

   “And His mercy is on them that fear Him throughout all generations.”

On the clear, still evening air the words rang out over the desert,
sonorous, imposing, peaceful. As the notes of the verse died away the
answer came from other voices in deep, appealing antiphonal:

   “He hath showed strength with His arm, He hath scattered the proud
   in the imagination of their hearts.”

Beyond the limits of the monastery there was not a sign of life; neither
beast nor bird, nor blade of grass, nor any green thing; only the
perfect immemorial blue, and in the east a misty moon, striving in vain
to offer light which the earth as yet rejected for the brooding radiance
of the descending sun. But at the great door of the monastery there grew
a stately palm, and near by an ancient acacia-tree; and beyond the stone
chapel there was a garden of struggling shrubs and green things, with
one rose-tree which scattered its pink leaves from year to year upon the
loam, since no man gathered bud or blossom.

The triumphant call of the Magnificat, however beautiful, seemed
strangely out of place in this lonely island in a sea of sand. It
was the song of a bannered army, marching over the battle-field with
conquering voices, and swords as yet unsheathed and red, carrying
the spoils of conquest behind the laurelled captain of the host. The
crumbling and ancient walls were surrounded by a moat which a stranger’s
foot crossed hardly from moon to moon, which the desert wayfarer sought
rarely, since it was out of the track of caravans, and because food was
scant in the refectory of this Coptic brotherhood. It was scarce five
hours’ ride from the Palace of the Prince Pasha: but it might have been
a thousand miles away, so profoundly separate was it from the world of
vital things and deeds of men.

As the chant rang out, confident, majestic, and serene, carried by
voices of power and shrill sweetness, which only the desert can produce,
it might have seemed to any listener that this monastery was all that
remained of some ancient kingdom of brimming, active cities, now lying
beneath the obliterating sand, itself the monument and memorial of a
breath of mercy of the Destroyer, the last refuge of a few surviving
captains of a departed greatness. Hidden by the grey, massive walls,
built as it were to resist the onset of a ravaging foe, the swelling
voices might well have been those of some ancient order of valiant
knights, whose banners hung above them, the ‘riclame’ of their deeds.
But they were voices and voices only; for they who sang were as unkempt
and forceless as the lonely wall which shut them in from the insistent
soul of the desert.

Desolation? The desert was not desolate. Its face was bare and burning,
it slaked no man’s thirst, gave no man food, save where scattered oases
were like the breasts of a vast mother eluding the aching lips of her
parched children; but the soul of the desert was living and inspiring,
beating with vitality. It was life that burned like flame. If the
water-skin was dry and the date-bag empty it smothered and destroyed;
but it was life; and to those who ventured into its embrace, obeying the
conditions of the sharp adventure, it gave what neither sea, nor green
plain, nor high mountain, nor verdant valley could give--a consuming
sense of power, which found its way to the deepest recesses of being.
Out upon the vast sea of sand, where the descending sun was spreading a
note of incandescent colour, there floated the grateful words:

   “He remembering His mercy hath holpen His servant Israel; as He
   promised to our forefathers, Abraham, and his seed for ever.”

Then the antiphonal ceased; and together the voices of all within the
place swelled out in the Gloria and the Amen, and seemed to pass away
in ever-receding vibrations upon the desert, till it was lost in the
comforting sunset.

As the last note died away, a voice from beneath the palm-tree near
the door, deeper than any that had come from within, said reverently:
“Ameen-Ameen!”

He who spoke was a man well over sixty years, with a grey beard, lofty
benign forehead, and the eyes of a scholar and a dreamer. As he uttered
the words of spiritual assent, alike to the Muslim and the Christian
religion, he rose to his feet, showing the figure of a man of action,
alert, well-knit, authoritative. Presently he turned towards the East
and stretched a robe upon the ground, and with stately beauty of gesture
he spread out his hands, standing for a moment in the attitude of
aspiration. Then, kneeling, he touched his turbaned head to the ground
three times, and as the sun drew down behind the sharp, bright line of
sand that marked the horizon, he prayed devoutly and long. It was Ebn
Ezra Bey.

Muslim though he was, he had visited this monastery many times, to study
the ancient Christian books which lay in disordered heaps in an ill-kept
chamber, books which predated the Hegira, and were as near to the life
of the Early Church as the Scriptures themselves--or were so reputed.
Student and pious Muslim as he was, renowned at El Azhar and at every
Muslim university in the Eastern world, he swore by the name of Christ
as by that of Abraham, Isaac, and all the prophets, though to him
Mahomet was the last expression of Heaven’s will to mankind. At first
received at the monastery with unconcealed aversion, and not without
danger to himself, he had at last won to him the fanatical monks, who,
in spirit, kept this ancient foundation as rigid to their faith as
though it were in mediaeval times. And though their discipline was
lax, and their daily duties orderless, this was Oriental rather than
degenerate. Here Ebn Ezra had stayed for weeks at a time in the past,
not without some religious scandal, long since forgotten.

His prayers ended, he rose up slowly, once more spread out his hands in
ascription, and was about to enter the monastery, when, glancing towards
the west, he saw a horseman approaching. An instinct told him who it
was before he could clearly distinguish the figure, and his face lighted
with a gentle and expectant smile. Then his look changed.

“He is in trouble,” he murmured. “As it was with his uncle in Damascus,
so will it be with him. Malaish, we are in the will of God!”

The hand that David laid in Ebn Ezra’s was hot and nervous, the eyes
that drank in the friendship of the face which had seen two Claridges
emptying out their lives in the East were burning and famished by long
fasting of the spirit, forced abstinence from the pleasures of success
and fruition-haunting, desiring eyes, where flamed a spirit which
consumed the body and the indomitable mind. The lips, however, had their
old trick of smiling, though the smile which greeted Ebn Ezra Bey had a
melancholy which touched the desert-worn, life-spent old Arab as he had
not been touched since a smile, just like this, flashed up at him from
the weather-stained, dying face of quaint Benn Claridge in a street of
Damascus. The natural duplicity of the Oriental had been abashed and
inactive before the simple and astounding honesty of these two Quaker
folk.

He saw crisis written on every feature of the face before him. Yet the
scanty meal they ate with the monks in the ancient room was enlivened
by the eager yet quiet questioning of David, to whom the monks responded
with more spirit than had been often seen in this arid retreat. The
single torch which spluttered from the wall as they drank their coffee
lighted up faces as strange, withdrawn, and unconsciously secretive
as ever gathered to greet a guest. Dim tales had reached them of this
Christian reformer and administrator, scraps of legend from stray
camel-drivers, a letter from the Patriarch commanding them to pray
blessings on his labours--who could tell what advantage might not come
to the Coptic Church through him, a Christian! On the dull, torpid
faces, light seemed struggling to live for a moment, as David talked.
It was as though something in their meagre lives, which belonged to
undeveloped feelings, was fighting for existence--a light struggling to
break through murky veils of inexperience.

Later, in the still night, however--still, though air vibrated
everywhere, as though the desert breathed an ether which was to fill
men’s veins with that which quieted the fret and fever of life’s
disillusions and forgeries and failures--David’s speech with Ebn Ezra
Bey was of a different sort. If, as it seems ever in the desert, an
invisible host of beings, once mortal, now immortal, but suspensive and
understanding, listened to the tale he unfolded, some glow of pity must
have possessed them; for it was an Iliad of herculean struggle against
absolute disaster, ending with the bitter news of his grandfather’s
death. It was the story of AEdipus overcome by events too strong for
soul to bear. In return, as the stars wheeled on, and the moon stole to
the zenith, majestic and slow, Ebn Ezra offered to his troubled friend
only the philosophy of the predestinarian, mingled with the calm of the
stoic. But something antagonistic to his own dejection, to the Muslim’s
fatalism, emerged from David’s own altruism, to nerve him to hope
and effort still. His unconquerable optimism rose determinedly to the
surface, even as he summed up and related the forces working against
him.

“They have all come at once,” he said; “all the activities opposing me,
just as though they had all been started long ago at different points,
with a fixed course to run, and to meet and give me a fall in the hour
when I could least resist. You call it Fate. I call it what it proves
itself to be. But here it is a hub of danger and trouble, and the spokes
of disaster are flying to it from all over the compass, to make the
wheel that will grind me; and all the old troop of Palace intriguers and
despoilers are waiting to heat the tire and fasten it on the machine
of torture. Kaid has involved himself in loans which press, in foolish
experiments in industry without due care; and now from ill-health and
bad temper comes a reaction towards the old sinister rule, when the
Prince shuts his eyes and his agents ruin and destroy. Three nations
who have intrigued against my work see their chance, and are at Kaid’s
elbow. The fate of the Soudan is in the balance. It is all as the shake
of a feather. I can save it if I go; but, just as I am ready, my mills
burn down, my treasury dries up, Kaid turns his back on me, and the toil
of years is swept away in a night. Thee sees it is terrible, friend?”

Ebn Ezra looked at him seriously and sadly for a moment, and then said:
“Is it given one man to do all? If many men had done these things, then
there had been one blow for each. Now all falls on thee, Saadat. Is it
the will of God that one man should fling the lance, fire the cannon,
dig the trenches, gather food for the army, drive the horses on to
battle, and bury the dead? Canst thou do all?”

David’s eyes brightened to the challenge. “There was the work to do, and
there were not the many to do it. My hand was ready; the call came; I
answered. I plunged into the river of work alone.”

“Thou didst not know the strength of the currents, the eddies and the
whirlpools, the hidden rocks--and the shore is far off, Saadat.”

“It is not so far but that, if I could get breath to gather strength,
I should reach the land in time. Money--ah, but enough for this
expedition! That over, order, quiet yonder, my own chosen men as
governors, and I could”--he pointed towards the southern horizon--“I
could plant my foot in Cairo, and from the centre control the great
machinery--with Kaid’s help; and God’s help. A sixth of a million, and
Kaid’s hand behind me, and the boat would lunge free of the sand-banks
and churn on, and churn on.... Friend,” he added, with the winning
insistence that few found it possible to resist, “if all be well, and we
go thither, wilt thou become the governor-general yonder? With thee
to rule justly where there is most need of justice, the end would be
sure--if it be the will of God.”

Ebn Ezra Bey sat for a moment looking into the worn, eager face,
indistinct in the moonlight, then answered slowly: “I am seventy, and
the years smite hard as they pass, and there or here, it little matters
when I go, as I must go; and whether it be to bend the lance, or bear
the flag before thee, or rule a Mudirieh, what does it matter! I will
go with thee,” he added hastily; “but it is better thou shouldst not
go. Within the last three days I have news from the South. All that thou
hast done there is in danger now. The word for revolt has passed from
tribe to tribe. A tongue hath spoken, and a hand hath signalled”--his
voice lowered--“and I think I know the tongue and the hand!” He paused;
then, as David did not speak, continued: “Thou who art wise in most
things, dost decline to seek for thy foe in him who eateth from the same
dish with thee. Only when it is too late thou wilt defend thyself and
all who keep faith with thee.”

David’s face clouded. “Nahoum, thou dost mean Nahoum? But thou dost not
understand, and there is no proof.”

“As a camel knows the coming storm while yet the sky is clear, by that
which the eye does not see, so do I feel Nahoum. The evils thou hast
suffered, Saadat, are from his hand, if from any hand in Egypt--”

Suddenly he leaned over and touched David’s arm. “Saadat, it is of no
avail. There is none in Egypt that desires good; thy task is too great.
All men will deceive thee; if not now, yet in time. If Kaid favours thee
once more, and if it is made possible for thee to go to the Soudan, yet
I pray thee to stay here. Better be smitten here, where thou canst get
help from thine own country, if need be, than yonder, where they but
wait to spoil thy work and kill thee. Thou art young; wilt thou throw
thy life away? Art thou not needed here as there? For me it is nothing,
whether it be now or in a few benumbing years; but for thee--is there no
one whom thou lovest so well that thou wouldst not shelter thy life to
spare that life sorrow? Is there none that thou lovest so, and that will
love thee to mortal sorrow, if thou goest without care to thy end too
soon?”

As a warm wind suddenly sweeps across the cool air of a summer evening
for an instant, suffocating and unnerving, so Ebn Ezra’s last words
swept across David’s spirit. His breath came quicker, his eyes half
closed. “Is there none that thou lovest so, and that will love thee to
mortal sorrow, if--”

As a hand secretly and swiftly slips the lever that opens the
sluice-gates of a dike, while the watchman turns away for a moment to
look at the fields which the waters enrich and the homes of poor folk
whom the gates defend, so, in a moment, when off his guard, worn with
watching and fending, as it were, Ebn Ezra had sprung the lever, and
a flood of feeling swept over David, drowned him in its impulse and
pent-up force.

“Is there none that thou lovest so--” Of what use had been all his
struggle and his pain since that last day in Hamley--his dark fighting
days in the desert with Lacey and Mahommed, and his handful of faithful
followers, hemmed in by dangers, the sands swarming with Arabs who
feathered now to his safety, now to his doom, and his heart had hungered
for what he had denied it with a will that would not be conquered?
Wasted by toil and fever and the tension of danger and the care of
others dependent on him, he had also fought a foe which was ever at
his elbow, ever whispered its comfort and seduction in his ear, the
insidious and peace-giving, exalting opiate that had tided him over some
black places, and then had sought for mastery of him when he was back
again in the world of normal business and duty, where it appealed not as
a medicine, but as a perilous luxury. And fighting this foe, which had
a voice so soothing, and words like the sound of murmuring waters, and
a cool and comforting hand that sought to lead him into gardens of
stillness and passive being, where he could no more hear the clangour
and vexing noises of a world that angered and agonised, there had also
been the lure of another passion of the heart, which was too perilously
dear to contemplate. Eyes that were beautiful, and their beauty was not
for him; a spirit that was bright and glowing, but the brightness and
the glow might not renew his days. It was hard to fight alone. Alone he
was, for only to one may the doors within doors be opened-only to one
so dear that all else is everlastingly distant may the true tale of the
life beneath life be told. And it was not for him--nothing of this;
not even the thought of it; for to think of it was to desire it, and to
desire it was to reach out towards it; and to reach out towards it was
the end of all. There had been moments of abandonment to the alluring
dream, such as when he wrote the verses which Lacey had sent to Hylda
from the desert; but they were few. Oft-repeated, they would have filled
him with an agitated melancholy impossible to be borne in the life which
must be his.

So it had been. The deeper into life and its labours and experiences he
had gone, the greater had been his temptations, born of two passions,
one of the body and its craving, the other of the heart and its desires:
and he had fought on--towards the morning.

“Is there none that thou lovest so, and that will love thee to mortal
sorrow, if thou goest without care to thy end too soon?” The desert, the
dark monastery, the acacia tree, the ancient palm, the ruinous garden,
disappeared. He only saw a face which smiled at him, as it had done ‘by
the brazier in the garden at Cairo, that night when she and Nahoum and
himself and Mizraim had met in the room of his house by the Ezbekieh
gardens, and she had gone out to her old life in England, and he had
taken up the burden of the East--that long six years ago. His head
dropped in his hands, and all that was beneath the Quaker life he
had led so many years, packed under the crust of form and habit, and
regulated thought, and controlled emotion, broke forth now, and had its
way with him.

He turned away staggering and self-reproachful from the first question,
only to face the other--“And that will love thee to mortal sorrow, if
thou goest without care to thy end too soon.” It was a thought he had
never let himself dwell on for an instant in all the days since they
had last met. He had driven it back to its covert, even before he could
recognise its face. It was disloyal to her, an offence against all that
she was, an affront to his manhood to let the thought have place in his
mind even for one swift moment. She was Lord Eglington’s wife--there
could be no sharing of soul and mind and body and the exquisite devotion
of a life too dear for thought. Nothing that she was to Eglington could
be divided with another, not for an hour, not by one act of impulse; or
else she must be less, she that might have been, if there had been no
Eglington--

An exclamation broke from him, and, as one crying out in one’s sleep
wakes himself, so the sharp cry of his misery woke him from the trance
of memory that had been upon him, and he slowly became conscious of Ebn
Ezra standing before him. Their eyes met, and Ebn Ezra spoke:

“The will of Allah be thy will, Saadat. If it be to go to the Soudan,
I am thine; if it be to stay, I am thy servant and thy brother. But
whether it be life or death, thou must sleep, for the young are like
water without sleep. Thou canst not live in strength nor die with
fortitude without it. For the old, malaish, old age is between a
sleeping and a waking! Come, Saadat! Forget not, thou must ride again to
Cairo at dawn.”

David got slowly to his feet and turned towards the monastery. The
figure of a monk stood in the doorway with a torch to light him to his
room.

He turned to Ebn Ezra again. “Does thee think that I have aught of his
courage--my Uncle Benn? Thou knowest me--shall I face it out as did he?”

“Saadat,” the old man answered, pointing, “yonder acacia, that was he,
quick to grow and short to live; but thou art as this date-palm, which
giveth food to the hungry, and liveth through generations. Peace be upon
thee,” he added at the doorway, as the torch flickered towards the room
where David was to lie.

“And upon thee, peace!” answered David gently, and followed the smoky
light to an inner chamber. The room in which David found himself was
lofty and large, but was furnished with only a rough wooden bed, a rug,
and a brazier. Left alone, he sat down on the edge of the bed, and,
for a few moments, his mind strayed almost vaguely from one object to
another. From two windows far up in the wall the moonlight streamed in,
making bars of light aslant the darkness.

Not a sound broke the stillness. Yet, to his sensitive nerves, the air
seemed tingling with sensation, stirring with unseen activities. Here
the spirit of the desert seemed more insistent in its piercing vitality,
because it was shut in by four stone walls.

Mechanically he took off his coat, and was about to fold and lay it
on the rug beside the bed, when something hard in one of the pockets
knocked against his knee. Searching, he found and drew forth a small
bottle which, for many a month past, had lain in the drawer of a table
where he had placed it on his return from the Soudan. It was an evil
spirit which sent this tiny phial to his hand at a moment when he had
paid out of the full treasury of his strength and will its accumulated
deposit, leaving him with a balance on which no heavy draft could be
made. His pulse quickened, then his body stiffened with the effort at
self-control.

Who placed this evil elixir in his pocket? What any enemy of his work
had done was nothing to what might be achieved by the secret foe, who
had placed this anodyne within his reach at this the most critical
moment of his life. He remembered the last time he had used it--in the
desert: two days of forgetfulness to the world, when it all moved by
him, the swarming Arabs, the train of camels, the loads of ivory, the
slimy crocodile on the sandbanks, the vultures hovering above unburied
carcasses, the kourbash descending on shining black shoulders,
corrugating bare brown bodies into cloven skin and lacerated flesh,
a fight between champions of two tribes who clasped and smote and
struggled and rained blows, and, both mortally wounded, still writhed in
last conflict upon the ground--and Mahommed Hassan ever at the tent door
or by his side, towering, watchful, sullen to all faces without, smiling
to his own, with dog-like look waiting for any motion of his hand or any
word.... Ah, Mahommed Hassan, it was he! Mahommed had put this phial in
his pocket. His bitter secret was not hidden from Mahommed. And this was
an act of supreme devotion--to put at his hand the lulling, inspiring
draught. Did this fellah servant know what it meant--the sin of it, the
temptation, the terrible joy, the blessed quiet; and then, the agonising
remorse, the withering self-hatred and torturing penitence? No, Mahommed
only knew that when the Saadat was gone beyond his strength, when the
sleepless nights and feverish days came in the past, in their great
troubles, when men were dying and only the Saadat could save, that this
cordial lifted him out of misery and storm into calm. Yet Mahommed must
have divined that it was a thing against which his soul revolted, or he
would have given it to him openly. In the heart and mind of the giant
murderer, however, must have been the thought that now when trouble
was upon his master again, trouble which might end all, this supreme
destroyer of pain and dark memory and present misery, would give him the
comfort he needed--and that he would take it.

If he had not seen it, this sudden craving would not have seized him for
this eager beguiling, this soothing benevolence. Yet here it was in his
hand; and even as it lay in his cold fingers--how cold they were, and
his head how burning!--the desire for it surged up in him. And, as
though the thing itself had the magical power to summon up his troubles,
that it might offer the apathy and stimulus in one--even as it lured
him, his dangers, his anxieties, the black uncertainties massed,
multiplied and aggressive, rose before him, buffeted him, caught at his
throat, dragged down his shoulders, clutched at his heart.

Now, with a cry of agony, he threw the phial on the ground, and, sinking
on the bed, buried his face in his hands and moaned, and fought for
freedom from the cords tightening round him. It was for him to realise
now how deep are the depths to which the human soul can sink, even while
labouring to climb. Once more the sense of awful futility was on him: of
wasted toil and blenched force, veins of energy drained of their blood,
hope smitten in the way, and every dear dream shattered. Was it, then,
all ended? Was his work indeed fallen, and all his love undone? Was his
own redemption made impossible? He had offered up his life to this land
to atone for a life taken when she--when she first looked up with eyes
of gratitude, eyes that haunted him. Was it, then, unacceptable? Was it
so that he must turn his back upon this long, heart-breaking but beloved
work, this panacea for his soul, without which he could not pay the
price of blood?

Go back to England--to Hamley where all had changed, where the old man
he loved no longer ruled in the Red Mansion, where all that had been
could be no more? Go to some other land, and there begin again another
such a work? Were there not vast fields of human effort, effort such
as his, where he could ease the sorrow of living by the joy of a divine
altruism? Go back to Hamley? Ah, no, a million times, no! That life was
dead, it was a cycle of years behind him. There could be no return.
He was in a maelstrom of agony, his veins were afire, his lips were
parched. He sprang from his bed, knelt down, and felt for the little
phial he had flung aside. After a moment his hand caught it, clutched
it. But, even at the crest of the wave of temptation, words that he
had heard one night in Hamley, that last night of all, flashed into his
mind--the words of old Luke Claridge’s prayer, “And if a viper fasten on
his hand, O Lord--”

Suddenly he paused. That scene in the old Meetinghouse swam before his
eyes, got into his brain. He remembered the words of his own prayer,
and how he had then retreated upon the Power that gave him power, for a
draught of the one true tincture which braced the heart to throw itself
upon the spears of trial. Now the trial had come, and that which was
in him as deep as being, the habit of youth, the mother-fibre and
predisposition, responded to the draught he had drunk then. As a body
freed from the quivering, unrelenting grasp of an electric battery
subsides into a cool quiet, so, through his veins seemed to pass an
ether which stilled the tumult, the dark desire to drink the potion in
his hand, and escape into that irresponsible, artificial world, where he
had before loosened his hold on activity.

The phial slipped from his fingers to the floor. He sank upon the side
of the bed, and, placing his hands on his knees, he whispered a few
broken words that none on earth was meant to hear. Then he passed into
a strange and moveless quiet of mind and body. Many a time in days gone
by--far-off days--had he sat as he was doing now, feeling his mind pass
into a soft, comforting quiet, absorbed in a sensation of existence,
as it were between waking and sleeping, where doors opened to new
experience and understanding, where the mind seemed to loose itself from
the bonds of human necessity and find a freer air.

Now, as he sat as still as the stone in the walls around him, he was
conscious of a vision forming itself before his eyes. At first it was
indefinite, vague, without clear form, but at last it became a room
dimly outlined, delicately veiled, as it were. Then it seemed, not that
the mist cleared, but that his eyes became stronger, and saw through the
delicate haze; and now the room became wholly, concretely visible.

It was the room in which he had said good-bye to Hylda. As he gazed like
one entranced, he saw a figure rise from a couch, pale, agitated, and
beautiful, and come forward, as it were, towards him. But suddenly the
mist closed in again upon the scene, a depth of darkness passed his
eyes, and he heard a voice say: “Speak--speak to me!”

He heard her voice as distinctly as though she were beside him--as,
indeed, she had stood before him but an instant ago.

Getting slowly to his feet, into the night he sent an answer to the
call.

Would she hear? She had said long ago that she would speak to him so.
Perhaps she had tried before. But now at last he had heard and answered.
Had she heard? Time might tell--if ever they met again. But how good,
and quiet, and serene was the night!

He composed himself to sleep, but, as he lay waiting for that coverlet
of forgetfulness to be drawn over him, he heard the sound of bells soft
and clear. Just such bells he had heard upon the common at Hamley. Was
it, then, the outcome of his vision--a sweet hallucination? He leaned
upon his elbow and listened.



CHAPTER XXXII. FORTY STRIPES SAVE ONE

The bells that rang were not the bells of Hamley; they were part of no
vision or hallucination, and they drew David out of his chamber into
the night. A little group of three stood sharply silhouetted against the
moonlight, and towering above them was the spare, commanding form of Ebn
Ezra Bey. Three camels crouched near, and beside them stood a Nubian lad
singing to himself the song of the camel-driver:

     “Fleet is thy foot: thou shalt rest by the Etl tree;
     Water shalt thou drink from the blue-deep well;
     Allah send His gard’ner with the green bersim,
     For thy comfort, fleet one, by the Etl tree.
     As the stars fly, have thy footsteps flown
     Deep is the well, drink, and be still once more;
     Till the pursuing winds panting have found thee
     And, defeated, sink still beside thee--
     By the well and the Etl tree.”

For a moment David stood in the doorway listening to the low song of
the camel-driver. Then he came forward. As he did so, one of the two who
stood with Ebn Ezra moved towards the monastery door slowly. It was
a monk with a face which, even in this dim light, showed a deathly
weariness. The eyes looked straight before him, as though they saw
nothing of the world, only a goal to make, an object to be accomplished.
The look of the face went to David’s heart--the kinship of pain was
theirs.

“Peace be to thee,” David said gently, as the other passed him.

There was an instant’s pause, and then the monk faced him with fingers
uplifted. “The grace of God be upon thee, David,” he said, and his eyes,
drawn back from the world where they had been exploring, met the other’s
keenly. Then he wheeled and entered the monastery.

“The grace of God be upon thee, David!” How strange it sounded, this
Christian blessing in response to his own Oriental greeting, out in
this Eastern waste. His own name, too. It was as though he had been
transported to the ancient world where “Brethren” were so few that they
called each other by their “Christian” names--even as they did in Hamley
to-day. In Hamley to-day! He closed his eyes, a tremor running through
his body; and then, with an effort which stilled him to peace again, he
moved forward, and was greeted by Ebn Ezra, from whom the third member
of the little group had now drawn apart nearer to the acacia-tree, and
was seated on a rock that jutted from the sand. “What is it?” David
asked.

“Wouldst thou not sleep, Saadat? Sleep is more to thee now than aught
thou mayst hear from any man. To all thou art kind save thyself.”

“I have rested,” David answered, with a measured calmness, revealing to
his friend the change which had come since they parted an hour before.
They seated themselves under the palm-tree, and were silent for a
moment, then Ebn Ezra said:

“These come from the Place of Lepers.”

David started slightly. “Zaida?” he asked, with a sigh of pity.

“The monk who passed thee but now goes every year to the Place of Lepers
with the caravan, for a brother of this order stays yonder with the
afflicted, seeing no more the faces of this world which he has left
behind. Afar off from each other they stand--as far as eye can see--and
after the manner of their faith they pray to Allah, and he who has just
left us finds a paper fastened with a stone upon the sand at a certain
place where he waits. He touches it not, but reads it as it lies, and,
having read, heaps sand upon it. And the message which the paper gives
is for me.”

“For thee? Hast thou there one who--”

“There was one, my father’s son, though we were of different mothers;
and in other days, so many years ago, he did great wrong to me, and not
to me alone,”--the grey head bowed in sorrow--“but to one dearer to me
than life. I hated him, and would have slain him, but the mind of Allah
is not the mind of man; and he escaped me. Then he was stricken with
leprosy, and was carried to the place from whence no leper returns. At
first my heart rejoiced; then, at last, I forgave him, Saadat--was he
not my father’s son, and was the woman not gone to the bosom of Allah,
where is peace? So I forgave and sorrowed for him--who shall say what
miseries are those which, minute to minute, day after day, and year upon
year, repeat themselves, till it is an endless flaying of the body and
burning of the soul! Every year I send a message to him, and every year
now this Christian monk--there is no Sheikh-el-Islam yonder--brings back
the written message which he finds in the sand.”

“And thee has had a message to-night?”

“The last that may come--God be praised, he goeth to his long home. It
was written in his last hour. There was no hope; he is gone. And so, one
more reason showeth why I should go where thou goest, Saadat.”

Casting his eyes toward the figure by the acacia-tree, his face clouded
and he pondered anxiously, looking at David the while. Twice he essayed
to speak, but paused.

David’s eyes followed his look. “What is it? Who is he--yonder?”

The other rose to his feet. “Come and see, Saadat,” he replied. “Seeing,
thou wilt know what to do.”

“Zaida--is it of Zaida?” David asked.

“The man will answer for himself, Saadat.” Coming within a few feet of
the figure crouched upon the rock, Ebn Ezra paused and stretched out
a hand. “A moment, Saadat. Dost thou not see, dost thou not recognise
him?”

David intently studied the figure, which seemed unconscious of their
presence. The shoulders were stooping and relaxed as though from great
fatigue, but David could see that the figure was that of a tall man. The
head was averted, but a rough beard covered the face, and, in the light
of the fire, one hand that clutched it showed long and skinny and yellow
and cruel. The hand fascinated David’s eyes. Where had he seen it? It
flashed upon him--a hand clutching a robe, in a frenzy of fear, in the
court-yard of the blue tiles, in Kaid’s Palace--Achmet the Ropemaker! He
drew back a step.

“Achmet,” he said in a low voice. The figure stirred, the hand dropped
from the beard and clutched the knee; but the head was not raised, and
the body remained crouching and listless.

“He escaped?” David said, turning to Ebn Ezra Bey.

“I know not by what means--a camel-driver bribed, perhaps, and a camel
left behind for him. After the caravan had travelled a day’s journey he
joined it. None knew what to do. He was not a leper, and he was armed.”

“Leave him with me,” said David.

Ebn Ezra hesitated. “He is armed; he was thy foe--”

“I am armed also,” David answered enigmatically, and indicated by a
gesture that he wished to be left alone. Ebn Ezra drew away towards the
palm-tree, and stood at this distance watching anxiously, for he knew
what dark passions seize upon the Oriental--and Achmet had many things
for which to take vengeance.

David stood for a moment, pondering, his eyes upon the deserter. “God
greet thee as thou goest, and His goodness befriend thee,” he said
evenly. There was silence, and no movement. “Rise and speak,” he added
sternly. “Dost thou not hear? Rise, Achmet Pasha!”

Achmet Pasha! The head of the desolate wretch lifted, the eyes glared at
David for an instant, as though to see whether he was being mocked, and
then the spare figure stretched itself, and the outcast stood up. The
old lank straightness was gone, the shoulders were bent, the head was
thrust forward, as though the long habit of looking into dark places had
bowed it out of all manhood.

“May grass spring under thy footstep, Saadat,” he said, in a thick
voice, and salaamed awkwardly--he had been so long absent from life’s
formularies.

“What dost thou here, pasha?” asked David formally. “Thy sentence had no
limit.”

“I could not die there,” said the hollow voice, and the head sank
farther forward. “Year after year I lived there, but I could not die
among them. I was no leper; I am no leper. My penalty was my penalty,
and I paid it to the full, piastre by piastre of my body and my mind. It
was not one death, it was death every hour, every day I stayed. I had no
mind. I could not think. Mummy-cloths were round my brain; but the fire
burned underneath and would not die. There was the desert, but my limbs
were like rushes. I had no will, and I could not flee. I was chained to
the evil place. If I stayed it was death, if I went it was death.”

“Thou art armed now,” said David suggestively. Achmet laid a hand
fiercely upon a dagger under his robe. “I hid it. I was afraid. I could
not die--my hand was like a withered leaf; it could not strike; my heart
poured out like water. Once I struck a leper, that he might strike and
kill me; but he lay upon the ground and wept, for all his anger, which
had been great, died in him at last. There was none other given to anger
there. The leper has neither anger, nor mirth, nor violence, nor peace.
It is all the black silent shame--and I was no leper.”

“Why didst thou come? What is there but death for thee here, or anywhere
thou goest! Kaid’s arm will find thee; a thousand hands wait to strike
thee.”

“I could not die there--Dost thou think that I repent?” he added with
sudden fierceness. “Is it that which would make me repent? Was I worse
than thousands of others? I have come out to die--to fight and die.
Aiwa, I have come to thee, whom I hated, because thou canst give me
death as I desire it. My mother was an Arab slave from Senaar, and
she was got by war, and all her people. War and fighting were their
portion--as they ate, as they drank and slept. In the black years behind
me among the Unclean, there was naught to fight--could one fight the
dead, and the agony of death, and the poison of the agony! Life, it is
done for me--am I not accursed? But to die fighting--ay, fighting for
Egypt, since it must be, and fighting for thee, since it must be; to
strike, and strike, and strike, and earn death! Must the dog, because he
is a dog, die in the slime? Shall he not be driven from the village to
die in the clean sand? Saadat, who will see in me Achmet Pasha, who did
with Egypt what he willed, and was swept away by the besom in thy hand?
Is there in me aught of that Achmet that any should know?”

“None would know thee for that Achmet,” answered David.

“I know, it matters not how--at last a letter found me, and the way
of escape--that thou goest again to the Soudan. There will be fighting
there--”

“Not by my will,” interrupted David.

“Then by the will of Sheitan the accursed; but there will be
fighting--am I not an Arab, do I not know? Thou hast not conquered yet.
Bid me go where thou wilt, do what thou wilt, so that I may be among the
fighters, and in the battle forget what I have seen. Since I am unclean,
and am denied the bosom of Allah, shall I not go as a warrior to Hell,
where men will fear me? Speak, Saadat, canst thou deny me this?”

Nothing of repentance, so far as he knew, moved the dark soul; but, like
some evil spirit, he would choose the way to his own doom, the place and
the manner of it: a sullen, cruel, evil being, unyielding in his evil,
unmoved by remorse--so far as he knew. Yet he would die fighting, and
for Egypt “and for thee, if it must be so. To strike, to strike, to
strike, and earn death!” What Achmet did not see, David saw, the glimmer
of light breaking through the cloud of shame and evil and doom. Yonder
in the Soudan more problems than one would be solved, more lives than
one be put to the extreme test. He did not answer Achmet’s question yet.
“Zaida--?” he said in a low voice. The pathos of her doom had been a
dark memory.

Achmet’s voice dropped lower as he answered. “She lived till the day her
sister died. I never saw her face; but I was sent to bear each day to
her door the food she ate and a balass of water; and I did according to
my sentence. Yet I heard her voice. And once, at last, the day she
died, she spoke to me, and said from inside the hut: ‘Thy work is done,
Achmet. Go in peace.’ And that night she lay down on her sister’s grave,
and in the morning she was found dead upon it.”

David’s eyes were blinded with tears. “It was too long,” he said at
last, as though to himself.

“That day,” continued Achmet, “there fell ill with leprosy the Christian
priest from this place who had served in that black service so long;
and then a fire leapt up in me. Zaida was gone--I had brought food and
a balass of water to her door those many times; there was naught to do,
since she was gone--”

Suddenly David took a step nearer to him and looked into the sullen and
drooping eyes. “Thou shalt go with me, Achmet. I will do this unlawful
act for thee. At daybreak I will give thee orders. Thou shalt join
me far from here--if I go to the Soudan,” he added, with a sudden
remembrance of his position; and he turned away slowly.

After a moment, with muttered words, Achmet sank down upon the stone
again, drew a cake of dourha from his inner robe, and began to eat.

The camel-boy had lighted a fire, and he sat beside it warming his hands
at the blaze and still singing to himself:

  “The bed of my love I will sprinkle with attar of roses,
   The face of my love I will touch with the balm
   With the balm of the tree from the farthermost wood,
   From the wood without end, in the world without end.
   My love holds the cup to my lips, and I drink of the cup,
   And the attar of roses I sprinkle will soothe like the evening dew,
   And the balm will be healing and sleep, and the cup I will drink,
   I will drink of the cup my love holds to my lips--”

David stood listening. What power was there in desert life that could
make this poor camel-driver, at the end of a long day of weariness and
toil and little food and drink, sing a song of content and cheerfulness?
The little needed, the little granted, and no thought beyond--save the
vision of one who waited in the hut by the onion-field. He gathered
himself together and tuned his mind to the scene through which he had
just passed, and then to the interview he would have with Kaid on the
morrow. A few hours ago he had seen no way out of it all--he had had no
real hope that Kaid would turn to him again; but the last two hours had
changed all that. Hope was alive in him. He had fought a desperate fight
with himself, and he had conquered. Then had come Achmet, unrepentant,
degraded still, but with the spirit of Something glowing--Achmet to die
for a cause, driven by that Something deep beneath the degradation and
the crime. He had hope, and, as the camel-driver’s voice died away,
and he lay down with a sheep-skin over him and went instantly to sleep,
David drew to the fire and sat down beside it. Presently Ebn Ezra came
to urge him to go to bed, but he would not. He had slept, he said; he
had slept and rested, and the night was good--he would wait. Then the
other brought rugs and blankets, and gave David some, and lay down
beside the fire, and watched and waited for he knew not what. Ever and
ever his eyes were on David, and far back under the acacia-tree Achmet
slept as he had not slept since his doom fell on him.

At last Ebn Ezra Bey also slept; but David was awake with the night and
the benevolent moon and the marching stars. The spirit of the desert
was on him, filling him with its voiceless music. From the infinite
stretches of sand to the south came the irresistible call of life, as
soft as the leaves in a garden of roses, as deep as the sea. This world
was still, yet there seemed a low, delicate humming, as of multitudinous
looms at a distance so great that the ear but faintly caught it--the
sound of the weavers of life and destiny and eternal love, the hands of
the toilers of all the ages spinning and spinning on; and he was part
of it, not abashed or dismayed because he was but one of the illimitable
throng.

The hours wore on, but still he sat there, peace in all his heart,
energy tingling softly through every vein, the wings of hope fluttering
at his ear.

At length the morning came, and, from the west, with the rising sun,
came a traveller swiftly, making for where he was. The sleepers stirred
around him and waked and rose. The little camp became alive. As the
traveller neared the fresh-made fire, David saw that it was Lacey. He
went eagerly to meet him.

“Thee has news,” he said. “I see it is so.” He held Lacey’s hand in his.

“Say, you are going on that expedition, Saadat. You wanted money. Will a
quarter of a million do?” David’s eyes caught fire.

From the monastery there came the voices of the monks:

   “O be joyful in the Lord, all ye lands. Serve the Lord with
   gladness, and come before His presence with a song.”



CHAPTER XXXIII. THE DARK INDENTURE

Nahoum had forgotten one very important thing: that what affected David
as a Christian in Egypt would tell equally against himself. If, in his
ill-health and dejection, Kaid drank deep of the cup of Mahomet, the
red eyes of fanaticism would be turned upon the Armenian, as upon the
European Christian. He had forgotten it for the moment, but when, coming
into Kaid’s Palace, a little knot of loiterers spat upon the ground and
snarled, “Infidel--Nazarene!” with contempt and hatred, the significance
of the position came home to him. He made his way to a far quarter of
the Palace, thoughtfully weighing the circumstances, and was met by
Mizraim.

Mizraim salaamed. “The height of thy renown be as the cedar of Lebanon,
Excellency.”

“May thy feet tread the corn of everlasting fortune, son of Mahomet.”

They entered the room together. Nahoum looked at Mizraim curiously. He
was not satisfied with what he saw. Mizraim’s impassive face had little
expression, but the eyes were furtively eager and sinister.

“Well, so it is, and if it is, what then?” asked Nahoum coolly.

“Ki di, so it is,” answered Mizraim, and a ghastly smile came to his
lips. This infidel pasha, Nahoum, had a mind that pierced to the meaning
of words ere they were spoken. Mizraim’s hand touched his forehead,
his breast, his lips, and, clasping and unclasping his long, snakelike
fingers, he began the story he had come to tell.

“The Inglesi, whom Allah confound, the Effendina hath blackened by a
look, his words have smitten him in the vital parts--”

“Mizraim, thou dove, speak to the purpose!” Mizraim showed a dark
pleasure at the interruption. Nahoum was impatient, anxious; that made
the tale better worth telling.

“Sharif and the discontented ones who dare not act, like the vultures,
they flee the living man, but swoop upon the corpse. The consuls of
those countries who love not England or Claridge Pasha, and the holy
men, and the Cadi, all scatter smouldering fires. There is a spirit in
the Palace and beyond which is blowing fast to a great flame.”

“Then, so it is, great one, and what bodes it?”

“It may kill the Inglesi; but it will also sweep thee from the fields of
life where thou dost flourish.”

“It is not against the foreigner, but against the Christian, Mizraim?”

“Thy tongue hath wisdom, Excellency.”

“Thou art a Muslim--”

“Why do I warn thee? For service done to me; and because there is none
other worth serving in Egypt. Behold, it is my destiny to rule others,
to serve thee.”

“Once more thy turban full of gold, Mizraim, if thou dost service now
that hath meaning and is not a belching of wind and words. Thou hast
a thing to say--say it, and see if Nahoum hath lost his wit, or hath a
palsied arm.”

“Then behold, pasha. Are not my spies in all the Palace? Is not my
scourge heavier than the whip of the horned horse? Ki di, so it is. This
I have found. Sharif hath, with others, made a plot which hath enough
powder in it to shake Egypt, and toss thee from thy high place into the
depths. There is a Christian--an Armenian, as it chances; but he was
chosen because he was a Christian, and for that only. His name is Rahib.
He is a tent-maker. He had three sons. They did kill an effendi who
had cheated them of their land. Two of them were hanged last week; the
other, caught but a few days since, is to hang within three days. To-day
Kaid goes to the Mosque of Mahmoud, as is the custom at this festival.
The old man hath been persuaded to attempt the life of Kaid, upon
condition that his son--his Benjamin--is set free. It will be but
an attempt at Kaid’s life, no more; but the cry will go forth that a
Christian did the thing; and the Muslim flame will leap high.”

“And the tent-maker?” asked Nahoum musingly, though he was turning over
the tale in his mind, seeing behind it and its far consequences.

“Malaish, what does it matter! But he is to escape, and they are to
hang another Christian in his stead for the attempt on Kaid. It hath no
skill, but it would suffice. With the dervishes gone malboos, and the
faithful drunk with piety--canst thou not see the issue, pasha? Blood
will be shed.”

“The Jews of Europe would be angry,” said Nahoum grimly but evenly.
“The loans have been many, and Kaid has given a lien by the new canal
at Suez. The Jews will be angry,” he repeated, “and for every drop of
Christian blood shed there would be a lanced vein here. But that would
not bring back Nahoum Pasha,” he continued cynically. “Well, this is thy
story, Mizraim; this is what they would do. Now what hast thou done to
stop their doing?”

“Am I not a Muslim? Shall I give Sharif to the Nile?”

Nahoum smiled darkly. “There is a simpler way. Thy mind ever runs on the
bowstring and the sword. These are great, but there is a greater. It is
the mocking finger. At midnight, when Kaid goes to the Mosque Mahmoud,
a finger will mock the plotters till they are buried in confusion. Thou
knowest the governor of the prisons--has he not need of something? Hath
he never sought favours of thee?”

“Bismillah, but a week ago!”

“Then, listen, thou shepherd of the sheep--”

He paused, as there came a tap at the door, and a slave entered
hurriedly and addressed Nahoum. “The effendi, Ebn Ezra Bey, whom thou
didst set me to watch, he hath entered the Palace, and asks for the
Effendina.”

Nahoum started, and his face clouded, but his eyes flashed fire. He
tossed the slave a coin. “Thou hast done well. Where is he now?”

“He waits in the hall, where is the statue of Mehemet Ali and the
lions.”

“In an hour, Mizraim, thou shalt hear what I intend. Peace be to thee!”

“And on thee, peace!” answered Mizraim, as Nahoum passed from the room,
and walked hastily towards the hall where he should find Ebn Ezra Bey.
Nearing the spot, he brought his step to a deliberate slowness, and
appeared not to notice the stately Arab till almost upon him.

“Salaam, effendi,” he said smoothly, yet with inquisition in his eye,
with malice in his tone.

“Salaam, Excellency.”

“Thou art come on the business of thy master?”

“Who is my master, Excellency?”

“Till yesterday it was Claridge Pasha. Hast thou then forsaken him in
his trouble--the rat from the sinking ship?”

A flush passed over Ebn Ezra Bey’s face, and his mouth opened with a
gasp of anger. Oriental though he was, he was not as astute as this
Armenian Christian, who was purposely insulting him, that he might, in
a moment of heat, snatch from him the business he meant to lay before
Kaid. Nahoum had not miscalculated.

“I have but one master, Excellency,” Ebn Ezra answered quietly at last,
“and I have served him straightly. Hast thou done likewise?”

“What is straight to thee might well be crooked to me, effendi.”

“Thou art crooked as the finger of a paralytic.”

“Yet I have worked in peace with Claridge Pasha for these years past,
even until yesterday, when thou didst leave him to his fate.”

“His ship will sail when thine is crumbling on the sands, and all thou
art is like a forsaken cockatrice’s nest.”

“Is it this thou hast come to say to the Effendina?”

“What I have come to say to the Effendina is for the world to know after
it hath reached his ears. I know thee, Nahoum Pasha. Thou art a traitor.
Claridge Pasha would abolish slavery, and thou dost receive great sums
of gold from the slave-dealers to prevent it.”

“Is it this thou wilt tell Kaid?” Nahoum asked with a sneer. “And hast
thou proofs?”

“Even this day they have come to my hands from the south.”

“Yet I think the proofs thou hast will not avail; and I think that thou
wilt not show them to Kaid. The gift of second thinking is a great gift.
Thou must find greater reason for seeking the Effendina.”

“That too shall be. Gold thou hadst to pay the wages of the soldiers of
the south. Thou didst keep the gold and order the slave-hunt; and the
soldiers of the Effendina have been paid in human flesh and blood--ten
thousand slaves since Claridge Pasha left the Soudan, and three thousand
dead upon the desert sands, abandoned by those who hunted them when
water grew scarce and food failed. To-day shall see thy fall.”

At his first words Nahoum had felt a shock, from which his spirit
reeled; but an inspiration came to him on the moment; and he listened
with a saturnine coolness to the passionate words of the indignant
figure towering above him. When Ebn Ezra had finished, he replied
quietly:

“It is even as thou sayest, effendi. The soldiers were paid in slaves
got in the slave-hunt; and I have gold from the slave-dealers. I needed
it, for the hour is come when I must do more for Egypt than I have ever
done.”

With a gesture of contempt Ebn Ezra made to leave, seeing an official
of the Palace in the distance. Nahoum stopped him. “But, one moment ere
thou dost thrust thy hand into the cockatrice’s den. Thou dost measure
thyself against Nahoum? In patience and with care have I trained myself
for the battle. The bulls of Bashan may roar, yet my feet are shod with
safety. Thou wouldst go to Kaid and tell him thy affrighted tale. I tell
thee, thou wilt not go. Thou hast reason yet, though thy blood is hot.
Thou art to Claridge Pasha like a brother--as to his uncle before him,
who furnished my father’s palace with carpets. The carpets still soften
the fall of my feet in my father’s palace, as they did soften the fall
of my brother’s feet, the feet of Foorgat Bey.”

He paused, looking at Ebn Ezra with quiet triumph, though his eyes had
ever that smiling innocence which had won David in days gone by. He was
turning his words over on the tongue with a relish born of long waiting.

“Come,” he said presently--“come, and I will give thee reason why thou
wilt not speak with Kaid to-day. This way, effendi.”

He led the other into a little room hung about with rugs and tapestry,
and, going to the wall, he touched a spring. “One moment here, effendi,”
 he added quietly. The room was as it had been since David last stood
within it.

“In this room, effendi,” Nahoum said with cold deliberation, “Claridge
Pasha killed my brother, Foorgat Bey.”

Ebn Ezra fell back as though he had been struck. Swiftly Nahoum told
him the whole truth--even to the picture of the brougham, and the rigid,
upright figure passing through the night to Foorgat’s palace, the gaunt
Mizraim piloting the equipage of death.

“I have held my peace for my own reasons, effendi. Wilt thou then force
me to speak? If thou dost still cherish Claridge Pasha, wilt thou see
him ruined? Naught but ruin could follow the telling of the tale at this
moment--his work, his life, all done. The scandal, the law, vengeance!
But as it is now, Kaid may turn to him again; his work may yet go on--he
has had the luck of angels, and Kaid is fickle. Who can tell?”

Abashed and overwhelmed, Ebn Ezra Bey looked at him keenly. “To tell
of Foorgat Bey would ruin thee also,” he said. “That thou knowest. The
trick--would Kaid forgive it? Claridge Pasha would not be ruined alone.”

“Be it so. If thou goest to Kaid with thy story, I go to Egypt with
mine. Choose.”

Ebn Ezra turned to go. “The high God judge between him and thee,” he
said, and, with bowed head, left the Palace.



CHAPTER XXXIV. NAHOUM DROPS THE MASK “CLARIDGE PASHA!”

At the sound of the words, announced in a loud voice, hundreds of heads
were turned towards the entrance of the vast salon, resplendent with
gilded mirrors, great candelabra and chandeliers, golden hangings, and
divans glowing with robes of yellow silk.

It was the anniversary of Kaid’s succession, and all entitled to come
poured into the splendid chamber. The showy livery of the officials,
the loose, spacious, gorgeous uniforms of the officers, with the curved
jewelled scimitars and white turbans, the rich silk robes of the Ulema,
robe over robe of coloured silk with flowing sleeves and sumptuous
silken vests, the ample dignity of noble-looking Arabs in immense white
turbans, the dark straight Stambouli coat of the officials, made a
picture of striking variety and colour and interest.

About the centre of the room, laying palm to palm again and yet again,
touching lips and forehead and breast, speaking with slow, leisurely,
voices, were two Arab sheikhs from the far Soudan. One of these showed
a singular interest in the movements of Nahoum Pasha as he entered the
chamber, and an even greater interest in David when he was announced;
but as David, in his journey up the chamber, must pass near him, he
drew behind a little group of officials, who whispered to each other
excitedly as David came on. More than once before this same Sheikh
Abdullah had seen David, and once they had met, and had made a treaty of
amity, and Abdullah had agreed to deal in slaves no more; and yet within
three months had sent to Cairo two hundred of the best that could be
found between Khartoum and Senaar. His business, of which Ebn Ezra Bey
had due knowledge, had now been with Nahoum. The business of the other
Arab, a noble-looking and wiry Bedouin from the South, had been with Ebn
Ezra Bey, and each hid his business from his friend. Abdullah murmured
to himself as David passed--a murmur of admiration and astonishment. He
had heard of the disfavour in which the Inglesi was; but, as he looked
at David’s face with its quiet smile, the influence which he felt in the
desert long ago came over him again.

“By Allah,” he said aloud abstractedly, “it is a face that will not hide
when the khamsin blows! Who shall gainsay it? If he were not an infidel
he would be a Mahdi.”

To this his Bedouin friend replied: “As the depths of the pool at Ghebel
Farik, so are his eyes. You shall dip deep and you shall not find the
bottom. Bismillah, I would fight Kaid’s Nubians, but not this infidel
pasha!”

Never had David appeared to such advantage. The victory over himself the
night before, the message of hope that had reached him at the monastery
in the desert, the coming of Lacey, had given him a certain quiet
masterfulness not reassuring to his foes.

As he entered the chamber but now, there flashed into his mind the
scene six years ago when, an absolute stranger, he had stepped into this
Eastern salon, and had heard his name called out to the great throng:
“Claridge efendi!”

He addressed no one, but he bowed to the group of foreign
consuls-general, looking them steadily in the eyes. He knew their
devices and what had been going on of late, he was aware that his fall
would mean a blow to British prestige, and the calmness of his gaze
expressed a fortitude which had a disconcerting effect upon the group.
The British Consul-General stood near by. David advanced to him, and,
as he did so, the few who surrounded the Consul-General fell back. David
held out his hand. Somewhat abashed and ill at ease, the Consul-General
took it.

“Have you good news from Downing Street?” asked David quietly.

The Consul-General hesitated for an instant, and then said: “There is
no help to be had for you or for what you are doing in that quarter.”
 He lowered his voice. “I fear Lord Eglington does not favour you; and he
controls the Foreign Minister. I am very sorry. I have done my best, but
my colleagues, the other consuls, are busy--with Lord Eglington.”

David turned his head away for an instant. Strange how that name sent
a thrill through him, stirred his blood! He did not answer the
Consul-General, and the latter continued:

“Is there any hope? Is the breach with Kaid complete?”

David smiled gravely. “We shall see presently. I have made no change in
my plans on the basis of a breach.”

At that moment he caught sight of Nahoum some distance away and moved
towards him. Out of the corner of his eye Nahoum saw David coming, and
edged away towards that point where Kaid would enter, and where the
crowd was greater. As he did so Kaid appeared. A thrill went through
the chamber. Contrary to his custom, he was dressed in the old native
military dress of Mehemet Ali. At his side was a jewelled scimitar,
and in his turban flashed a great diamond. In his hand he carried a
snuff-box, covered with brilliants, and on his breast were glittering
orders.

The eyes of the reactionaries flashed with sinister pleasure when they
saw Kaid. This outward display of Orientalism could only be a reflex of
the mind. It was the outer symbol of Kaid’s return to the spirit of
the old days, before the influence of the Inglesi came upon him. Every
corrupt and intriguing mind had a palpitation of excitement.

In Nahoum the sight of Kaid produced mixed feelings. If, indeed, this
display meant reaction towards an entourage purely Arab, Egyptian, and
Muslim, then it was no good omen for his Christian self. He drew near,
and placed himself where Kaid could see him. Kaid’s manner was cheerful,
but his face showed the effect of suffering, physical and mental.
Presently there entered behind him Sharif Bey, whose appearance was the
signal for a fresh demonstration. Now, indeed, there could be no doubt
as to Kaid’s reaction. Yet if Sharif had seen Mizraim’s face evilly
gloating near by he would have been less confident.

David was standing where Kaid must see him, but the Effendina gave no
sign of recognition. This was so significant that the enemies of David
rejoiced anew. The day of the Inglesi was over. Again and again did
Kaid’s eye wander over David’s head.

David remained calm and watchful, neither avoiding nor yet seeking the
circle in which Kaid moved. The spirit with which he had entered the
room, however, remained with him, even when he saw Kaid summon to him
some of the most fanatical members of the court circle, and engage them
in talk for a moment. But as this attention grew more marked, a cloud
slowly gathered in the far skies of his mind.

There was one person in the great assembly, however, who seemed to be
unduly confident. It was an ample, perspiring person in evening dress,
who now and again mopped a prematurely bald head, and who said to
himself, as Kaid talked to the reactionaries:

“Say, Kald’s overdoing it. He’s putting potted chicken on the butter.
But it’s working all right-r-i-g-h-t. It’s worth the backsheesh!”

At this moment Kaid fastened David with his look, and spoke in a tone so
loud that people standing at some distance were startled.

“Claridge Pasha!”

In the hush that followed David stepped forward. “May the bounty of the
years be thine, Saadat,” Kaid said in a tone none could misunderstand.

“May no tree in thy orchard wither, Effendina,” answered David in a firm
voice.

Kaid beckoned him near, and again he spoke loudly: “I have proved thee,
and found thee as gold tried seven times by the fire, Saadat. In the
treasury of my heart shall I store thee up. Thou art going to the Soudan
to finish the work Mehemet Ali began. I commend thee to Allah, and will
bid thee farewell at sunrise--I and all who love Egypt.”

There was a sinister smile on his lips, as his eyes wandered over
the faces of the foreign consuls-general. The look he turned on the
intriguers of the Palace was repellent; he reserved for Sharif a moody,
threatening glance, and the desperate hakim shrank back confounded from
it. His first impulse was to flee from the Palace and from Cairo; but he
bethought himself of the assault to be made on Kaid by the tent-maker,
as he passed to the mosque a few hours later, and he determined to
await the issue of that event. Exchanging glances with confederates, he
disappeared, as Kaid laid a hand on David’s arm and drew him aside.

After viewing the great throng cynically for a moment Kaid said:
“To-morrow thou goest. A month hence the hakim’s knife will find the
thing that eats away my life. It may be they will destroy it and save
me; if not, we shall meet no more.”

David looked into his eyes. “Not in a month shall thy work be completed,
Effendina. Thou shalt live. God and thy strong will shall make it so.”

A light stole over the superstitious face. “No device or hatred,
or plot, has prevailed against thee,” Kaid said eagerly. “Thou hast
defeated all--even when I turned against thee in the black blood of
despair. Thou hast conquered me even as thou didst Harrik.”

“Thou dost live,” returned David drily. “Thou dost live for Egypt’s
sake, even as Harrik died for Egypt’s sake, and as others shall die.”

“Death hath tracked thee down how often! Yet with a wave of the hand
thou hast blinded him, and his blow falls on the air. Thou art beset by
a thousand dangers, yet thou comest safe through all. Thou art an honest
man. For that I besought thee to stay with me. Never didst thou lie to
me. Good luck hath followed thee. Kismet! Stay with me, and it may be
I shall be safe also. This thought came to me in the night, and in the
morning was my reward, for Lacey effendi came to me and said, even as
I say now, that thou wilt bring me good luck; and even in that hour, by
the mercy of God, a loan much needed was negotiated. Allah be praised!”

A glint of humour shot into David’s eyes. Lacey--a loan--he read it
all! Lacey had eased the Prince Pasha’s immediate and pressing financial
needs--and, “Allah be praised!” Poor human nature--backsheesh to a
Prince regnant!

“Effendina,” he said presently, “thou didst speak of Harrik. One there
was who saved thee then--”

“Zaida!” A change passed over Kaid’s face.

“Speak! Thou hast news of her? She is gone?” Briefly David told him how
Zaida was found upon her sister’s grave. Kaid’s face was turned away as
he listened.

“She spoke no word of me?” Kaid said at last. “To whom should she
speak?” David asked gently. “But the amulet thou gavest her, set with
one red jewel, it was clasped in her hand in death.”

Suddenly Kaid’s anger blazed. “Now shall Achmet die,” he burst out.
“His hands and feet shall be burnt off, and he shall be thrown to the
vultures.”

“The Place of the Lepers is sacred even from thee, Effendina,” answered
David gravely. “Yet Achmet shall die even as Harrik died. He shall die
for Egypt and for thee, Effendina.”

Swiftly he drew the picture of Achmet at the monastery in the desert.
“I have done the unlawful thing, Effendina,” he said at last, “but thou
wilt make it lawful. He hath died a thousand deaths--all save one.”

“Be it so,” answered Kaid gloomily, after a moment; then his face
lighted with cynical pleasure as he scanned once more the faces of the
crowd before him. At last his eyes fastened on Nahoum. He turned to
David.

“Thou dost still desire Nahoum in his office?” he asked keenly.

A troubled look came into David’s eyes, then it cleared away, and he
said firmly: “For six years we have worked together, Effendina. I am
surety for his loyalty to thee.”

“And his loyalty to thee?”

A pained look crossed over David’s face again, but he said with a will
that fought all suspicion down: “The years bear witness.”

Kaid shrugged his shoulders slightly. “The years have perjured
themselves ere this. Yet, as thou sayest, Nahoum is a Christian,” he
added, with irony scarcely veiled.

Now he moved forward with David towards the waiting court. David
searched the groups of faces for Nahoum in vain. There were things to
be said to Nahoum before he left on the morrow, last suggestions to be
given. Nahoum could not be seen.

Nahoum was gone, as were also Sharif and his confederates, and in
the lofty Mosque of Mahmoud soft lights were hovering, while the
Sheikh-el-Islam waited with Koran and scimitar for the ruler of Egypt to
pray to God and salute the Lord Mahomet.

At the great gateway in the Street of the Tent Makers Kaid paused on his
way to the Mosque Mahmoud. The Gate was studded with thousands of nails,
which fastened to its massive timbers relics of the faithful, bits of
silk and cloth, and hair and leather; and here from time immemorial a
holy man had sat and prayed. At the gateway Kaid salaamed humbly, and
spoke to the holy man, who, as he passed, raised his voice shrilly in
an appeal to Allah, commending Kaid to mercy and everlasting favour.
On every side eyes burned with religious zeal, and excited faces were
turned towards the Effendina. At a certain point there were little
groups of men with faces more set than excited. They had a look of
suppressed expectancy. Kald neared them, passed them, and, as he did
so, they looked at each other in consternation. They were Sharif’s
confederates, fanatics carefully chosen. The attempt on Kaid’s life
should have been made opposite the spot where they stood. They craned
their necks in effort to find the Christian tent-maker, but in vain.

Suddenly they heard a cry, a loud voice calling. It was Rahib the
tent-maker. He was beside Kaid’s stirrups, but no weapon was in his
hand; and his voice was calling blessings down on the Effendina’s head
for having pardoned and saved from death his one remaining son, the joy
of his old age. In all the world there was no prince like Kaid, said the
tent-maker; none so bountiful and merciful and beautiful in the eyes of
men. God grant him everlasting days, the beloved friend of his people,
just to all and greatly to be praised.

As the soldiers drove the old man away with kindly insistence--for Kaid
had thrown him a handful of gold--Mizraim, the Chief Eunuch, laughed
wickedly. As Nahoum had said, the greatest of all weapons was the
mocking finger. He and Mizraim had had their way with the governor
of the prisons, and the murderer had gone in safety, while the father
stayed to bless Kaid. Rahib the tent-maker had fooled the plotters. They
were mad in derision. They did not know that Kaid was as innocent as
themselves of having pardoned the tent-maker’s son. Their moment had
passed; they could not overtake it; the match had spluttered and gone
out at the fuel laid for the fire of fanaticism.

The morning of David’s departure came. While yet it was dark he had
risen, and had made his last preparations. When he came into the open
air and mounted, it was not yet sunrise, and in that spectral early
light, which is all Egypt’s own, Cairo looked like some dream-city in a
forgotten world. The Mokattam Hills were like vast dun barriers guarding
and shutting in the ghostly place, and, high above all, the minarets of
the huge mosque upon the lofty rocks were impalpable fingers pointing
an endless flight. The very trees seemed so little real and substantial
that they gave the eye the impression that they might rise and float
away. The Nile was hung with mist, a trailing cloud unwound from the
breast of the Nile-mother. At last the sun touched the minarets of the
splendid mosque with shafts of light, and over at Ghizeh and Sakkarah
the great pyramids, lifting their heads from the wall of rolling blue
mist below, took the morning’s crimson radiance with the dignity of four
thousand years.

On the decks of the little steamer which was to carry them south David,
Ebn Ezra, Lacey, and Mahommed waited. Presently Kaid came, accompanied
by his faithful Nubians, their armour glowing in the first warm light
of the rising sun, and crowds of people, who had suddenly emerged, ran
shrilling to the waterside behind him.

Kaid’s pale face had all last night’s friendliness, as he bade David
farewell with great honour, and commended him to the care of Allah; and
the swords of the Nubians clashed against their breasts and on their
shields in salaam.

But there was another farewell to make; and it was made as David’s foot
touched the deck of the steamer. Once again David looked at Nahoum as
he had done six years ago, in the little room where they had made their
bond together. There was the same straight look in Nahoum’s eyes. Was he
not to be trusted? Was it not his own duty to trust? He clasped Nahoum’s
hand in farewell, and turned away. But as he gave the signal to start,
and the vessel began to move, Nahoum came back. He leaned over the
widening space and said in a low tone, as David again drew near:

“There is still an account which should be settled, Saadat. It has
waited long; but God is with the patient. There is the account of
Foorgat Bey.”

The light fled from David’s eyes and his heart stopped beating for a
moment. When his eyes saw the shore again Nahoum was gone with Kaid.



CHAPTER XXXV. THE FLIGHT OF THE WOUNDED

       “And Mario can soothe with a tenor note
        The souls in purgatory.”

“Non ti scordar di mi!” The voice rang out with passionate stealthy
sweetness, finding its way into far recesses of human feeling. Women
of perfect poise and with the confident look of luxury and social fame
dropped their eyes abstractedly on the opera-glasses lying in their
laps, or the programmes they mechanically fingered, and recalled, they
knew not why--for what had it to do with this musical narration of a
tragic Italian tale!--the days when, in the first flush of their wedded
life, they had set a seal of devotion and loyalty and love upon their
arms, which, long ago, had gone to the limbo of lost jewels, with the
chaste, fresh desires of worshipping hearts. Young egotists, supremely
happy and defiant in the pride of the fact that they loved each
other, and that it mattered little what the rest of the world enjoyed,
suffered, and endured--these were suddenly arrested in their buoyant and
solitary flight, and stirred restlessly in their seats. Old men whose
days of work were over; who no longer marshalled their legions, or moved
at a nod great ships upon the waters in masterful manoeuvres; whose
voices were heard no more in chambers of legislation, lashing partisan
feeling to a height of cruelty or lulling a storm among rebellious
followers; whose intellects no longer devised vast schemes of finance,
or applied secrets of science to transform industry--these heard the
enthralling cry of a soul with the darkness of eternal loss gathering
upon it, and drew back within themselves; for they too had cried like
this one time or another in their lives. Stricken, they had cried out,
and ambition had fled away, leaving behind only the habit of living, and
of work and duty.

As Hylda, in the Duchess of Snowdon’s box, listened with a face which
showed nothing of what she felt, and looking straight at the stage
before her, the words of a poem she had learned but yesterday came to
her mind, and wove themselves into the music thrilling from the voice in
the stage prison:

  “And what is our failure here but a triumph’s evidence
    For the fulness of the days? Have we withered or agonised?
   Why else was the pause prolonged but that singing might issue
    thence?
    Why rushed the discords in, but that harmony should be prized?”

“And what is our failure here but a triumph’s evidence?” Was it then so?
The long weeks which had passed since that night at Hamley, when she had
told Eglington the truth about so many things, had brought no peace,
no understanding, no good news from anywhere. The morning after she
had spoken with heart laid bare. Eglington had essayed to have a
reconciliation; but he had come as the martyr, as one injured. His
egotism at such a time, joined to his attempt to make light of things,
of treating what had happened as a mere “moment of exasperation,” as
“one of those episodes inseparable from the lives of the high-spirited,”
 only made her heart sink and grow cold, almost as insensible as the
flesh under a spray of ether. He had been neither wise nor patient. She
had not slept after that bitter, terrible scene, and the morning had
found her like one battered by winter seas, every nerve desperately
alert to pain, yet tears swimming at her heart and ready to spring to
her eyes at a touch of the real thing, the true note--and she knew so
well what the true thing was! Their great moment had passed, had left
her withdrawn into herself, firmly, yet without heart, performing the
daily duties of life, gay before the world, the delightful hostess, the
necessary and graceful figure at so many functions.

Even as Soolsby had done, who went no further than to tell Eglington his
dark tale, and told no one else, withholding it from “Our Man”; as Sybil
Lady Eglington had shrunk when she had been faced by her obvious duty,
so Hylda hesitated, but from better reason than either. To do right in
the matter was to strike her husband--it must be a blow now, since her
voice had failed. To do right was to put in the ancient home and house
of Eglington one whom he--with anger and without any apparent desire
to have her altogether for himself, all the riches of her life and
love--had dared to say commanded her sympathy and interest, not because
he was a man dispossessed of his rights, but because he was a man
possessed of that to which he had no right. The insult had stung her,
had driven her back into a reserve, out of which she seemed unable to
emerge. How could she compel Eglington to do right in this thing--do
right by his own father’s son?

Meanwhile, that father’s son was once more imperilling his life, once
more putting England’s prestige in the balance in the Soudan, from which
he had already been delivered twice as though by miracles. Since he had
gone, months before, there had been little news; but there had been
much public anxiety; and she knew only too well that there had been
‘pourparlers’ with foreign ministers, from which no action came
safe-guarding David.

Many a human being has realised the apathy, the partial paralysis of the
will, succeeding a great struggle, which has exhausted the vital forces.
Many a general who has fought a desperate and victorious fight after
a long campaign, and amid all the anxieties and miseries of war, has
failed to follow up his advantage, from a sudden lesion of the power for
action in him. He has stepped from the iron routine of daily effort into
a sudden freedom, and his faculties have failed him, the iron of his
will has vanished. So it was with Hylda. She waited for she knew not
what. Was it some dim hope that Eglington might see the right as she
saw it? That he might realise how unreal was this life they were living,
outwardly peaceful and understanding, deluding the world, but inwardly
a place of tears. How she dreaded the night and its recurrent tears, and
the hours when she could not sleep, and waited for the joyless morning,
as one lost on the moor, blanched with cold, waits for the sun-rise!
Night after night at a certain hour--the hour when she went to bed at
last after that poignant revelation to Eglington--she wept, as she
had wept then, heart-broken tears of disappointment, disillusion,
loneliness; tears for the bitter pity of it all; for the wasting and
wasted opportunities; for the common aim never understood or planned
together; for the precious hours lived in an air of artificial happiness
and social excitement; for a perfect understanding missed; for the touch
which no longer thrilled.

But the end of it all must come. She was looking frail and delicate,
and her beauty, newly refined, and with a fresh charm, as of mystery
or pain, was touched by feverishness. An old impatience once hers was
vanished, and Kate Heaver would have given a month’s wages for one of
those flashes of petulance of other days ever followed by a smile. Now
the smile was all too often there, the patient smile which comes to
those who have suffered. Hardness she felt at times, where Eglington
was concerned, for he seemed to need her now not at all, to be
self-contained, self-dependent--almost arrogantly so; but she did not
show it, and she was outwardly patient.

In his heart of hearts Eglington believed that she loved him, that
her interest in David was only part of her idealistic temperament--the
admiration of a woman for a man of altruistic aims; but his hatred of
David, of what David was, and of his irrefutable claims, reacted on her.
Perverseness and his unhealthy belief that he would master her in the
end, that she would one day break down and come to him, willing to take
his view in all things, and to be his slave--all this drove him farther
and farther on a fatal, ever-broadening path.

Success had spoiled him. He applied his gifts in politics, daringly
unscrupulous, superficially persuasive, intellectually insinuating, to
his wife; and she, who had been captured once by all these things, was
not to be captured again. She knew what alone could capture her; and,
as she sat and watched the singers on the stage now, the divine notes of
that searching melody still lingering in her heart, there came a sudden
wonder whether Eglington’s heart could not be wakened. She knew that
it never had been, that he had never known love, the transfiguring
and reclaiming passion. No, no, surely it could not be too late--her
marriage with him had only come too soon! He had ridden over her without
mercy; he had robbed her of her rightful share of the beautiful and the
good; he had never loved her; but if love came to him, if he could but
once realise how much there was of what he had missed! If he did not
save himself--and her--what would be the end? She felt the cords drawing
her elsewhere; the lure of a voice she had heard in an Egyptian garden
was in her ears. One night at Hamley, in an abandonment of grief-life
hurt her so--she had remembered the prophecy she had once made that she
would speak to David, and that he would hear; and she had risen from her
seat, impelled by a strange new feeling, and had cried: “Speak! speak
to me!” As plainly as she had ever heard anything in her life, she had
heard his voice speak to her a message that sank into the innermost
recesses of her being, and she had been more patient afterwards. She had
no doubt whatever; she had spoken to him, and he had answered; but the
answer was one which all the world might have heard.

Down deep in her nature was an inalienable loyalty, was a simple,
old-fashioned feeling that “they two,” she and Eglington, should cleave
unto each other till death should part. He had done much to shatter
that feeling; but now, as she listened to Mario’s voice, centuries of
predisposition worked in her, and a great pity awoke in her heart. Could
she not save him, win him, wake him, cure him of the disease of Self?

The thought brought a light to her eyes which had not been there
for many a day. Out of the deeps of her soul this mist of a pure
selflessness rose, the spirit of that idealism which was the real chord
of sympathy between her and Egypt.

Yes, she would, this once again, try to win the heart of this man; and
so reach what was deeper than heart, and so also give him that without
which his life must be a failure in the end, as Sybil Eglington had
said. How often had those bitter anguished words of his mother rung in
her ears--“So brilliant and unscrupulous, like yourself; but, oh,
so sure of winning a great place in the world... so calculating and
determined and ambitious!” They came to her now, flashed between
the eager solicitous eyes of her mind and the scene of a perfect and
everlasting reconciliation which it conjured up--flashed and were gone;
for her will rose up and blurred them into mist; and other words of
that true palimpsest of Sybil Eglington’s broken life came instead: “And
though he loves me little, as he loves you little too, yet he is my son,
and for what he is we are both responsible one way or another.” As the
mother, so the wife. She said to herself now in sad paraphrase, “And
though he loves me little, yet he is my husband, and for what he is it
may be that I am in some sense responsible.” Yet he is my husband! All
that it was came to her; the closed door, the drawn blinds; the intimacy
which shut them away from all the world; the things said which can
only be said without desecration between two honest souls who love each
other; and that sweet isolation which makes marriage a separate world,
with its own sacred revelation. This she had known; this had been; and
though the image of the sacred thing had been defaced, yet the shrine
was not destroyed.

For she believed that each had kept the letter of the law; that,
whatever his faults, he had turned his face to no other woman. If she
had not made his heart captive and drawn him by an ever-shortening cord
of attraction, yet she was sure that none other had any influence over
him, that, as he had looked at her in those short-lived days of his
first devotion, he looked at no other. The way was clear yet. There was
nothing irretrievable, nothing irrevocable, which would for ever stain
the memory and tarnish the gold of life when the perfect love should be
minted. Whatever faults of mind or disposition or character were his--or
hers--there were no sins against the pledges they had made, nor the bond
into which they had entered. Life would need no sponge. Memory might
still live on without a wound or a cowl of shame.

It was all part of the music to which she listened, and she was almost
oblivious of the brilliant throng, the crowded boxes, or of the Duchess
of Snowdon sitting near her strangely still, now and again scanning the
beautiful face beside her with a reflective look. The Duchess loved the
girl--she was but a girl, after all--as she had never loved any of her
sex; it had come to be the last real interest of her life. To her eyes,
dimmed with much seeing, blurred by a garish kaleidoscope of fashionable
life, there had come a look which was like the ghost of a look she had,
how many decades ago.

Presently, as she saw Hylda’s eyes withdraw from the stage, and look at
her with a strange, soft moisture and a new light in them, she laid her
fan confidently on her friend’s knee, and said in her abrupt whimsical
voice: “You like it, my darling; your eyes are as big as saucers. You
look as if you’d been seeing things, not things on that silly stage, but
what Verdi felt when he wrote the piece, or something of more account
than that.”

“Yes, I’ve been seeing things,” Hylda answered with a smile which came
from a new-born purpose, the dream of an idealist. “I’ve been seeing
things that Verdi did not see, and of more account, too.... Do you
suppose the House is up yet?”

A strange look flashed into the Duchess’s eyes, which had been watching
her with as much pity as interest. Hylda had not been near the House
of Commons this session, though she had read the reports with her usual
care. She had shunned the place.

“Why, did you expect Eglington?” the Duchess asked idly, yet she was
watchful too, alert for every movement in this life where the footsteps
of happiness were falling by the edge of a precipice, over which she
would not allow herself to look. She knew that Hylda did not expect
Eglington, for the decision to come to the opera was taken at the last
moment.

“Of course not--he doesn’t know we are here. But if it wasn’t too late,
I thought I’d go down and drive him home.”

The Duchess veiled her look. Here was some new development in the
history which had been torturing her old eyes, which had given her and
Lord Windlehurst as many anxious moments as they had known in many a
day, and had formed them into a vigilance committee of two, who waited
for the critical hour when they should be needed.

“We’ll go at once if you like,” she replied. “The opera will be over
soon. We sent word to Windlehurst to join us, you remember, but he won’t
come now; it’s too late. So, we’ll go, if you like.”

She half rose, but the door of the box opened, and Lord Windlehurst
looked in quizzically. There was a smile on his face.

“I’m late, I know; but you’ll forgive me--you’ll forgive me, dear lady,”
 he added to Hylda, “for I’ve been listening to your husband making a
smashing speech for a bad cause.”

Hylda smiled. “Then I must go and congratulate him,” she answered, and
withdrew her hand from that of Lord Windlehurst, who seemed to hold it
longer than usual, and pressed it in a fatherly way.

“I’m afraid the House is up,” he rejoined, as Hylda turned for her
opera-cloak; “and I saw Eglington leave Palace Yard as I came away.” He
gave a swift, ominous glance towards the Duchess, which Hylda caught,
and she looked at each keenly.

“It’s seldom I sit in the Peers’ Gallery,” continued Windlehurst; “I
don’t like going back to the old place much. It seems empty and hollow.
But I wouldn’t have missed Eglington’s fighting speech for a good deal.”

“What was it about?” asked Hylda as they left the box. She had a sudden
throb of the heart. Was it the one great question, that which had been
like a gulf of fire between them?

“Oh, Turkey--the unpardonable Turk,” answered Windlehurst. “As good a
defence of a bad case as I ever heard.”

“Yes, Eglington would do that well,” said the Duchess enigmatically,
drawing her cloak around her and adjusting her hair. Hylda looked at her
sharply, and Lord Windlehurst slyly, but the Duchess seemed oblivious of
having said anything out of the way, and added: “It’s a gift seeing all
that can be said for a bad cause, and saying it, and so making the other
side make their case so strong that the verdict has to be just.”

“Dear Duchess, it doesn’t always work out that way,” rejoined
Windlehurst with a dry laugh. “Sometimes the devil’s advocate wins.”

“You are not very complimentary to my husband,” retorted Hylda, looking
him in the eyes, for she was not always sure when he was trying to
baffle her.

“I’m not so sure of that. He hasn’t won his case yet. He has only staved
off the great attack. It’s coming--soon.”

“What is the great attack? What has the Government, or the Foreign
Office, done or left undone?”

“Well, my dear--” Suddenly Lord Windlehurst remembered himself, stopped,
put up his eyeglass, and with great interest seemed to watch a gay
group of people opposite; for the subject of attack was Egypt and the
Government’s conduct in not helping David, in view not alone of his
present danger, but of the position of England in the country, on which
depended the security of her highway to the East. Windlehurst was a good
actor, and he had broken off his words as though the group he was now
watching had suddenly claimed his attention. “Well, well, Duchess,”
 he said reflectively, “I see a new nine days’ wonder yonder.” Then, in
response to a reminder from Hylda, he continued: “Ah, yes, the attack!
Oh, Persia--Persia, and our feeble diplomacy, my dear lady, though you
mustn’t take that as my opinion, opponent as I am. That’s the charge,
Persia--and her cats.”

The Duchess breathed a sigh of relief; for she knew what Windlehurst had
been going to say, and she shrank from seeing what she felt she would
see, if Egypt and Claridge Pasha’s name were mentioned. That night at
Harnley had burnt a thought into her mind which she did not like. Not
that she had any pity for Eglington; her thought was all for this girl
she loved. No happiness lay in the land of Egypt for her, whatever her
unhappiness here; and she knew that Hylda must be more unhappy still
before she was ever happy again, if that might be. There was that
concerning Eglington which Hylda did not know, yet which she must know
one day--and then! But why were Hylda’s eyes so much brighter and softer
and deeper to-night? There was something expectant, hopeful, brooding in
them. They belonged not to the life moving round her, but were shining
in a land of their own, a land of promise. By an instinct in each of
them they stood listening for a moment to the last strains of the opera.
The light leaped higher in Hylda’s eyes.

“Beautiful--oh, so beautiful!” she said, her hand touching the Duchess’s
arm.

The Duchess gave the slim warm fingers a spasmodic little squeeze. “Yes,
darling, beautiful,” she rejoined; and then the crowd began to pour out
behind them.

Their carriages were at the door. Lord Windlehurst put Hylda in. “The
House is up,” he said. “You are going on somewhere?”

“No--home,” she said, and smiled into his old, kind, questioning eyes.
“Home!”

“Home!” he murmured significantly as he turned towards the Duchess and
her carriage. “Home!” he repeated, and shook his head sadly.

“Shall I drive you to your house?” the Duchess asked.

“No, I’ll go with you to your door, and walk back to my cell. Home!” he
growled to the footman, with a sardonic note in the voice.

As they drove away, the Duchess turned to him abruptly. “What did you
mean by your look when you said you had seen Eglington drive away from
the House?”

“Well, my dear Betty, she--the fly-away--drives him home now. It has
come to that.”

“To her house--Windlehurst, oh, Windlehurst!”

She sank back in the cushions, and gave what was as near a sob as she
had given in many a day. Windlehurst took her hand. “No, not so bad as
that yet. She drove him to his club. Don’t fret, my dear Betty.”

Home! Hylda watched the shops, the houses, the squares, as she passed
westward, her mind dwelling almost happily on the new determination to
which she had come. It was not love that was moving her, not love for
him, but a deeper thing. He had brutally killed love--the full life of
it--those months ago; but there was a deep thing working in her which
was as near nobility as the human mind can feel. Not in a long time
had she neared her home with such expectation and longing. Often on the
doorstep she had shut her eyes to the light and warmth and elegance
of it, because of that which she did not see. Now, with a thrill of
pleasure, she saw its doors open. It was possible Eglington might have
come home already. Lord Windlehurst had said that he had left the House.
She did not ask if he was in--it had not been her custom for a
long time--and servants were curious people; but she looked at the
hall-table. Yes, there was a hat which had evidently just been placed
there, and gloves, and a stick. He was at home, then.

She hurried to her room, dropped her opera-cloak on a chair, looked at
herself in the glass, a little fluttered and critical, and then crossed
the hallway to Eglington’s bedroom. She listened for a moment. There
was no sound. She turned the handle of the door softly, and opened it. A
light was burning low, but the room was empty. It was as she thought,
he was in his study, where he spent hours sometimes after he came home,
reading official papers. She went up the stairs, at first swiftly, then
more slowly, then with almost lagging feet. Why did she hesitate? Why
should a woman falter in going to her husband--to her own one man of
all the world? Was it not, should it not be, ever the open door between
them? Confidence--confidence--could she not have it, could she not get
it now at last? She had paused; but now she moved on with quicker step,
purpose in her face, her eyes softly lighted.

Suddenly she saw on the floor an opened letter. She picked it up, and,
as she did so, involuntarily observed the writing. Almost mechanically
she glanced at the contents. Her heart stood still. The first words
scorched her eyes.

   “Eglington--Harry, dearest,” it said, “you shall not go to sleep
   to-night without a word from me. This will make you think of me
   when....”

Frozen, struck as by a mortal blow, Hylda looked at the signature.
She knew it--the cleverest, the most beautiful adventuress which the
aristocracy and society had produced. She trembled from head to foot,
and for a moment it seemed that she must fall. But she steadied herself
and walked firmly to Eglington’s door. Turning the handle softly, she
stepped inside.

He did not hear her. He was leaning over a box of papers, and they
rustled loudly under his hand. He was humming to himself that song she
heard an hour ago in Il Trovatore, that song of passion and love and
tragedy. It sent a wave of fresh feeling over her. She could not go
on--could not face him, and say what she must say. She turned and passed
swiftly from the room, leaving the door open, and hurried down the
staircase. Eglington heard now, and wheeled round. He saw the open door,
listened to the rustle of her skirts, knew that she had been there. He
smiled, and said to himself:

“She came to me, as I said she would. I shall master her--the full
surrender, and then--life will be easy then.”

Hylda hurried down the staircase to her room, saw Kate Heaver waiting,
beckoned to her, caught up her opera-cloak, and together they passed
down the staircase to the front door. Heaver rang a bell, a footman
appeared, and, at a word, called a cab. A minute later they were ready:

“Snowdon House,” Hylda said; and they passed into the night.



CHAPTER XXXVI. “IS IT ALWAYS SO--IN LIFE?”

The Duchess and her brother, an ex-diplomatist, now deaf and patiently
amiable and garrulous, had met on the doorstep of Snowdon House, and
together they insisted on Lord Windlehurst coming in for a talk. The two
men had not met for a long time, and the retired official had been one
of Lord Windlehurst’s own best appointments in other days. The Duchess
had the carriage wait in consequence.

The ex-official could hear little, but he had cultivated the habit of
talking constantly and well. There were some voices, however, which he
could hear more distinctly than others, and Lord Windlehurst’s was one
of them--clear, well-modulated, and penetrating. Sipping brandy and
water, Lord Windlehurst gave his latest quip. They were all laughing
heartily, when the butler entered the room and said, “Lady Eglington is
here, and wishes to see your Grace.”

As the butler left the room, the Duchess turned despairingly to
Windlehurst, who had risen, and was paler than the Duchess. “It has
come,” she said, “oh, it has come! I can’t face it.”

“But it doesn’t matter about you facing it,” Lord Windlehurst rejoined.
“Go to her and help her, Betty. You know what to do--the one thing.” He
took her hand and pressed it.

She dashed the tears from her eyes and drew herself together, while her
brother watched her benevolently.

He had not heard what was said. Betty had always been impulsive, he
thought to himself, and here was some one in trouble--they all came to
her, and kept her poor.

“Go to bed, Dick,” the Duchess said to him, and hurried from the room.
She did not hesitate now. Windlehurst had put the matter in the right
way. Her pain was nothing, mere moral cowardice; but Hylda--!

She entered the other room as quickly as rheumatic limbs would permit.
Hylda stood waiting, erect, her eyes gazing blankly before her and
rimmed by dark circles, her face haggard and despairing.

Before the Duchess could reach her, she said in a hoarse whisper: “I
have left him--I have left him. I have come to you.”

With a cry of pity the Duchess would have taken the stricken girl in her
arms, but Hylda held out a shaking hand with the letter in it which
had brought this new woe and this crisis foreseen by Lord Windlehurst.
“There--there it is. He goes from me to her--to that!” She thrust the
letter into the Duchess’s fingers. “You knew--you knew! I saw the look
that passed between you and Windlehurst at the opera. I understand all
now. He left the House of Commons with her--and you knew, oh, you knew!
All the world knows--every one knew but me.” She threw up her hands.
“But I’ve left him--I’ve left him, for ever.”

Now the Duchess had her in her arms, and almost forcibly drew her to a
sofa. “Darling, my darling,” she said, “you must not give way. It is not
so bad as you think. You must let me help to make you understand.”

Hylda laughed hysterically. “Not so bad as I think! Read--read it,” she
said, taking the letter from the Duchess’s fingers and holding it before
her face. “I found it on the staircase. I could not help but read it.”
 She sat and clasped and unclasped her hands in utter misery. “Oh, the
shame of it, the bitter shame of it! Have I not been a good wife to him?
Have I not had reason to break my heart? But I waited, and I wanted to
be good and to do right. And to-night I was going to try once more--I
felt it in the opera. I was going to make one last effort for his sake.
It was for his sake I meant to make it, for I thought him only hard and
selfish, and that he had never loved; and if he only loved, I thought--”

She broke off, wringing her hands and staring into space, the ghost of
the beautiful figure that had left the Opera House with shining eyes.

The Duchess caught the cold hands. “Yes, yes, darling, I know. I
understand. So does Windlehurst. He loves you as much as I do. We know
there isn’t much to be got out of life; but we always hoped you would
get more than anybody else.”

Hylda shrank, then raised her head, and looked at the Duchess with an
infinite pathos. “Oh, is it always so--in life? Is no one true? Is every
one betrayed sometime? I would die--yes, a thousand times yes, I would
rather die than bear this. What do I care for life--it has cheated me!
I meant well, and I tried to do well, and I was true to him in word and
deed even when I suffered most, even when--”

The Duchess laid a cheek against the burning head. “I understand, my own
dear. I understand--altogether.”

“But you cannot know,” the broken girl replied; “but through everything
I was true; and I have been tempted too when my heart was aching so,
when the days were so empty, the nights so long, and my heart hurt--hurt
me. But now, it is over, everything is done. You will keep me here--ah,
say you will keep me here till everything can be settled, and I can go
away--far away--far--!”

She stopped with a gasping cry, and her eyes suddenly strained into the
distance, as though a vision of some mysterious thing hung before her.
The Duchess realised that that temptation, which has come to so many
disillusioned mortals, to end it all, to find quiet somehow, somewhere
out in the dark, was upon her. She became resourceful and persuasively
commanding.

“But no, my darling,” she said, “you are going nowhere. Here in London
is your place now. And you must not stay here in my house. You must go
back to your home. Your place is there. For the present, at any rate,
there must be no scandal. Suspicion is nothing, talk is nothing, and the
world forgets--”

“Oh, I do not care for the world or its forgetting!” the wounded girl
replied. “What is the world to me! I wanted my own world, the world
of my four walls, quiet and happy, and free from scandal and shame. I
wanted love and peace there, and now...!”

“You must be guided by those who love you. You are too young to decide
what is best for yourself. You must let Windlehurst and me think for
you; and, oh, my darling, you cannot know how much I care for your best
good!”

“I cannot, will not, bear the humiliation and the shame. This letter
here--you see!”

“It is the letter of a woman who has had more affaires than any man in
London. She is preternaturally clever, my dear--Windlehurst would tell
you so. The brilliant and unscrupulous, the beautiful and the bad, have
a great advantage in this world. Eglington was curious, that is all. It
is in the breed of the Eglingtons to go exploring, to experiment.”

Hylda started. Words from the letter Sybil Lady Eglington had left
behind her rushed into her mind: “Experiment, subterfuge, secrecy.
‘Reaping where you had not sowed, and gathering where you had not
strawed.’ Always experiment, experiment, experiment!”

“I have only been married three years,” she moaned. “Yes, yes, my
darling; but much may happen after three days of married life, and love
may come after twenty years. The human heart is a strange thing.”

“I was patient--I gave him every chance. He has been false and
shameless. I will not go on.”

The Duchess pressed both hands hard, and made a last effort, looking
into the deep troubled eyes with her own grown almost beautiful with
feeling--the faded world-worn eyes.

“You will go back to-night-at once,” she said firmly. “To-morrow you
will stay in bed till noon-at any rate, till I come. I promise you that
you shall not be treated with further indignity. Your friends will stand
by you, the world will be with you, if you do nothing rash, nothing that
forces it to babble and scold. But you must play its game, my dearest.
I’ll swear that the worst has not happened. She drove him to his club,
and, after a man has had a triumph, a woman will not drive him to his
club if--my darling, you must trust me! If there must be the great
smash, let it be done in a way that will prevent you being smashed also
in the world’s eyes. You can live, and you will live. Is there nothing
for you to do? Is there no one for whom you would do something, who
would be heart-broken if you--if you went mad now?”

Suddenly a great change passed over Hylda. “Is there no one for whom
you would do something?” Just as in the desert a question like this had
lifted a man out of a terrible and destroying apathy, so this searching
appeal roused in Hylda a memory and a pledge. “Is there no one for whom
you would do something?” Was life, then, all over? Was her own great
grief all? Was her bitter shame the end?

She got to her feet tremblingly. “I will go back,” she said slowly and
softly.

“Windlehurst will take you home,” the Duchess rejoined eagerly. “My
carriage is at the door.”

A moment afterwards Lord Windlehurst took Hylda’s hands in his and held
them long. His old, querulous eyes were like lamps of safety; his smile
had now none of that cynicism with which he had aroused and chastened
the world. The pitiful understanding of life was there and a consummate
gentleness. He gave her his arm, and they stepped out into the moonlit
night. “So peaceful, so bright!” he said, looking round.

“I will come at noon to-morrow,” called the Duchess from the doorway.

A light was still shining in Eglington’s study when the carriage drove
up. With a latch-key Hylda admitted herself and her maid.

The storm had broken, the flood had come. The storm was over, but the
flood swept far and wide.



CHAPTER XXXVII. THE FLYING SHUTTLE

Hour after hour of sleeplessness. The silver-tongued clock remorselessly
tinkled the quarters, and Hylda lay and waited for them with a hopeless
strained attention. In vain she tried devices to produce that monotony
of thought which sometimes brings sleep. Again and again, as she felt
that sleep was coming at last, the thought of the letter she had found
flashed through her mind with words of fire, and it seemed as if there
had been poured through every vein a subtle irritant. Just such a
surging, thrilling flood she had felt in the surgeon’s chair when she
was a girl and an anesthetic had been given. But this wave of sensation
led to no oblivion, no last soothing intoxication. Its current beat
against her heart until she could have cried out from the mere physical
pain, the clamping grip of her trouble. She withered and grew cold under
the torture of it all--the ruthless spoliation of everything which made
life worth while or the past endurable.

About an hour after she had gone to bed she heard Eglington’s step. It
paused at her door. She trembled with apprehension lest he should enter.
It was many a day since he had done so, but also she had not heard his
step pause at her door for many a day. She could not bear to face it all
now; she must have time to think, to plan her course--the last course
of all. For she knew that the next step must be the last step in her old
life, and towards a new life, whatever that might be. A great sigh of
relief broke from her as she heard his door open and shut, and silence
fell on everything, that palpable silence which seems to press upon the
night-watcher with merciless, smothering weight.

How terribly active her brain was! Pictures--it was all vivid pictures,
that awful visualisation of sorrow which, if it continues, breaks the
heart or wrests the mind from its sanity. If only she did not see! But
she did see Eglington and the Woman together, saw him look into her
eyes, take her hands, put his arm round her, draw her face to his!
Her heart seemed as if it must burst, her lips cried out. With a
great effort of the will she tried to hide from these agonies of the
imagination, and again she would approach those happy confines of sleep,
which are the only refuge to the lacerated heart; and then the weapon of
time on the mantelpiece would clash on the shield of the past, and
she was wide awake again. At last, in desperation, she got out of bed,
hurried to the fireplace, caught the little sharp-tongued recorder in a
nervous grasp, and stopped it.

As she was about to get into bed again, she saw a pile of letters lying
on the table near her pillow. In her agitation she had not noticed
them, and the devoted Heaver had not drawn her attention to them.
Now, however, with a strange premonition, she quickly glanced at the
envelopes. The last one of all was less aristocratic-looking than the
others; the paper of the envelope was of the poorest, and it had a
foreign look. She caught it up with an exclamation. The handwriting was
that of her cousin Lacey.

She got into bed with a mind suddenly swept into a new atmosphere,
and opened the flimsy cover. Shutting her eyes, she lay still for a
moment--still and vague; she was only conscious of one thing, that a
curtain had dropped on the terrible pictures she had seen, and that her
mind was in a comforting quiet. Presently she roused herself, and turned
the letter over in her hand. It was not long--was that because its news
was bad news? The first chronicles of disaster were usually brief! She
smoothed the paper out-it had been crumpled and was a little soiled-and
read it swiftly. It ran:

   DEAR LADY COUSIN--As the poet says, “Man is born to trouble as the
   sparks fly upward,” and in Egypt the sparks set the stacks on fire
   oftener than anywhere else, I guess. She outclasses Mexico as a
   “precious example” in this respect. You needn’t go looking for
   trouble in Mexico; it’s waiting for you kindly. If it doesn’t find
   you to-day, well, manana. But here it comes running like a native
   to his cooking-pot at sunset in Ramadan. Well, there have been
   “hard trials” for the Saadat. His cotton-mills were set on fire-
   can’t you guess who did it? And now, down in Cairo, Nahoum runs
   Egypt; for a messenger that got through the tribes worrying us tells
   us that Kaid is sick, and Nahoum the Armenian says, you shall, and
   you shan’t, now. Which is another way of saying, that between us
   and the front door of our happy homes there are rattlesnakes that
   can sting--Nahoum’s arm is long, and his traitors are crawling under
   the canvas of our tents!

   I’m not complaining for myself. I asked for what I’ve got, and,
   dear Lady Cousin, I put up some cash for it, too, as a man should.
   No, I don’t mind for myself, fond as I am of loafing, sort of
   pottering round where the streets are in the hands of a pure police;
   for I’ve seen more, done more, thought more, up here, than in all my
   life before; and I’ve felt a country heaving under the touch of one
   of God’s men--it gives you minutes that lift you out of the dust and
   away from the crawlers. And I’d do it all over a thousand times for
   him, and for what I’ve got out of it. I’ve lived. But, to speak
   right out plain, I don’t know how long this machine will run.
   There’s been a plant of the worst kind. Tribes we left friendly
   under a year ago are out against us; cities that were faithful have
   gone under to rebels. Nahoum has sowed the land with the tale that
   the Saadat means to abolish slavery, to take away the powers of the
   great sheikhs, and to hand the country over to the Turk. Ebn Ezra
   Bey has proofs of the whole thing, and now at last the Saadat knows
   too late that his work has been spoiled by the only man who could
   spoil it. The Saadat knows it, but does he rave and tear his hair?
   He says nothing. He stands up like a rock before the riot of
   treachery and bad luck and all the terrible burden he has to carry
   here. If he wasn’t a Quaker I’d say he had the pride of an
   archangel. You can bend him, but you can’t break him; and it takes
   a lot to bend him. Men desert, but he says others will come to take
   their place. And so they do. It’s wonderful, in spite of the holy
   war that’s being preached, and all the lies about him sprinkled over
   this part of Africa, how they all fear him, and find it hard to be
   out on the war-path against him. We should be gorging the vultures
   if he wasn’t the wonder he is. We need boats. Does he sit down and
   wring his hands? No, he organises, and builds them--out of scraps.
   Hasn’t he enough food for a long siege? He goes himself to the
   tribes that have stored food in their cities, and haven’t yet
   declared against him, and he puts a hand on their hard hearts, and
   takes the sulkiness out of their eyes, and a fleet of ghiassas comes
   down to us loaded with dourha. The defences of this place are
   nothing. Does he fold his hands like a man of peace that he is,
   and say, ‘Thy will be done’? Not the Saadat. He gets two soldier-
   engineers, one an Italian who murdered his wife in Italy twenty
   years ago, and one a British officer that cheated at cards and had
   to go, and we’ve got defences that’ll take some negotiating. That’s
   the kind of man he is; smiling to cheer others when their hearts are
   in their boots, stern like a commander-in-chief when he’s got to
   punish, and then he does it like steel; but I’ve seen him afterwards
   in his tent with a face that looks sixty, and he’s got to travel a
   while yet before he’s forty. None of us dares be as afraid as we
   could be, because a look at him would make us so ashamed we’d have
   to commit suicide. He hopes when no one else would ever hope. The
   other day I went to his tent to wait for him, and I saw his Bible
   open on the table. A passage was marked. It was this:

   “Behold, I have taken out of thy hand the cup of trembling, even the
   dregs of the cup of my fury; thou shalt no more drink it again: But
   I will put it into the hand of them that afflict thee; which have
   said to thy soul, Bow down, that we may go over; and thou hast laid
   thy body as the ground, and as the street, to them that went over.”

   I’d like to see Nahoum with that cup of trembling in his hand, and
   I’ve got an idea, too, that it will be there yet. I don’t know how
   it is, but I never can believe the worst will happen to the Saadat.
   Reading those verses put hope into me. That’s why I’m writing to
   you, on the chance of this getting through by a native who is
   stealing down the river with a letter from the Saadat to Nahoum, and
   one to Kaid, and one to the Foreign Minister in London, and one to
   your husband. If they reach the hands they’re meant for, it may be
   we shall pan out here yet. But there must be display of power; an
   army must be sent, without delay, to show the traitors that the game
   is up. Five thousand men from Cairo under a good general would do
   it. Will Nahoum send them? Does Kaid, the sick man, know? I’m not
   banking on Kaid. I think he’s on his last legs. Unless pressure is
   put on him, unless some one takes him by the throat and says: If you
   don’t relieve Claridge Pasha and the people with him, you will go to
   the crocodiles, Nahoum won’t stir. So, I am writing to you.
   England can do it. The lord, your husband, can do it. England will
   have a nasty stain on her flag if she sees this man go down without
   a hand lifted to save him. He is worth another Alma to her
   prestige. She can’t afford to see him slaughtered here, where he’s
   fighting the fight of civilisation. You see right through this
   thing, I know, and I don’t need to palaver any more about it. It
   doesn’t matter about me. I’ve had a lot for my money, and I’m no
   use--or I wouldn’t be, if anything happened to the Saadat. No one
   would drop a knife and fork at the breakfast-table when my obit was
   read out--well, yes, there’s one, cute as she can be, but she’s lost
   two husbands already, and you can’t be hurt so bad twice in the same
   place. But the Saadat, back him, Hylda--I’ll call you that at this
   distance. Make Nahoum move. Send four or five thousand men before
   the day comes when famine does its work and they draw the bowstring
   tight.

   Salaam and salaam, and the post is going out, and there’s nothing in
   the morning paper; and, as Aunt Melissa used to say: “Well, so much
   for so much!” One thing I forgot. I’m lucky to be writing to you
   at all. If the Saadat was an old-fashioned overlord, I shouldn’t be
   here. I got into a bad corner three days ago with a dozen Arabs--
   I’d been doing a little work with a friendly tribe all on my own,
   and I almost got caught by this loose lot of fanatics. I shot
   three, and galloped for it. I knew the way through the mines
   outside, and just escaped by the skin of my teeth. Did the Saadat,
   as a matter of discipline, have me shot for cowardice? Cousin
   Hylda, my heart was in my mouth as I heard them yelling behind me--
   and I never enjoyed a dinner so much in my life. Would the Saadat
   have run from them? Say, he’d have stayed and saved his life too.
   Well, give my love to the girls!

          Your affectionate cousin,

                    Tom LACEY.

   P.S.-There’s no use writing to me. The letter service is bad. Send
   a few thousand men by military parcel-post, prepaid, with some red
   seals--majors and colonels from Aldershot will do. They’ll give the
   step to the Gyppies. T.

Hylda closed her eyes. A fever had passed from her veins. Here lay her
duty before her--the redemption of the pledge she had made. Whatever her
own sorrow, there was work before her; a supreme effort must be made for
another. Even now it might be too late. She must have strength for what
she meant to do. She put the room in darkness, and resolutely banished
thought from her mind.

The sun had been up for hours before she waked. Eglington had gone to
the Foreign Office. The morning papers were full of sensational reports
concerning Claridge Pasha and the Soudan. A Times leader sternly
admonished the Government.



CHAPTER XXXVIII. JASPER KIMBER SPEAKS

That day the adjournment of the House of Commons was moved “To call
attention to an urgent matter of public importance”--the position of
Claridge Pasha in the Soudan. Flushed with the success of last night’s
performance, stung by the attacks of the Opposition morning papers,
confident in the big majority behind, which had cheered him a few hours
before, viciously resenting the letter he had received from David that
morning, Eglington returned such replies to the questions put to him
that a fire of angry mutterings came from the forces against him. He
might have softened the growing resentment by a change of manner, but
his intellectual arrogance had control of him for the moment; and he
said to himself that he had mastered the House before, and he would do
so now. Apart from his deadly antipathy to his half-brother, and the
gain to himself--to his credit, the latter weighed with him not so much,
so set was he on a stubborn course--if David disappeared for ever, there
was at bottom a spirit of anti-expansion, of reaction against England’s
world-wide responsibilities. He had no largeness of heart or view
concerning humanity. He had no inherent greatness, no breadth of policy.
With less responsibility taken, there would be less trouble, national
and international--that was his point of view; that had been his view
long ago at the meeting at Heddington; and his weak chief had taken it,
knowing nothing of the personal elements behind.

The disconcerting factor in the present bitter questioning in the House
was, that it originated on his own side. It was Jasper Kimber who had
launched the questions, who moved the motion for adjournment. Jasper had
had a letter from Kate Heaver that morning early, which sent him to her,
and he had gone to the House to do what he thought to be his duty. He
did it boldly, to the joy of the Opposition, and with a somewhat sullen
support from many on his own side. Now appeared Jasper’s own inner
disdain of the man who had turned his coat for office. It gave a lead
to a latent feeling among members of the ministerial party, of distrust,
and of suspicion that they were the dupes of a mind of abnormal
cleverness which, at bottom, despised them.

With flashing eyes and set lips, vigilant and resourceful, Eglington
listened to Jasper Kimber’s opening remarks.

By unremitting industry Jasper had made a place for himself in the
House. The humour and vitality of his speeches, and his convincing
advocacy of the cause of the “factory folk,” had gained him a hearing.
Thickset, under middle size, with an arm like a giant and a throat like
a bull, he had strong common sense, and he gave the impression that he
would wear his heart out for a good friend or a great cause, but that if
he chose to be an enemy he would be narrow, unrelenting, and persistent.
For some time the House had been aware that he had more than a gift for
criticism of the Under-Secretary for Foreign Affairs.

His speech began almost stumblingly, his h’s ran loose, and his grammar
became involved, but it was seen that he meant business, that he had
that to say which would give anxiety to the Government, that he had a
case wherein were the elements of popular interest and appeal, and that
he was thinking and speaking as thousands outside the House would think
and speak.

He had waited for this hour. Indirectly he owed to Claridge Pasha all
that he had become. The day in which David knocked him down saw the
depths of his degradation reached, and, when he got up, it was to start
on a new life uncertainly, vaguely at first, but a new life for all
that. He knew, from a true source, of Eglington’s personal hatred of
Claridge Pasha, though he did not guess their relationship; and all his
interest was enlisted for the man who had, as he knew, urged Kate Heaver
to marry himself--and Kate was his great ambition now. Above and beyond
these personal considerations was a real sense of England’s duty to the
man who was weaving the destiny of a new land.

“It isn’t England’s business?” he retorted, in answer to an interjection
from a faithful soul behind the ministerial Front Bench. “Well, it
wasn’t the business of the Good Samaritan to help the man that had been
robbed and left for dead by the wayside; but he did it. As to David
Claridge’s work, some have said that--I’ve no doubt it’s been said
in the Cabinet, and it is the thing the Under-Secretary would say as
naturally as he would flick a fly from his boots--that it’s a generation
too soon. Who knows that? I suppose there was those that thought John
the Baptist was baptising too soon, that Luther preached too soon, and
Savonarola was in too great a hurry, all because he met his death and
his enemies triumphed--and Galileo and Hampden and Cromwell and John
Howard were all too soon. Who’s to be judge of that? God Almighty puts
it into some men’s minds to work for a thing that’s a great, and maybe
an impossible, thing, so far as the success of the moment is concerned.
Well, for a thing that has got to be done some time, the seed has to
be sown, and it’s always sown by men like Claridge Pasha, who has shown
millions of people--barbarians and half-civilised alike--what a true
lover of the world can do. God knows, I think he might have stayed and
found a cause in England, but he elected to go to the ravaging Soudan,
and he is England there, the best of it. And I know Claridge Pasha--from
his youth up I have seen him, and I stand here to bear witness of what
the working men of England will say to-morrow. Right well the noble
lord yonder knows that what I say is true. He has known it for years.
Claridge Pasha would never have been in his present position, if the
noble lord had not listened to the enemies of Claridge Pasha and of this
country, in preference to those who know and hold the truth as I tell
it here to-day. I don’t know whether the noble lord has repented or not;
but I do say that his Government will rue it, if his answer is not the
one word ‘Intervention!’ Mistaken, rash or not, dreamer if you like,
Claridge Pasha should be relieved now, and his policy discussed
afterwards. I don’t envy the man who holds a contrary opinion; he’ll be
ashamed of it some day. But”--he pointed towards Eglington--“but there
sits the minister in whose hands his fate has been. Let us hope that
this speech of mine needn’t have been made, and that I’ve done injustice
to his patriotism and to the policy he will announce.”

“A set-back, a sharp set-back,” said Lord Windlehurst, in the Peers’
Gallery, as the cheers of the Opposition and of a good number of
ministerialists sounded through the Chamber. There were those on
the Treasury Bench who saw danger ahead. There was an attempt at a
conference, but Kimber’s seconder only said a half-dozen words, and sat
down, and Eglington had to rise before any definite confidences could
be exchanged. One word only he heard behind him as he got up. It was the
word, “Temporise,” and it came from the Prime Minister.

Eglington was in no mood for temporising. Attack only nerved him. He was
a good and ruthless fighter; and last night’s intoxication of success
was still in his brain. He did not temporise. He did not leave a way
of retreat open for the Prime Minister, who would probably wind up the
debate. He fought with skill, but he fought without gloves, and the
House needed gentle handling. He had the gift of effective speech to a
rare degree, and when he liked he could be insinuating and witty, but he
had not genuine humour or good feeling, and the House knew it. In debate
he was biting, resourceful, and unscrupulous. He made the fatal mistake
of thinking that intellect and gifts of fence, followed by a brilliant
peroration, in which he treated the commonplaces of experienced minds
as though they were new discoveries and he was their Columbus, could
accomplish anything. He had never had a political crisis, but one had
come now.

In his reply he first resorted to arguments of high politics,
historical, informative, and, in a sense, commanding; indeed, the House
became restless under what seemed a piece of intellectual dragooning.
Signs of impatience appeared on his own side, and, when he ventured on a
solemn warning about hampering ministers who alone knew the difficulties
of diplomacy and the danger of wounding the susceptibilities of foreign
and friendly countries, the silence was broken by a voice that said
sneeringly, “The kid-glove Government!”

Then he began to lose place with the Chamber. He was conscious of it,
and shifted his ground, pointing out the dangers of doing what the other
nations interested in Egypt were not prepared to do.

“Have you asked them? Have you pressed them?” was shouted across the
House. Eglington ignored the interjections. “Answer! Answer!” was called
out angrily, but he shrugged a shoulder and continued his argument. If
a man insisted on using a flying-machine before the principle was fully
mastered and applied--if it could be mastered and applied--it must not
be surprising if he was killed. Amateurs sometimes took preposterous
risks without the advice of the experts. If Claridge Pasha had asked
the advice of the English Government, or of any of the Chancellories of
Europe, as to his incursions into the Soudan and his premature attempts
at reform, he would have received expert advice that civilisation had
not advanced to that stage in this portion of the world which would
warrant his experiments. It was all very well for one man to run
vast risks and attempt quixotic enterprises, but neither he nor his
countrymen had any right to expect Europe to embroil itself on his
particular account.

At this point he was met by angry cries of dissent, which did not
come from the Opposition alone. His lips set, he would not yield.
The Government could not hold itself responsible for Claridge Pasha’s
relief, nor in any sense for his present position. However, from motives
of humanity, it would make representations in the hope that the Egyptian
Government would act; but it was not improbable, in view of past
experiences of Claridge Pasha, that he would extricate himself from his
present position, perhaps had done so already. Sympathy and sentiment
were natural and proper manifestations of human society, but governments
were, of necessity, ruled by sterner considerations. The House must
realise that the Government could not act as though it were wholly a
free agent, or as if its every move would not be matched by another move
on the part of another Power or Powers.

Then followed a brilliant and effective appeal to his own party to trust
the Government, to credit it with feeling and with a due regard for
English prestige and the honour brought to it by Claridge Pasha’s
personal qualities, whatever might be thought of his crusading
enterprises. The party must not fall into the trap of playing the game
of the Opposition. Then, with some supercilious praise of the “worthy
sentiments” of Jasper Kimber’s speech and a curt depreciation of its
reasoning, he declared that: “No Government can be ruled by clamour. The
path to be trodden by this Government will be lighted by principles
of progress and civilisation, humanity and peace, the urbane power
of reason, and the persuasive influence of just consideration for the
rights of others, rather than the thunder and the threat of the cannon
and the sword!”

He sat down amid the cheers of a large portion of his party, for the end
of his speech had been full of effective if meretricious appeal. But the
debate that followed showed that the speech had been a failure. He had
not uttered one warm or human word concerning Claridge Pasha, and it was
felt and said, that no pledge had been given to insure the relief of the
man who had caught the imagination of England.

The debate was fierce and prolonged. Eglington would not agree to any
modification of his speech, to any temporising. Arrogant and insistent,
he had his way, and, on a division, the Government was saved by a mere
handful of votes--votes to save the party, not to indorse Eglington’s
speech or policy.

Exasperated and with jaw set, but with a defiant smile, Eglington drove
straight home after the House rose. He found Hylda in the library with
an evening paper in her hands. She had read and reread his speech, and
had steeled herself for “the inevitable hour,” to this talk which would
decide for ever their fate and future.

Eglington entered the room smiling. He remembered the incident of the
night before, when she came to his study and then hurriedly retreated.
He had been defiant and proudly disdainful at the House and on the way
home; but in his heart of hearts he was conscious of having failed to
have his own way; and, like such men, he wanted assurance that he could
not err, and he wanted sympathy. Almost any one could have given it
to him, and he had a temptation to seek that society which was his the
evening before; but he remembered that she was occupied where he could
not reach her, and here was Hylda, from whom he had been estranged,
but who must surely have seen by now that at Hamley she had been
unreasonable, and that she must trust his judgment. So absorbed was he
with self and the failure of his speech, that, for a moment, he forgot
the subject of it, and what that subject meant to them both.

“What do you think of my speech, Hylda?” he asked, as he threw himself
into a chair. “I see you have been reading it. Is it a full report?”

She handed the paper over. “Quite full,” she answered evenly.

He glanced down the columns. “Sentimentalists!” he said as his eye
caught an interjection. “Cant!” he added. Then he looked at Hylda, and
remembered once again on whom and what his speech had been made. He saw
that her face was very pale.

“What do you think of my speech?” he repeated stubbornly.

“If you think an answer necessary, I regard it as wicked and
unpatriotic,” she answered firmly.

“Yes, I suppose you would,” he rejoined bitingly. She got to her feet
slowly, a flush passing over her face. “If you think I would, did you
not think that a great many other people would think so too, and for
the same reason?” she asked, still evenly, but very slowly. “Not for the
same reason,” he rejoined in a low, savage voice.

“You do not treat me well,” she said, with a voice that betrayed no
hurt, no indignation. It seemed to state a fact deliberately; that was
all.

“No, please,” she added quickly, as she saw him rise to his feet with
anger trembling at his lips. “Do not say what is on your tongue to say.
Let us speak quietly to-night. It is better; and I am tired of strife,
spoken and unspoken. I have got beyond that. But I want to speak of what
you did to-day in Parliament.”

“Well, you have said it was wicked and unpatriotic,” he rejoined,
sitting down again and lighting a cigar, in an attempt to be composed.

“What you said was that; but I am concerned with what you did. Did your
speech mean that you would not press the Egyptian Government to relieve
Claridge Pasha at once?”

“Is that the conclusion you draw from my words?” he asked.

“Yes; but I wish to know beyond doubt if that is what you mean the
country to believe?”

“It is what I mean you to believe, my dear.”

She shrank from the last two words, but still went on quietly, though
her eyes burned and she shivered. “If you mean that you will do nothing,
it will ruin you and your Government,” she answered. “Kimber was right,
and--”

“Kimber was inspired from here,” he interjected sharply.

She put her hand upon herself. “Do you think I would intrigue against
you? Do you think I would stoop to intrigue?” she asked, a hand clasping
and unclasping a bracelet on her wrist, her eyes averted, for very shame
that he should think the thought he had uttered.

“It came from this house--the influence,” he rejoined.

“I cannot say. It is possible,” she answered; “but you cannot think that
I connive with my maid against you. I think Kimber has reasons of his
own for acting as he did to-day. He speaks for many besides himself; and
he spoke patriotically this afternoon. He did his duty.”

“And I did not? Do you think I act alone?”

“You did not do your duty, and I think that you are not alone
responsible. That is why I hope the Government will be influenced by
public feeling.” She came a step nearer to him. “I ask you to relieve
Claridge Pasha at any cost. He is your father’s son. If you do not, when
all the truth is known, you will find no shelter from the storm that
will break over you.”

“You will tell--the truth?”

“I do not know yet what I shall do,” she answered. “It will depend on
you; but it is your duty to tell the truth, not mine. That does not
concern me; but to save Claridge Pasha does concern me.”

“So I have known.”

Her heart panted for a moment with a wild indignation; but she quieted
herself, and answered almost calmly: “If you refuse to do that which
is honourable--and human, then I shall try to do it for you while yet
I bear your name. If you will not care for your family honour, then I
shall try to do so. If you will not do your duty, then I will try to
do it for you.” She looked him determinedly in the eyes. “Through you I
have lost nearly all I cared to keep in the world. I should like to feel
that in this one thing you acted honourably.”

He sprang to his feet, bursting with anger, in spite of the inward
admonition that much that he prized was in danger, that any breach
with Hylda would be disastrous. But self-will and his native arrogance
overruled the monitor within, and he said: “Don’t preach to me, don’t
play the martyr. You will do this and you will do that! You will save my
honour and the family name! You will relieve Claridge Pasha, you will do
what Governments choose not to do; you will do what your husband chooses
not to do--Well, I say that you will do what your husband chooses to do,
or take the consequences.”

“I think I will take the consequences,” she answered. “I will save
Claridge Pasha, if it is possible. It is no boast. I will do it, if it
can be done at all, if it is God’s will that it should be done; and in
doing it I shall be conscious that you and I will do nothing together
again--never! But that will not stop me; it will make me do it, the last
right thing, before the end.”

She was so quiet, so curiously quiet. Her words had a strange solemnity,
a tragic apathy. What did it mean? He had gone too far, as he had done
before. He had blundered viciously, as he had blundered before.

She spoke again before he could collect his thoughts and make reply.

“I did not ask for too much, I think, and I could have forgiven and
forgotten all the hurts you have given me, if it were not for one thing.
You have been unjust, hard, selfish, and suspicious. Suspicious--of me!
No one else in all the world ever thought of me what you have thought.
I have done all I could. I have honourably kept the faith. But you have
spoiled it all. I have no memory that I care to keep. It is stained.
My eyes can never bear to look upon the past again, the past with
you--never.”

She turned to leave the room. He caught her arm. “You will wait till you
hear what I have to say,” he cried in anger. Her last words had stung
him so, her manner was so pitilessly scornful. It was as though she
looked down on him from a height. His old arrogance fought for mastery
over his apprehension. What did she know? What did she mean? In any
case he must face it out, be strong--and merciful and affectionate
afterwards.

“Wait, Hylda,” he said. “We must talk this out.”

She freed her arm. “There is nothing to talk out,” she answered. “So far
as our relations are concerned, all reason for talk is gone.” She drew
the fatal letter from the sash at her waist. “You will think so too when
you read this letter again.” She laid it on the table beside him, and,
as he opened and glanced at it, she left the room.

He stood with the letter in his hand, dumfounded. “Good God!” he said,
and sank into a chair.



CHAPTER XXXIX. FAITH JOURNEYS TO LONDON

Faith withdrew her eyes from Hylda’s face, and they wandered helplessly
over the room. They saw, yet did not see; and even in her trouble
there was some subconscious sense softly commenting on the exquisite
refinement and gentle beauty which seemed to fill the room; but the
only definite objects which the eyes registered at the moment were the
flowers filling every corner. Hylda had been lightly adjusting a clump
of roses when she entered; and she had vaguely noticed how pale was the
face that bent over the flowers, how pale and yet how composed--as she
had seen a Quaker face, after some sorrow had passed over it, and left
it like a quiet sea in the sun, when wreck and ruin were done. It was
only a swift impression, for she could think of but one thing, David and
his safety. She had come to Hylda, she said, because of Lord Eglington’s
position, and she could not believe that the Government would see
David’s work undone and David killed by the slave-dealers of Africa.

Hylda’s reply had given her no hope that Eglington would keep the
promise he had made that evening long ago when her father had come upon
them by the old mill, and because of which promise she had forgiven
Eglington so much that was hard to forgive. Hylda had spoken with
sorrowful decision, and then this pause had come, in which Faith tried
to gain composure and strength. There was something strangely still in
the two women. From the far past, through Quaker ancestors, there had
come to Hylda now this grey mist of endurance and self-control and
austere reserve. Yet behind it all, beneath it all, a wild heart was
beating.

Presently, as they looked into each other’s eyes, and Faith dimly
apprehended something of Hylda’s distress and its cause, Hylda leaned
over and spasmodically pressed her hand.

“It is so, Faith,” she said. “They will do nothing. International
influences are too strong.” She paused. “The Under-Secretary for Foreign
Affairs will do nothing; but yet we must hope. Claridge Pasha has saved
himself in the past; and he may do so now, even though it is all ten
times worse. Then, there is another way. Nahoum Pasha can save him, if
he can be saved. And I am going to Egypt--to Nahoum.”

Faith’s face blanched. Something of the stark truth swept into her
brain. She herself had suffered--her own life had been maimed, it had
had its secret bitterness. Her love for her sister’s son was that of a
mother, sister, friend combined, and he was all she had in life. That
he lived, that she might cherish the thought of him living, was the
one thing she had; and David must be saved, if that might be; but this
girl--was she not a girl, ten years younger than herself?--to go to
Egypt to do--what? She herself lived out of the world, but she knew the
world! To go to Egypt, and--“Thee will not go to Egypt. What can thee
do?” she pleaded, something very like a sob in her voice. “Thee is but
a woman, and David would not be saved at such a price, and I would not
have him saved so. Thee will not go. Say thee will not. He is all
God has left to me in life; but thee to go--ah, no! It is a bitter
world--and what could thee do?”

Hylda looked at her reflectively. Should she tell Faith all, and take
her to Egypt? No, she could not take her without telling her all, and
that was impossible now. There might come a time when this wise and
tender soul might be taken into the innermost chambers, when all
the truth might be known; but the secret of David’s parentage was
Eglington’s concern most of all, and she would not speak now; and what
was between Nahoum and David was David’s concern; and she had kept his
secret all these years. No, Faith might not know now, and might not come
with her. On this mission she must go alone.

Hylda rose to her feet, still keeping hold of Faith’s hand. “Go back
to Hamley and wait there,” she said, in a colourless voice. “You can do
nothing; it may be I can do much. Whatever can be done I can do, since
England will not act. Pray for his safety. It is all you can do. It is
given to some to work, to others to pray. I must work now.”

She led Faith towards the door; she could not endure more; she must hold
herself firm for the journey and the struggle before her. If she broke
down now she could not go forward; and Faith’s presence roused in her an
emotion almost beyond control.

At the door she took both of Faith’s hands in hers, and kissed her
cheek. “It is your place to stay; you will see that it is best.
Good-bye,” she added hurriedly, and her eyes were so blurred that she
could scarcely see the graceful, demure figure pass into the sunlit
street.

That afternoon Lord Windlehurst entered the Duchess of Snowdon’s
presence hurried and excited. She started on seeing his face.

“What has happened?” she asked breathlessly. “She is gone,” he answered.
“Our girl has gone to Egypt.”

The Duchess almost staggered to her feet. “Windlehurst--gone!” she
gasped.

“I called to see her. Her ladyship had gone into the country, the
footman said. I saw the butler, a faithful soul, who would die--or clean
the area steps--for her. He was discreet; but he knew what you and I are
to her. It was he got the tickets--for Marseilles and Egypt.”

The Duchess began to cry silently. Big tears ran down a face from which
the glow of feeling had long fled, but her eyes were sad enough.

“Gone--gone! It is the end!” was all she could say. Lord Windlehurst
frowned, though his eyes were moist. “We must act at once. You must go
to Egypt, Betty. You must catch her at Marseilles. Her boat does not
sail for three days. She thought it went sooner, as it was advertised to
do. It is delayed--I’ve found that out. You can start to-night, and--and
save the situation. You will do it, Betty?”

“I will do anything you say, as I have always done.” She dried her eyes.

“She is a good girl. We must do all we can. I’ll arrange everything for
you myself. I’ve written this paragraph to go into the papers to-morrow
morning: ‘The Duchess of Snowdon, accompanied by Lady Eglington, left
London last night for the Mediterranean via Calais, to be gone for two
months or more.’ That is simple and natural. I’ll see Eglington. He
must make no fuss. He thinks she has gone to Hamley, so the butler says.
There, it’s all clear. Your work is cut out, Betty, and I know you will
do it as no one else can.”

“Oh, Windlehurst,” she answered, with a hand clutching at his arm, “if
we fail, it will kill me.”

“If she fails, it will kill her,” he answered, “and she is very young.
What is in her mind, who can tell? But she thinks she can help Claridge
somehow. We must save her, Betty.”

“I used to think you had no real feeling, Windlehurst. You didn’t show
it,” she said in a low voice. “Ah, that was because you had too much,”
 he answered. “I had to wait till you had less.” He took out his watch.



CHAPTER XL. HYLDA SEEKS NAHOUM

It was as though she had gone to sleep the night before, and waked
again upon this scene unchanged, brilliant, full of colour, a chaos
of decoration--confluences of noisy, garish streams of life, eddies
of petty labour. Craftsmen crowded one upon the other in dark bazaars;
merchants chattered and haggled on their benches; hawkers clattered and
cried their wares. It was a people that lived upon the streets, for all
the houses seemed empty and forsaken. The sais ran before the Pasha’s
carriage, the donkey-boys shrieked for their right of way, a train
of camels calmly forced its passage through the swirling crowds,
supercilious and heavy-laden.

It seemed but yesterday since she had watched with amused eyes the
sherbet-sellers clanking their brass saucers, the carriers streaming
the water from the bulging goatskins into the earthen bottles, crying,
“Allah be praised, here is coolness for thy throat for ever!” the idle
singer chanting to the soft kanoon, the chess-players in the shade of a
high wall, lost to the world, the dancing-girls with unveiled, shameless
faces, posturing for evil eyes. Nothing had changed these past six
years. Yet everything had changed.

She saw it all as in a dream, for her mind had no time for reverie or
retrospect; it was set on one thing only.

Yet behind the one idea possessing her there was a subconscious self
taking note of all these sights and sounds, and bringing moisture to her
eyes. Passing the house which David had occupied on that night when
he and she and Nahoum and Mizraim had met, the mist of feeling almost
blinded her; for there at the gate sat the bowab who had admitted her
then, and with apathetic eyes had watched her go, in the hour when it
seemed that she and David Claridge had bidden farewell for ever, two
driftwood spars that touched and parted in the everlasting sea. Here
again in the Palace square were Kaid’s Nubians in their glittering
armour as of silver and gold, drawn up as she had seen them drawn then,
to be reviewed by their overlord.

She swept swiftly through the streets and bazaars on her mission to
Nahoum. “Lady Eglington” had asked for an interview, and Nahoum had
granted it without delay. He did not associate her with the girl for
whom David Claridge had killed Foorgat Pey, and he sent his own carriage
to bring her to the Palace. No time had been lost, for it was less than
twenty-four hours since she had arrived in Cairo, and very soon she
would know the worst or the best. She had put her past away for the
moment, and the Duchess of Snowdon had found at Marseilles a silent,
determined, yet gentle-tongued woman, who refused to look back, or to
discuss anything vital to herself and Eglington, until what she had
come to Egypt to do was accomplished. Nor would she speak of the future,
until the present had been fully declared and she knew the fate of David
Claridge. In Cairo there were only varying rumours: that he was still
holding out; that he was lost; that he had broken through; that he was a
prisoner--all without foundation upon which she could rely.

As she neared the Palace entrance, a female fortune-teller ran forward,
thrusting towards her a gazelle’s skin, filled with the instruments of
her mystic craft, and crying out: “I divine-I reveal! What is present
I manifest! What is absent I declare! What is future I show! Beautiful
one, hear me. It is all written. To thee is greatness, and thy heart’s
desire. Hear all! See! Wait for the revealing. Thou comest from afar,
but thy fortune is near. Hear and see. I divine--I reveal. Beautiful
one, what is future I show.”

Hylda’s eyes looked at the poor creature eagerly, pathetically. If it
could only be, if she could but see one step ahead! If the veil
could but be lifted! She dropped some silver into the folds of the
gazelle-skin and waved the Gipsy away. “There is darkness, it is all
dark, beautiful one,” cried the woman after her, “but it shall be light.
I show--I reveal!”

Inside these Palace walls there was a revealer of more merit, as she so
well and bitterly knew. He could raise the veil--a dark and dangerous
necromancer, with a flinty heart and a hand that had waited long to
strike. Had it struck its last blow?

Outside Nahoum’s door she had a moment of utter weakness, when her knees
smote together, and her throat became parched; but before the door had
swung wide and her eyes swept the cool and shadowed room, she was as
composed as on that night long ago when she had faced the man who knew.

Nahoum was standing in a waiting and respectful attitude as she entered.
He advanced towards her and bowed low, but stopped dumfounded, as he saw
who she was. Presently he recovered himself; but he offered no further
greeting than to place a chair for her where her face was in the shadow
and his in the light--time of crisis as it was, she noticed this and
marvelled at him. His face was as she had seen it those years ago. It
showed no change whatever. The eyes looked at her calmly, openly, with
no ulterior thought behind, as it might seem. The high, smooth forehead,
the full but firm lips, the brown, well-groomed beard, were all
indicative of a nature benevolent and refined. Where did the duplicity
lie? Her mind answered its own question on the instant; it lay in
the brain and the tongue. Both were masterly weapons, an armament so
complete that it controlled the face and eyes and outward man into a
fair semblance of honesty. The tongue--she remembered its insinuating
and adroit power, and how it had deceived the man she had come to try
and save. She must not be misled by it. She felt it was to be a struggle
between them, and she must be alert and persuasive, and match him word
for word, move for move.

“I am happy to welcome you here, madame,” he said in English. “It is
years since we met; yet time has passed you by.”

She flushed ever so slightly--compliment from Nahoum Pasha! Yet she must
not resent anything to-day; she must get what she came for, if it was
possible. What had Lacey said? “A few thousand men by parcel-post, and
some red seals-British officers.”

“We meet under different circumstances,” she replied meaningly. “You
were asking a great favour then.”

“Ah, but of you, madame?”

“I think you appealed to me when you were doubtful of the result.”

“Well, madame, it may be so--but, yes, you are right; I thought you were
Claridge Pasha’s kinswoman, I remember.”

“Excellency, you said you thought I was Claridge Pasha’s kinswoman.”

“And you are not?” he asked reflectively.

He did not understand the slight change that passed over her face. His
kinswoman--Claridge Pasha’s kinswoman!

“I was not his kinswoman,” she answered calmly. “You came to ask
a favour then of Claridge Pasha; your life-work to do under him. I
remember your words: ‘I can aid thee in thy great task. Thou wouldst
remake our Egypt, and my heart is with you. I would rescue, not
destroy.... I would labour, but my master has taken away from me the
anvil, the fire, and the hammer, and I sit without the door like an
armless beggar.’ Those were your words, and Claridge Pasha listened and
believed, and saved your life and gave you work; and now again you have
power greater than all others in Egypt.”

“Madame, I congratulate you on a useful memory. May it serve you as the
hill-fountain the garden in the city! Those indeed were my words. I hear
myself from your lips, and yet recognise myself, if that be not vanity.
But, madame, why have you sought me? What is it you wish to know--to
hear?”

He looked at her innocently, as though he did not know her errand; as
though beyond, in the desert, there was no tragedy approaching--or come.

“Excellency, you are aware that I have come to ask for news of Claridge
Pasha.” She leaned forward slightly, but, apart from her tightly
interlaced fingers, it would not have been possible to know that she was
under any strain.

“You come to me instead of to the Effendina. May I ask why, madame? Your
husband’s position--I did not know you were Lord Eglington’s wife--would
entitle you to the highest consideration.”

“I knew that Nahoum Pasha would have the whole knowledge, while the
Effendina would have part only. Excellency, will you not tell me what
news You have? Is Claridge Pasha alive?”

“Madame, I do not know. He is in the desert. He was surrounded. For over
a month there has been no word-none. He is in danger. His way by the
river was blocked. He stayed too long. He might have escaped, but he
would insist on saving the loyal natives, on remaining with them, since
he could not bring them across the desert; and the river and the desert
are silent. Nothing comes out of that furnace yonder. Nothing comes.”

He bent his eyes upon her complacently. Her own dropped. She could not
bear that he should see the misery in them.

“You have come to try and save him, madame. What did you expect to
do? Your Government did not strengthen my hands; your husband did
nothing--nothing that could make it possible for me to act. There are
many nations here, alas! Your husband does not take so great an interest
in the fate of Claridge Pasha as yourself, madame.”

She ignored the insult. She had determined to endure everything, if she
might but induce this man to do the thing that could be done--if it was
not too late. Before she could frame a reply, he said urbanely:

“But that is not to be expected. There was that between Claridge Pasha
and yourself which would induce you to do all you might do for him, to
be anxious for his welfare. Gratitude is a rare thing--as rare as the
flower of the century--aloe; but you have it, madame.”

There was no chance to misunderstand him. Foorgat Bey--he knew the
truth, and had known it all these years.

“Excellency,” she said, “if through me, Claridge Pasha--”

“One moment, madame,” he interrupted, and, opening a drawer, took out
a letter. “I think that what you would say may be found here, with
much else that you will care to know. It is the last news of Claridge
Pasha--a letter from him. I understand all you would say to me; but
he who has most at stake has said it, and, if he failed, do you think,
madame, that you could succeed?”

He handed her the letter with a respectful salutation.

“In the hour he left, madame, he came to know that the name of Foorgat
Bey was not blotted from the book of Time, nor from Fate’s reckoning.”

After all these years! Her instinct had been true, then, that night so
long ago. The hand that took the letter trembled slightly in spite of
her will, but it was not the disclosure Nahoum had made which caused her
agitation. This letter she held was in David Claridge’s hand, the first
she had ever seen, and, maybe, the last that he had ever written, or
that any one would ever see, a document of tears. But no, there were
no tears in this letter! As Hylda read it the trembling passed from her
fingers, and a great thrilling pride possessed her. If tragedy had come,
then it had fallen like a fire from heaven, not like a pestilence rising
from the earth. Here indeed was that which justified all she had done,
what she was doing now, what she meant to do when she had read the last
word of it and the firm, clear signature beneath.

   “Excellency [the letter began in English], I came into the desert
   and into the perils I find here, with your last words in my ear,
   ‘There is the matter of Foorgat Bey.’ The time you chose to speak
   was chosen well for your purpose, but ill for me. I could not turn
   back, I must go on. Had I returned, of what avail? What could I do
   but say what I say here, that my hand killed Foorgat Bey; that I had
   not meant to kill him, though at the moment I struck I took no heed
   whether he lived or died. Since you know of my sorrowful deed, you
   also know why Foorgat Bey was struck down. When, as I left the bank
   of the Nile, your words blinded my eyes, my mind said in its misery:
   ‘Now, I see!’ The curtains fell away from between you and me, and I
   saw all that you had done for vengeance and revenge. You knew all
   on that night when you sought your life of me and the way back to
   Kaid’s forgiveness. I see all as though you spoke it in my ear.
   You had reason to hurt me, but you had no reason for hurting Egypt,
   as you have done. I did not value my life, as you know well, for it
   has been flung into the midst of dangers for Egypt’s sake, how
   often! It was not cowardice which made me hide from you and all the
   world the killing of Foorgat Bey. I desired to face the penalty,
   for did not my act deny all that I had held fast from my youth up?
   But there was another concerned--a girl, but a child in years, as
   innocent and true a being as God has ever set among the dangers of
   this life, and, by her very innocence and unsuspecting nature, so
   much more in peril before such unscrupulous wiles as were used by
   Foorgat Bey.

   “I have known you many years, Nahoum, and dark and cruel as your
   acts have been against the work I gave my life to do, yet I think
   that there was ever in you, too, the root of goodness. Men would
   call your acts treacherous if they knew what you had done; and so
   indeed they were; but yet I have seen you do things to others--not
   to me--which could rise only from the fountain of pure waters. Was
   it partly because I killed Foorgat and partly because I came to
   place and influence and power, that you used me so, and all that I
   did? Or was it the East at war with the West, the immemorial feud
   and foray?

   “This last I will believe; for then it will seem to be something
   beyond yourself--centuries of predisposition, the long stain of the
   indelible--that drove you to those acts of matricide. Ay, it is
   that! For, Armenian as you are, this land is your native land, and
   in pulling down what I have built up--with you, Nahoum, with you--
   you have plunged the knife into the bosom of your mother. Did it
   never seem to you that the work which you did with me was a good
   work--the reduction of the corvee, the decrease of conscription, the
   lessening of taxes of the fellah, the bridges built, the canals dug,
   the seed distributed, the plague stayed, the better dwellings for
   the poor in the Delta, the destruction of brigandage, the slow
   blotting-out of exaction and tyranny under the kourbash, the quiet
   growth of law and justice, the new industries started--did not all
   these seem good to you, as you served the land with me, your great
   genius for finance, ay, and your own purse, helping on the things
   that were dear to me, for Egypt’s sake? Giving with one hand
   freely, did your soul not misgive you when you took away with the
   other?

   “When you tore down my work, you were tearing down your own; for,
   more than the material help I thought you gave in planning and
   shaping reforms, ay, far more than all, was the feeling in me which
   helped me over many a dark place, that I had you with me, that I was
   not alone. I trusted you, Nahoum. A life for a life you might have
   had for the asking; but a long torture and a daily weaving of the
   web of treachery--that has taken more than my life; it has taken
   your own, for you have killed the best part of yourself, that which
   you did with me; and here in an ever-narrowing circle of death I say
   to you that you will die with me. Power you have, but it will
   wither in your grasp. Kaid will turn against you; for with my
   failure will come a dark reaction in his mind, which feels the cloud
   of doom drawing over it. Without me, with my work falling about his
   ears, he will, as he did so short a time ago, turn to Sharif and
   Higli and the rest; and the only comfort you will have will be that
   you destroyed the life of him who killed your brother. Did you love
   your brother? Nay, not more than did I, for I sent his soul into
   the void, and I would gladly have gone after it to ask God for the
   pardon of all his sins--and mine. Think: I hid the truth, but why?
   Because a woman would suffer an unmerited scandal and shame.
   Nothing could recall Foorgat Bey; but for that silence I gave my
   life, for the land which was his land. Do you betray it, then?

   “And now, Nahoum, the gulf in which you sought to plunge me when you
   had ruined all I did is here before me. The long deception has
   nearly done its work. I know from Ebn Ezra Bey what passed between
   you. They are out against me--the slave-dealers--from Senaar to
   where I am. The dominion of Egypt is over here. Yet I could
   restore it with a thousand men and a handful of European officers,
   had I but a show of authority from Cairo, which they think has
   deserted me.

   “I am shut up here with a handful of men who can fight and thousands
   who cannot fight, and food grows scarcer, and my garrison is worn
   and famished; but each day I hearten them with the hope that you
   will send me a thousand men from Cairo. One steamer pounding here
   from the north with men who bring commands from the Effendina, and
   those thousands out yonder beyond my mines and moats and guns will
   begin to melt away. Nahoum, think not that you shall triumph over
   David Claridge. If it be God’s will that I shall die here, my work
   undone, then, smiling, I shall go with step that does not falter, to
   live once more; and another day the work that I began will rise
   again in spite of you or any man.

   “Nahoum, the killing of Foorgat Bey has been like a cloud upon all
   my past. You know me, and you know I do not lie. Yet I do not
   grieve that I hid the thing--it was not mine only; and if ever you
   knew a good woman, and in dark moments have turned to her, glad that
   she was yours, think what you would have done for her, how you would
   have sheltered her against aught that might injure her, against
   those things women are not made to bear. Then think that I hid the
   deed for one who was a stranger to me, whose life must ever lay far
   from mine, and see clearly that I did it for a woman’s sake, and not
   for this woman’s sake; for I had never seen her till the moment I
   struck Foorgat Bey into silence and the tomb. Will you not
   understand, Nahoum?

   “Yonder, I see the tribes that harry me. The great guns firing make
   the day a burden, the nights are ever fretted by the dangers of
   surprise, and there is scarce time to bury the dead whom sickness
   and the sword destroy. From the midst of it all my eyes turn to you
   in Cairo, whose forgiveness I ask for the one injury I did you;
   while I pray that you will seek pardon for all that you have done to
   me and to those who will pass with me, if our circle is broken.
   Friend, Achmet the Ropemaker is here fighting for Egypt. Art thou
   less, then, than Achmet? So, God be with thee.

                    “DAVID CLARIDGE.”

Without a pause Hylda had read the letter from the first word to the
last. She was too proud to let this conspirator and traitor see what
David’s words could do to her. When she read the lines concerning
herself, she became cold from head to foot, but she knew that Nahoum
never took his eyes from her face, and she gave no outward sign of what
was passing within. When she had finished it, she folded it up calmly,
her eyes dwelt for a moment on the address upon the envelope, and then
she handed it back to Nahoum without a word. She looked him in the eyes
and spoke. “He saved your life, he gave you all you had lost. It was not
his fault that Prince Kaid chose him for his chief counsellor. You would
be lying where your brother lies, were it not for Claridge Pasha.”

“It may be; but the luck was with me; and I have my way.”

She drew herself together to say what was hard to say. “Excellency, the
man who was killed deserved to die. Only by lies, only by subterfuge,
only because I was curious to see the inside of the Palace, and because
I had known him in London, did I, without a thought of indiscretion,
give myself to his care to come here. I was so young; I did not know
life, or men--or Egyptians.” The last word was uttered with low scorn.

He glanced up quickly, and for the first time she saw a gleam of malice
in his eyes. She could not feel sorry she had said it, yet she must
remove the impression if possible.

“What Claridge Pasha did, any man would have done, Excellency. He
struck, and death was an accident. Foorgat’s temple struck the corner of
a pedestal.

“His death was instant. He would have killed Claridge Pasha if it
had been possible--he tried to do so. But, Excellency, if you have a
daughter, if you ever had a child, what would you have done if any man
had--”

“In the East daughters are more discreet; they tempt men less,” he
answered quietly, and fingered the string of beads he carried.

“Yet you would have done as Claridge Pasha did. That it was your brother
was an accident, and--”

“It was an accident that the penalty must fall on Claridge Pasha, and
on you, madame. I did not choose the objects of penalty. Destiny chose
them, as Destiny chose Claridge Pasha as the man who should supplant me,
who should attempt to do these mad things for Egypt against the judgment
of the world--against the judgment of your husband. Shall I have
better judgment than the chancellories of Europe and England--and Lord
Eglington?”

“Excellency, you know what moves other nations; but it is for Egypt to
act for herself. You ask me why I did not go to the Effendina. I come to
you because I know that you could circumvent the Effendina, even if he
sent ten thousand men. It is the way in Egypt.”

“Madame, you have insight--will you not look farther still, and see
that, however good Claridge Pasha’s work might be some day in the far
future, it is not good to-day. It is too soon. At the beginning of the
twentieth century, perhaps. Men pay the penalty of their mistakes. A
man’s life”--he watched her closely with his wide, benevolent eyes--“is
neither here nor there, nor a few thousands, in the destiny of a nation.
A man who ventures into a lion’s den must not be surprised if he goes
as Harrik went--ah, perhaps you do not know how Harrik went! A man who
tears at the foundations of a house must not be surprised if the timbers
fall on him and on his workmen. It is Destiny that Claridge Pasha should
be the slayer of my brother, and a danger to Egypt, and one whose life
is so dear to you, madame. You would have it otherwise, and so would
I, but we must take things as they are--and you see that letter. It is
seven weeks since then, and it may be that the circle has been broken.
Yet it may not be so. The circle may be smaller, but not broken.”

She felt how he was tempting her from word to word with a merciless
ingenuity; yet she kept to her purpose; and however hopeless it seemed,
she would struggle on.

“Excellency,” she said in a low, pleading tone, “has he not suffered
enough? Has he not paid the price of that life which you would not bring
back if you could? No, in those places of your mind where no one can see
lies the thought that you would not bring back Foorgat Bey. It is not
an eye for an eye and a tooth for a tooth that has moved you; it has
not been love of Foorgat Bey; it has been the hatred of the East for
the West. And yet you are a Christian! Has Claridge Pasha not suffered
enough, Excellency? Have you not had your fill of revenge? Have you not
done enough to hurt a man whose only crime was that he killed a man to
save a woman, and had not meant to kill?”

“Yet he says in his letter that the thought of killing would not have
stopped him.”

“Does one think at such a moment? Did he think? There was no time. It
was the work of an instant. Ah, Fate was not kind, Excellency! If it
had been, I should have been permitted to kill Foorgat Bey with my own
hands.”

“I should have found it hard to exact the penalty from you, madame.”

The words were uttered in so neutral a way that they were enigmatical,
and she could not take offence or be sure of his meaning.

“Think, Excellency. Have you ever known one so selfless, so good, so
true? For humanity’s sake, would you not keep alive such a man? If there
were a feud as old as Adam between your race and his, would you
not before this life of sacrifice lay down the sword and the bitter
challenge? He gave you his hand in faith and trust, because your God was
his God, your prophet and lord his prophet and lord. Such faith should
melt your heart. Can you not see that he tried to make compensation for
Foorgat’s death, by giving you your life and setting you where you are
now, with power to save or kill him?”

“You call him great; yet I am here in safety, and he is--where he is.
Have you not heard of the strife of minds and wills? He represented the
West, I the East. He was a Christian, so was I; the ground of our battle
was a fair one, and--and I have won.”

“The ground of battle fair!” she protested bitterly. “He did not know
that there was strife between you. He did not fight you. I think that he
always loved you, Excellency. He would have given his life for you, if
it had been in danger. Is there in that letter one word that any man
could wish unwritten when the world was all ended for all men? But no,
there was no strife between you--there was only hatred on your part. He
was so much greater than you that you should feel no rivalry, no strife.
The sword he carries cuts as wide as Time. You are of a petty day in a
petty land. Your mouth will soon be filled with dust, and you will be
forgotten. He will live in the history of the world. Excellency, I plead
for him because I owe him so much: he killed a man and brought upon
himself a lifelong misery for me. It is all I can do, plead to you who
know the truth about him--yes, you know the truth--to make an effort to
save him. It may be too late; but yet God may be waiting for you to lift
your hand. You said the circle may be smaller, but it may be unbroken
still. Will you not do a great thing once, and win a woman’s gratitude,
and the thanks of the world, by trying to save one who makes us think
better of humanity? Will you not have the name of Nahoum Pasha linked
with his--with his who thought you were his friend? Will you not save
him?”

He got slowly to his feet, a strange look in his eyes. “Your words are
useless. I will not save him for your sake; I will not save him for the
world’s sake; I will not save him--”

A cry of pain and grief broke from her, and she buried her face in her
hands.

“--I will not save him for any other sake than his own.”

He paused. Slowly, as dazed as though she had received a blow, Hylda
raised her face and her hands dropped in her lap.

“For any other sake than his own!” Her eyes gazed at him in a
bewildered, piteous way. What did he mean? His voice seemed to come from
afar off.

“Did you think that you could save him? That I would listen to you, if
I did not listen to him? No, no, madame. Not even did he conquer me; but
something greater than himself within himself, it conquered me.”

She got to her feet gasping, her hands stretched out. “Oh, is it
true--is it true?” she cried.

“The West has conquered,” he answered.

“You will help him--you will try to save him?”

“When, a month ago, I read the letter you have read, I tried to save
him. I sent secretly four thousand men who were at Wady Halfa to relieve
him--if it could be done; five hundred to push forward on the quickest
of the armed steamers, the rest to follow as fast as possible. I did
my best. That was a month ago, and I am waiting--waiting and hoping,
madame.”

Suddenly she broke down. Tears streamed from her eyes. She sank into the
chair, and sobs shook her from head to foot.

“Be patient, be composed, madame,” Nahoum said gently. “I have tried you
greatly--forgive me. Nay, do not weep. I have hope. We may hear from
him at any moment now,” he added softly, and there was a new look in his
wide blue eyes as they were bent on her.



CHAPTER XLI. IN THE LAND OF SHINAR

   “Then I said to the angel that talked with me, Whither do these bear
   the Ephah?

   “And he said unto me, To build it an house in the land of Shinar;
   and it shall be established, and set there upon her own base.”

David raised his head from the paper he was studying. He looked at Lacey
sharply. “And how many rounds of ammunition?” he asked.

“Ten thousand, Saadat.”

“How many shells?” he continued, making notes upon the paper before him.

“Three hundred, Saadat.”

“How many hundredweight of dourha?”

“Eighty--about.”

“And how many mouths to feed?”

“Five thousand.”

“How many fighters go with the mouths?”

“Nine hundred and eighty-of a kind.”

“And of the best?’

“Well, say, five hundred.”

“Thee said six hundred three days ago, Lacey.”

“Sixty were killed or wounded on Sunday, and forty I reckon in the
others, Saadat.”

The dark eyes flashed, the lips set. “The fire was sickening--they fell
back?”

“Well, Saadat, they reflected--at the wrong time.”

“They ran?”

“Not back--they were slow in getting on.”

“But they fought it out?”

“They had to--root hog, or die. You see, Saadat, in that five hundred
I’m only counting the invincibles, the up-and-at-’ems, the blind-goers
that ‘d open the lid of Hell and jump in after the enemy.”

The pale face lighted. “So many! I would not have put the estimate half
so high. Not bad for a dark race fighting for they know not what!”

“They know that all right; they are fighting for you, Saadat.”

David seemed not to hear. “Five hundred--so many, and the enemy so near,
the temptation so great.”

“The deserters are all gone to Ali Wad Hei, Saadat. For a month there
have been only the deserted.”

A hardness crept into the dark eyes. “Only the deserted!” He looked out
to where the Nile lost itself in the northern distance. “I asked Nahoum
for one thousand men, I asked England for the word which would send
them. I asked for a thousand, but even two hundred would turn the
scale--the sign that the Inglesi had behind him Cairo and London. Twenty
weeks, and nothing comes!”

He got to his feet slowly and walked up and down the room for a moment,
glancing out occasionally towards the clump of palms which marked
the disappearance of the Nile into the desert beyond his vision. At
intervals a cannon-shot crashed upon the rarefied air, as scores of
thousands had done for months past, torturing to ear and sense and
nerve. The confused and dulled roar of voices came from the distance
also; and, looking out to the landward side, David saw a series of
movements of the besieging forces, under the Arab leader, Ali Wad Hei.
Here a loosely formed body of lancers and light cavalry cantered away
towards the south, converging upon the Nile; there a troop of heavy
cavalry in glistening mail moved nearer to the northern defences; and
between, battalions of infantry took up new positions, while batteries
of guns moved nearer to the river, curving upon the palace north and
south. Suddenly David’s eyes flashed fire. He turned to Lacey eagerly.
Lacey was watching with eyes screwed up shrewdly, his forehead shining
with sweat.

“Saadat,” he said suddenly, “this isn’t the usual set of quadrilles.
It’s the real thing. They’re watching the river--waiting.”

“But south!” was David’s laconic response. At the same moment he struck
a gong. An orderly entered. Giving swift instructions, he turned to
Lacey again. “Not Cairo--Darfur,” he added.

“Ebn Ezra Bey coming! Ali Wad Hei’s got word from up the Nile, I guess.”

David nodded, and his face clouded. “We should have had word also,” he
said sharply.

There was a knock at the door, and Mahommed Hassan entered, supporting
an Arab, down whose haggard face blood trickled from a wound in the
head, while an arm hung limp at his side.

“Behold, Saadat--from Ebn Ezra Bey,” Mahommed said. The man drooped
beside him.

David caught a tin cup from a shelf, poured some liquor into it, and
held it to the lips of the fainting man. “Drink,” he said. The
Arab drank greedily, and, when he had finished, gave a long sigh of
satisfaction. “Let him sit,” David added.

When the man was seated on a sheepskin, the huge Mahommed squatting
behind like a sentinel, David questioned him. “What is thy name--thy
news?” he asked in Arabic.

“I am called Feroog. I come from Ebn Ezra Bey, to whom be peace!” he
answered. “Thy messenger, Saadat, behold he died of hunger and thirst,
and his work became mine. Ebn Ezra Bey came by the river....”

“He is near?” asked David impatiently.

“He is twenty miles away.”

“Thou camest by the desert?”

“By the desert, Saadat, as Ebn Ezra effendi comes.”

“By the desert! But thou saidst he came by the river.”

“Saadat, yonder, forty miles from where we are, the river makes a great
curve. There the effendi landed in the night with four hundred men to
march hither. But he commanded that the boats should come on slowly and
receive the attack in the river, while he came in from the desert.”

David’s eye flashed. “A great device. They will be here by midnight,
then, perhaps?”

“At midnight, Saadat, by the blessing of God.”

“How wert thou wounded?”

“I came upon two of the enemy. They were mounted. I fought them. Upon
the horse of one I came here.”

“The other?”

“God is merciful, Saadat. He is in the bosom of God.”

“How many men come by the river?”

“But fifty, Saadat,” was the answer, “but they have sworn by the stone
in the Kaabah not to surrender.”

“And those who come with the effendi, with Ebn Ezra Bey, are they as
those who will not surrender?”

“Half of them are so. They were with thee, as was I, Saadat, when the
great sickness fell upon us, and were healed by thee, and afterwards
fought with thee.” David nodded abstractedly, and motioned to Mahommed
to take the man away; then he said to Lacey: “How long do you think we
can hold out?”

“We shall have more men, but also more rifles to fire, and more mouths
to fill, if Ebn Ezra gets in, Saadat.”

David raised his head. “But with more rifles to fire away your ten
thousand rounds”--he tapped the paper on the table--“and eat the eighty
hundredweight of dourha, how long can we last?”

“If they are to fight, and with full stomachs, and to stake everything
on that one fight, then we can last two days. No more, I reckon.”

“I make it one day,” answered David. “In three days we shall have no
food, and unless help comes from Cairo, we must die or surrender. It is
not well to starve on the chance of help coming, and then die fighting
with weak arms and broken spirit. Therefore, we must fight to morrow, if
Ebn Ezra gets in to-night. I think we shall fight well,” he added. “You
think so?”

“You are a born fighter, Saadat.”

A shadow fell on David’s face, and his lips tightened. “I was not born a
fighter, Lacey. The day we met first no man had ever died by my hand or
by my will.”

“There are three who must die at sunset--an hour from now-by thy will,
Saadat.”

A startled look came into David’s face. “Who?” he asked.

“The Three Pashas, Saadat. They have been recaptured.”

“Recaptured!” rejoined David mechanically.

“Achmet Pasha got them from under the very noses of the sheikhs before
sunrise this morning.”

“Achmet--Achmet Pasha!” A light came into David’s face again.

“You will keep faith with Achmet, Saadat. He risked his life to get
them. They betrayed you, and betrayed three hundred good men to death.
If they do not die, those who fight for you will say that it doesn’t
matter whether men fight for you or betray you, they get the same stuff
off the same plate. If we are going to fight to-morrow, it ought to be
with a clean bill of health.”

“They served me well so long--ate at my table, fought with me. But--but
traitors must die, even as Harrik died.” A stern look came into his
face. He looked round the great room slowly. “We have done our best,” he
said. “I need not have failed, if there had been no treachery....”

“If it hadn’t been for Nahoum!”

David raised his head. Supreme purpose came into his bearing. A grave
smile played at his lips, as he gave that quick toss of the head which
had been a characteristic of both Eglington and himself. His eyes
shone-a steady, indomitable light. “I will not give in. I still have
hope. We are few and they are many, but the end of a battle has never
been sure. We may not fail even now. Help may come from Cairo even
to-morrow.”

“Say, somehow you’ve always pulled through before, Saadat. When
I’ve been most frightened I’ve perked up and stiffened my backbone,
remembering your luck. I’ve seen a blue funk evaporate by thinking of
how things always come your way just when the worst seems at the worst.”

David smiled as he caught up a small cane and prepared to go. Looking
out of a window, he stroked his thin, clean-shaven face with a lean
finger. Presently a movement in the desert arrested his attention.
He put a field-glass to his eyes, and scanned the field of operations
closely once more.

“Good-good!” he burst out cheerfully. “Achmet has done the one thing
possible. The way to the north will be still open. He has flung his
men between the Nile and the enemy, and now the batteries are at work.”
 Opening the door, they passed out. “He has anticipated my orders,” he
added. “Come, Lacey, it will be an anxious night. The moon is full, and
Ebn Ezra Bey has his work cut out--sharp work for all of us, and...”

Lacey could not hear the rest of his words in the roar of the artillery.
David’s steamers in the river were pouring shot into the desert where
the enemy lay, and Achmet’s “friendlies” and the Egyptians were making
good their new position. As David and Lacey, fearlessly exposing
themselves to rifle fire, and taking the shortest and most dangerous
route to where Achmet fought, rode swiftly from the palace, Ebn Ezra’s
three steamers appeared up the river, and came slowly down to where
David’s gunboats lay. Their appearance was greeted by desperate
discharges of artillery from the forces under Ali Wad Hei, who had
received word of their coming two hours before, and had accordingly
redisposed his attacking forces. But for Achmet’s sharp initiative, the
boldness of the attempt to cut off the way north and south would have
succeeded, and the circle of fire and sword would have been complete.
Achmet’s new position had not been occupied before, for men were too
few, and the position he had just left was now exposed to attack.

Never since the siege began had the foe shown such initiative and
audacity. They had relied on the pressure of famine and decimation by
sickness, the steady effects of sorties, with consequent fatalities and
desertions, to bring the Liberator of the Slaves to his knees. Ebn Ezra
Bey had sought to keep quiet the sheikhs far south, but he had been shut
up in Darffur for months, and had been in as bad a plight as David. He
had, however, broken through at last. His ruse in leaving the steamers
in the night and marching across the desert was as courageous as it was
perilous, for, if discovered before he reached the beleaguered place,
nothing could save his little force from destruction. There was one way
in from the desert to the walled town, and it was through that space
which Achmet and his men had occupied, and on which Ali Wad Hei might
now, at any moment, throw his troops.

David’s heart sank as he saw the danger. From the palace he had sent
an orderly with a command to an officer to move forward and secure the
position, but still the gap was open, and the men he had ordered to
advance remained where they were. Every minute had its crisis.

As Lacey and himself left the town the misery of the place smote him in
the eyes. Filth, refuse, debris filled the streets. Sick and dying men
called to him from dark doorways, children and women begged for bread,
carcasses lay unburied, vultures hovering above them--his tireless
efforts had not been sufficient to cope with the daily horrors of
the siege. But there was no sign of hostility to him. Voices called
blessings on him from dark doorways, lips blanching in death commended
him to Allah, and now and then a shrill call told of a fighter who had
been laid low, but who had a spirit still unbeaten. Old men and women
stood over their cooking-pots waiting for the moment of sunset; for it
was Ramadan, and the faithful fasted during the day--as though every day
was not a fast.

Sunset was almost come, as David left the city and galloped away to
send forces to stop the gap of danger before it was filled by the foe.
Sunset--the Three Pashas were to die at sunset! They were with Achmet,
and in a few moments they would be dead. As David and Lacey rode hard,
they suddenly saw a movement of men on foot at a distant point of the
field, and then a small mounted troop, fifty at most, detach themselves
from the larger force and, in close formation, gallop fiercely down on
the position which Achmet had left. David felt a shiver of anxiety and
apprehension as he saw this sharp, sweeping advance. Even fifty men,
well intrenched, could hold the position until the main body of Ali Wad
Hei’s infantry came on.

They rode hard, but harder still rode Ali Wad Hei’s troop of daring
Arabs. Nearer and nearer they came. Suddenly from the trenches,
which they had thought deserted, David saw jets of smoke rise, and
a half-dozen of the advancing troop fell from their saddles, their
riderless horses galloping on.

David’s heart leaped: Achmet had, then, left men behind, hidden from
view; and these were now defending the position. Again came the jets of
smoke, and again more Arabs dropped from their saddles. But the others
still came on. A thousand feet away others fell. Twenty-two of the fifty
had already gone. The rest fired their rifles as they galloped. But now,
to David’s relief, his own forces, which should have moved half an hour
before, were coming swiftly down to cut off the approach of Ali Wad
Hei’s infantry, and he turned his horse upon the position where a
handful of men were still emptying the saddles of the impetuous enemy.
But now all that were left of the fifty were upon the trenches. Then
came the flash of swords, puffs of smoke, the thrust of lances, and
figures falling from the screaming, rearing horses.

Lacey’s pistol was in his hand, David’s sword was gripped tight, as they
rushed upon the melee. Lacey’s pistol snapped, and an Arab fell; again,
and another swayed in his saddle. David’s sword swept down, and a
turbaned head was gashed by a mortal stroke. As he swung towards another
horseman, who had struck down a defender of the trenches, an Arab raised
himself in his saddle and flung a lance with a cry of terrible malice;
but, even as he did so, a bullet from Lacey’s pistol pierced his
shoulder. The shot had been too late to stop the lance, but sufficient
to divert its course. It caught David in the flesh of the body under the
arm--a slight wound only. A few inches to the right, however, and his
day would have been done.

The remaining Arabs turned and fled. The fight was over. As David,
dismounting, stood with dripping sword in his hand, in imagination, he
heard the voice of Kaid say to him, as it said that night when he killed
Foorgat Bey: “Hast thou never killed a man?”

For an instant it blinded him, then he was conscious that, on the ground
at his feet, lay one of the Three Pashas who were to die at sunset. It
was sunset now, and the man was dead. Another of the Three sat upon the
ground winding his thigh with the folds of a dead Arab’s turban, blood
streaming from his gashed face. The last of the trio stood before David,
stoical and attentive. For a moment David looked at the Three, the
dead man and the two living men, and then suddenly turned to where
the opposing forces were advancing. His own men were now between the
position and Ali Wad Hei’s shouting fanatics. They would be able to
reach and defend the post in time. He turned and gave orders. There
were only twenty men besides the two pashas, whom his commands also
comprised. Two small guns were in place. He had them trained on that
portion of the advancing infantry of Ali Wad Hei not yet covered by his
own forces. Years of work and responsibility had made him master of many
things, and long ago he had learned the work of an artilleryman. In a
moment a shot, well directed, made a gap in the ranks of the advancing
foe. An instant afterwards a shot from the other gun fired by the
unwounded pasha, who, in his youth, had been an officer of artillery,
added to the confusion in the swerving ranks, and the force hesitated;
and now from Ebn Ezra Bey’s river steamers, which had just arrived,
there came a flank fire. The force wavered. From David’s gun another
shot made havoc. They turned and fell back quickly. The situation was
saved.

As if by magic the attack of the enemy all over the field ceased. By
sunset they had meant to finish this enterprise, which was to put
the besieged wholly in their hands, and then to feast after the day’s
fasting. Sunset had come, and they had been foiled; but hunger demanded
the feast. The order to cease firing and retreat sounded, and three
thousand men hurried back to the cooking-pot, the sack of dourha,
and the prayer mat. Malaish, if the infidel Inglesi was not conquered
to-day, he should be beaten and captured and should die to-morrow! And
yet there were those among them who had a well-grounded apprehension
that the “Inglesi” would win in the end.

By the trenches, where five men had died so bravely, and a traitorous
pasha had paid the full penalty of a crime and won a soldier’s death,
David spoke to his living comrades. As he prepared to return to the
city, he said to the unwounded pasha: “Thou wert to die at sunset; it
was thy sentence.”

And the pasha answered: “Saadat, as for death--I am ready to die, but
have I not fought for thee?” David turned to the wounded pasha.

“Why did Achmet Pasha spare thee?”

“He did not spare us, Saadat. Those who fought with us but now were
to shoot us at sunset, and remain here till other troops came. Before
sunset we saw the danger, since no help came. Therefore we fought to
save this place for thee.”

David looked them in the eyes. “Ye were traitors,” he said, “and for an
example it was meet that ye should die. But this that ye have done shall
be told to all who fight to-morrow, and men will know why it is I pardon
treachery. Ye shall fight again, if need be, betwixt this hour and
morning, and ye shall die, if need be. Ye are willing?”

Both men touched their foreheads, their lips, and their breasts.
“Whether it be death or it be life, Inshallah, we are true to thee,
Saadat!” one said, and the other repeated the words after him. As they
salaamed David left them, and rode forward to the advancing forces.

Upon the roof of the palace Mahommed Hassan watched and waited, his eyes
scanning sharply the desert to the south, his ears strained to catch
that stir of life which his accustomed ears had so often detected in the
desert, when no footsteps, marching, or noises could be heard. Below,
now in the palace, now in the defences, his master, the Saadat,
planned for the last day’s effort on the morrow, gave directions to the
officers, sent commands to Achmet Pasha, arranged for the disposition of
his forces, with as strange a band of adherents and subordinates as ever
men had--adventurers, to whom adventure in their own land had brought
no profit; members of that legion of the non-reputable, to whom Cairo
offered no home; Levantines, who had fled from that underground world
where every coin of reputation is falsely minted, refugees from the
storm of the world’s disapproval. There were Greeks with Austrian
names; Armenians, speaking Italian as their native tongue; Italians of
astonishing military skill, whose services were no longer required by
their offended country; French Pizarros with a romantic outlook, even
in misery, intent to find new El Dorados; Englishmen, who had cheated
at cards and had left the Horse Guards for ever behind; Egyptian
intriguers, who had been banished for being less successful than greater
intriguers; but also a band of good gallant men of every nation.

Upon all these, during the siege, Mahommed Hassan had been a
self-appointed spy, and had indirectly added to that knowledge
which made David’s decisive actions to circumvent intrigue and its
consequences seem almost supernatural. In his way Mahommed was a great
man. He knew that David would endure no spying, and it was creditable
to his subtlety and skill that he was able to warn his master, without
being himself suspected of getting information by dark means. On the
palace roof Mahommed was happy to-night. Tomorrow would be a great day,
and, since the Saadat was to control its destiny, what other end could
there be but happiness? Had not the Saadat always ridden over all that
had been in his way? Had not he, Mahommed, ever had plenty to eat and
drink, and money to send to Manfaloot to his father there, and to
bribe when bribing was needed? Truly, life was a boon! With a neboot of
dom-wood across his knees he sat in the still, moonlit night, peering
into that distance whence Ebn Ezra Bey and his men must come, the
moon above tranquil and pleasant and alluring, and the desert beneath,
covered as it was with the outrages and terrors of war, breathing
softly its ancient music, that delicate vibrant humming of the latent
activities. In his uncivilised soul Mahommed Hassan felt this murmur,
and even as he sat waiting to know whether a little army would steal out
of the south like phantoms into this circle the Saadat had drawn round
him, he kept humming to himself--had he not been, was he not now, an
Apollo to numberless houris who had looked down at him from behind
mooshrabieh screens, or waited for him in the palm-grove or the
cane-field? The words of his song were not uttered aloud, but yet he
sang them silently--

  “Every night long and all night my spirit is moaning and crying
   O dear gazelle, that has taken away my peace!
   Ah! if my beloved come not, my eyes will be blinded with weeping
   Moon of my joy, come to me, hark to the call of my soul!”

Over and over he kept chanting the song. Suddenly, however, he leaned
farther forward and strained his ears. Yes, at last, away to the
south-east, there was life stirring, men moving--moving quickly. He
got to his feet slowly, still listening, stood for a moment motionless,
then, with a cry of satisfaction, dimly saw a moving mass in the white
moonlight far over by the river. Ebn Ezra Bey and his men were coming.
He started below, and met David on the way up. He waited till David had
mounted the roof, then he pointed. “Now, Saadat!” he said.

“They have stolen in?” David peered into the misty whiteness.

“They are almost in, Saadat. Nothing can stop them now.”

“It is well done. Go and ask Ebn Ezra effendi to come hither,” he said.

Suddenly a shot was fired, then a hoarse shout came over the desert,
then there was silence again.

“They are in, Saadat,” said Mahommed Hassan.

       .......................

Day broke over a hazy plain. On both sides of the Nile the river mist
spread wide, and the army of Ali Wad Hei and the defending forces were
alike veiled from each other and from the desert world beyond. Down the
river for scores of miles the mist was heavy, and those who moved within
it and on the waters of the Nile could not see fifty feet ahead. Yet
through this heavy veil there broke gently a little fleet of phantom
vessels, the noise of the paddle-wheels and their propellers muffled
as they moved slowly on. Never had vessels taken such risks on the
Nile before, never had pilots trusted so to instinct, for there were
sand-banks and ugly drifts of rock here and there. A safe journey for
phantom ships; but these armed vessels, filled by men with white, eager
faces and others with dark Egyptian features, were no phantoms. They
bristled with weapons, and armed men crowded every corner of space.
For full two hours from the first streak of light they had travelled
swiftly, taking chances not to be taken save in some desperate moment.
The moment was desperate enough, if not for them. They were going to
the relief of besieged men, with a message from Nahoum Pasha to Claridge
Pasha, and with succour. They had looked for a struggle up this river as
they neared the beleaguered city; but, as they came nearer and nearer,
not a gun fired at them from the forts on the banks out of the mists. If
they were heard they still were safe from the guns, for they could not
be seen, and those on shore could not know whether they were friend or
foe. Like ghostly vessels they passed on, until at last they could hear
the stir and murmur of life along the banks of the stream.

Boom! boom! boom! Through the mist the guns of the city were pouring
shot and shell out into Ali Wad Hei’s camp, and Ali Wad Hei laughed
contemptuously. Surely now the Inglesi was altogether mad, and to-day,
this day after prayers at noon, he should be shot like a mad dog, for
yesterday’s defeat had turned some of his own adherent sheikhs into
angry critics. He would not wait for starvation to compel the infidel
to surrender. He would win freedom to deal in human flesh and blood, and
make slave-markets where he willed, and win glory for the Lord Mahomet,
by putting this place to the sword; and, when it was over, he would have
the Inglesi’s head carried on a pole through the city for the faithful
to mock at, a target for the filth of the streets. So, by the will of
Allah, it should be done!

Boom! boom! boom! The Inglesi was certainly mad, for never had there
been so much firing in any long day in all the siege as in this brief
hour this morning. It was the act of a fool, to fire his shot and shell
into the mist without aim, without a clear target. Ali Wad Hei scorned
to make any reply with his guns, but sat in desultory counsel with his
sheikhs, planning what should be done when the mists had cleared away.
But yesterday evening the Arab chief had offered to give the Inglesi
life if he would surrender and become a Muslim, and swear by the Lord
Mahomet; but late in the night he had received a reply which left only
one choice, and that was to disembowel the infidel, and carry his head
aloft on a spear. The letter he had received ran thus in Arabic:

   “To Ali Wad Hei and All with Him:

   “We are here to live or to die as God wills, and not as ye will. I
   have set my feet on the rock, and not by threats of any man shall I
   be moved. But I say that for all the blood that ye have shed here
   there will be punishment, and for the slaves which ye have slain or
   sold there will be high price paid. Ye have threatened the city and
   me--take us if ye can. Ye are seven to one. Why falter all these
   months? If ye will not come to us, we shall come to you, rebellious
   ones, who have drawn the sword against your lawful ruler, the
   Effendina.

                  “CLARIDGE PASHA”


It was a rhetorical document couched in the phraseology they best
understood; and if it begat derision, it also begat anger; and the
challenge David had delivered would be met when the mists had lifted
from the river and the plain. But when the first thinning of the mists
began, when the sun began to dissipate the rolling haze, Ali Wad Hei
and his rebel sheikhs were suddenly startled by rifle-fire at close
quarters, by confused noises, and the jar and roar of battle. Now the
reason for the firing of the great guns was plain. The noise was meant
to cover the advance of David’s men. The little garrison, which had done
no more than issue in sorties, was now throwing its full force on the
enemy in a last desperate endeavour. It was either success or absolute
destruction. David was staking all, with the last of his food, the
last of his ammunition, the last of his hopes. All round the field the
movement was forward, till the circle had widened to the enemy’s lines;
while at the old defences were only handfuls of men. With scarce a cry
David’s men fell on the unprepared foe; and he himself, on a grey Arab,
a mark for any lance or spear and rifle, rode upon that point where Ali
Wad Hei’s tent was set.

But after the first onset, in which hundreds were killed, there began
the real noise of battle--fierce shouting, the shrill cries of wounded
and maddened horses as they struck with their feet, and bit as fiercely
at the fighting foe as did their masters. The mist cleared slowly, and,
when it had wholly lifted, the fight was spread over every part of the
field of siege. Ali Wad Hei’s men had gathered themselves together after
the first deadly onslaught, and were fighting fiercely, shouting the
Muslim battle-cry, “Allah hu achbar!” Able to bring up reinforcements,
the great losses at first sustained were soon made up, and the sheer
weight of numbers gave them courage and advantage. By rushes with lance
and sword and rifle they were able, at last, to drive David’s men back
upon their old defences with loss. Then charge upon charge ensued, and
each charge, if it cost them much, cost the besieged more, by reason of
their fewer numbers. At one point, however, the besieged became again
the attacking party. This was where Achmet Pasha had command. His men on
one side of the circle, as Ebn Ezra Bey’s men on the other, fought with
a valour as desperate as the desert ever saw. But David, galloping here
and there to order, to encourage, to prevent retreat at one point, or
to urge attack at another, saw that the doom of his gallant force was
certain; for the enemy were still four to one, in spite of the carnage
of the first attack. Bullets hissed past him. One carried away a button,
one caught the tip of his ear, one pierced the fez he wore; but he
felt nothing of this, saw nothing. He was buried in the storm of battle
preparing for the end, for the final grim defence, when his men would
retreat upon the one last strong fort, and there await their fate. From
this absorption he was roused by Lacey, who came galloping towards him.

“They’ve come, Saadat, they’ve come at last! We’re saved--oh, my God,
you bet we’re all right now! See! See, Saadat!”

David saw. Five steamers carrying the Egyptian flag were bearing around
the point where the river curved below the town, and converging upon
David’s small fleet. Presently the steamers opened fire, to encourage
the besieged, who replied with frenzied shouts of joy, and soon there
poured upon the sands hundreds of men in the uniform of the Effendina.
These came forward at the double, and, with a courage which nothing
could withstand, the whole circle spread out again upon the discomfited
tribes of Ali Wad Hei. Dismay, confusion, possessed the Arabs. Their
river-watchers had failed them, God had hidden His face from them; and
when Ali Wad Hei and three of his emirs turned and rode into the desert,
their forces broke and ran also, pursued by the relentless men who had
suffered the tortures of siege so long. The chase was short, however,
for they were desert folk, and they returned to loot the camp which had
menaced them so long.

Only the new-comers, Nahoum’s men, carried the hunt far; and they
brought back with them a body which their leader commanded to be brought
to a great room of the palace. Towards sunset David and Ebn Ezra Bey and
Lacey came together to this room. The folds of loose linen were lifted
from the face, and all three looked at it long in silence. At last Lacey
spoke:

“He got what he wanted; the luck was with him. It’s better than
Leperland.”

“In the bosom of Allah there is peace,” said Ebn Ezra. “It is well with
Achmet.”

With misty eyes David stooped and took the dead man’s hand in his for a
moment. Then he rose to his feet and turned away.

“And Nahoum also--and Nahoum,” he said presently. “Read this,” he added,
and put a letter from Nahoum into Ebn Ezra’s hand.

Lacey reverently covered Achmet’s face. “Say, he got what he wanted,” he
said again.



CHAPTER XLII. THE LOOM OF DESTINY

It was many a day since the Duchess of Snowdon had seen a sunrise, and
the one on which she now gazed from the deck of the dahabieh Nefert,
filled her with a strange new sense of discovery and revelation.
Her perceptions were arrested and a little confused, and yet the
undercurrent of feeling was one of delight and rejuvenation. Why did
this sunrise bring back, all at once, the day when her one lost child
was born, and she looked out of the windows of Snowdon Hall, as she lay
still and nerveless, and thought how wonderful and sweet and green was
the world she saw and the sky that walled it round? Sunrise over the
Greek Temple of Philae and the splendid ruins of a farther time towering
beside it! In her sight were the wide, islanded Nile, where Cleopatra
loitered with Antony, the foaming, crashing cataracts above, the great
quarries from which ancient temples had been hewed, unfinished obelisks
and vast blocks of stone left where bygone workmen had forsaken them,
when the invader came and another dynasty disappeared into that partial
oblivion from which the Egyptian still emerges triumphant over all his
conquerors, unchanged in form and feature. Something of its meaning got
into her mind.

“I wonder what Windlehurst would think of it. He always had an eye for
things like that,” she murmured; and then caught her breath, as she
added: “He always liked beauty.” She looked at her wrinkled, childish
hands. “But sunsets never grow old,” she continued, with no apparent
relevance. “La, la, we were young once!”

Her eyes were lost again in the pinkish glow spreading over the
grey-brown sand of the desert, over the palm-covered island near. “And
now it’s others’ turn, or ought to be,” she murmured.

She looked to where, not far away, Hylda stood leaning over the railing
of the dahabieh, her eyes fixed in reverie on the farthest horizon line
of the unpeopled, untravelled plain of sand.

“No, poor thing, it’s not her turn,” she added, as Hylda, with a long
sigh, turned and went below. Tears gathered in her pale blue eyes. “Not
yet--with Eglington alive. And perhaps it would be best if the other
never came back. I could have made the world better worth living in if I
had had the chance--and I wouldn’t have been a duchess! La! La!”

She relapsed into reverie, an uncommon experience for her; and her
mind floated indefinitely from one thing to another, while she was half
conscious of the smell of coffee permeating the air, and of the low
resonant notes of the Nubian boys, as, with locked shoulders, they
scrubbed the decks of a dahabieh near by with hempshod feet.

Presently, however, she was conscious of another sound--the soft clip
of oars, joined to the guttural, explosive song of native rowers; and,
leaning over the rail, she saw a boat draw alongside the Nefert. From
it came the figure of Nahoum Pasha, who stepped briskly on deck, in his
handsome face a light which flashed an instant meaning to her.

“I know--I know! Claridge Pasha--you have heard?” she said excitedly, as
he came to her.

He smiled and nodded. “A messenger has arrived. Within a few hours he
should be here.”

“Then it was all false that he was wounded--ah, that horrible story of
his death!”

“Bismillah, it was not all false! The night before the great battle he
was slightly wounded in the side. He neglected it, and fever came on;
but he survived. His first messengers to us were killed, and that is
why the news of the relief came so late. But all is well at last. I have
come to say so to Lady Eglington--even before I went to the Effendina.”
 He made a gesture towards a huge and gaily-caparisoned dahabieh not far
away. “Kaid was right about coming here. His health is better. He never
doubted Claridge Pasha’s return; it was une idee fixe. He believes a
magic hand protects the Saadat, and that, adhering to him, he himself
will carry high the flower of good fortune and live for ever. Kismet!
I will not wait to see Lady Eglington. I beg to offer to her my
congratulations on the triumph of her countryman.”

His words had no ulterior note; but there was a shadow in his eyes which
in one not an Oriental would have seemed sympathy.

“Pasha, Pasha!” the Duchess called after him, as he turned to leave;
“tell me, is there any news from England--from the Government?”

“From Lord Eglington? No,” Nahoum answered meaningly. “I wrote to him.
Did the English Government desire to send a message to Claridge Pasha,
if the relief was accomplished? That is what I asked. But there is no
word. Malaish, Egypt will welcome him!”

She followed his eyes. Two score of dahabiehs lay along the banks of the
Nile, and on the shore were encampments of soldiers, while flags
were flying everywhere. Egypt had followed the lead of the Effendina.
Claridge Pasha’s star was in its zenith.

As Nahoum’s boat was rowed away, Hylda came on deck again, and the
Duchess hastened to her. Hylda caught the look in her face. “What has
happened? Is there news? Who has been here?” she asked.

The Duchess took her hands. “Nahoum has gone to tell Prince Kaid. He
came to you with the good news first,” she said with a flutter.

She felt Hylda’s hands turn cold. A kind of mist filled the dark eyes,
and the slim, beautiful figure swayed slightly. An instant only, and
then the lips smiled, and Hylda said in a quavering voice: “They will be
so glad in England.”

“Yes, yes, my darling, that is what Nahoum said.” She gave Nahoum’s
message to her. “Now they’ll make him a peer, I suppose, after having
deserted him. So English!”

She did not understand why Hylda’s hands trembled so, why so strange a
look came into her face, but, in an instant, the rare and appealing eyes
shone again with a light of agitated joy, and suddenly Hylda leaned over
and kissed her cheek.

“Smell the coffee,” she said with assumed gaiety. “Doesn’t
fair-and-sixty want her breakfast? Sunrise is a splendid tonic.” She
laughed feverishly.

“My darling, I hadn’t seen the sun rise in thirty years, not since the
night I first met Windlehurst at a Foreign Office ball.”

“You have always been great friends?” Hylda stole a look at her.

“That’s the queer part of it; I was so stupid, and he so clever. But
Windlehurst has a way of letting himself down to your level. He always
called me Betty after my boy died, just as if I was his equal. La, la,
but I was proud when he first called me that--the Prime Minister of
England. I’m going to watch the sun rise again to-morrow, my darling.
I didn’t know it was so beautiful, and gave one such an appetite.” She
broke a piece of bread, and, not waiting to butter it, almost stuffed it
into her mouth.

Hylda leaned over and pressed her arm. “What a good mother Betty it is!”
 she said tenderly.

Presently they were startled by the shrill screaming of a steamer
whistle, followed by the churning of the paddles, as she drove past and
drew to the bank near them.

“It is a steamer from Cairo, with letters, no doubt,” said Hylda; and
the Duchess nodded assent, and covertly noted her look, for she knew
that no letters had arrived from Eglington since Hylda had left England.

A half-hour later, as the Duchess sat on deck, a great straw hat tied
under her chin with pale-blue ribbons, like a child of twelve, she was
startled by seeing the figure of a farmer-looking person with a shock of
grey-red hair, a red face, and with great blue eyes, appear before her
in the charge of Hylda’s dragoman.

“This has come to speak with my lady,” the dragoman said, “but my lady
is riding into the desert there.” He pointed to the sands.

The Duchess motioned the dragoman away, and scanned the face of the
new-comer shrewdly. Where had she seen this strange-looking English
peasant, with the rolling walk of a sailor?

“What is your name, and where do you come from?” she asked, not without
anxiety, for there was something ominous and suggestive in the old man’s
face.

“I come from Hamley, in England, and my name is Soolsby, your grace. I
come to see my Lady Eglington.”

Now she remembered him. She had seen him in Hamley more than once.

“You have come far; have you important news for her ladyship? Is there
anything wrong?” she asked with apparent composure, but with heavy
premonition.

“Ay, news that counts, I bring,” answered Soolsby, “or I hadn’t come
this long way. ‘Tis a long way at sixty-five.”

“Well, yes, at our age it is a long way,” rejoined the Duchess in a
friendly voice, suddenly waving away the intervening air of class, for
she was half a peasant at heart.

“Ay, and we both come for the same end, I suppose,” Soolsby added;
“and a costly business it is. But what matters, so be that you help her
ladyship and I help Our Man.”

“And who is ‘Our Man’?” was the rejoinder. “Him that’s coming safe here
from the South--David Claridge,” he answered. “Ay, ‘twas the first thing
I heard when I landed here, me that he come all these thousand miles
to see him, if so be he was alive.” Just then he caught sight of Kate
Heaver climbing the stair to the deck where they were. His face flushed;
he hurried forward and gripped her by the arm, as her feet touched the
upper deck. “Kate-ay, ‘tis Kate!” he cried. Then he let go her arm and
caught a hand in both of his and fondled it. “Ay, ay, ‘tis Kate!” “What
is it brings you, Soolsby?” Kate asked anxiously.

“‘Tis not Jasper, and ‘tis not the drink-ay, I’ve been sober since, ever
since, Kate, lass,” he answered stoutly. “Quick, quick, tell me what it
is!” she said, frowning. “You’ve not come here for naught, Soolsby.”

Still holding her hand, he leaned over and whispered in her ear. For an
instant she stood as though transfixed, and then, with a curious muffled
cry, broke away from him and turned to go below.

“Keep your mouth shut, lass, till proper time,” he called after her, as
she descended the steps hastily again. Then he came slowly back to the
Duchess.

He looked her in the face--he was so little like a peasant, so much more
like a sailor here with his feet on the deck of a floating thing. “Your
grace is a good friend to her ladyship,” he said at last deliberately,
“and ‘tis well that you tell her ladyship. As good a friend to her
you’ve been, I doubt not, as that I’ve been to him that’s coming from
beyond and away.”

“Go on, man, go on. I want to know what startled Heaver yonder, what you
have come to say.”

“I beg pardon, your grace. One doesn’t keep good news waiting, and
‘tis not good news for her ladyship I bring, even if it be for Claridge
Pasha, for there was no love lost ‘twixt him and second-best lordship
that’s gone.”

“Speak, man, speak it out, and no more riddles,” she interrupted
sharply.

“Then, he that was my Lord Eglington is gone foreign--he is dead,” he
said slowly.

The Duchess fell back in her chair. For an instant the desert, the
temples, the palms, the Nile waters faded, and she was in some middle
world, in which Soolsby’s voice seemed coming muffled and deep across
a dark flood; then she recovered herself, and gave a little cry, not
unlike that which Kate gave a few moments before, partly of pain, partly
of relief.

“Ay, he’s dead and buried, too, and in the Quaker churchyard. Miss
Claridge would have it so. And none in Hamley said nay, not one.”

The Duchess murmured to herself. Eglington was dead--Eglington was
dead--Eglington was dead! And David Claridge was coming out of the
desert, was coming to-day-now!

“How did it happen?” she asked, faintly, at last.

“Things went wrong wi’ him--bad wrong in Parliament and everywhere, and
he didn’t take it well. He stood the world off like-ay, he had no temper
for black days. He shut himself up at Hamley in his chemical place, like
his father, like his father before him. When the week-end came, there he
was all day and night among his bottles and jars and wires. He was after
summat big in experiment for explosives, so the papers said, and so he
said himself before he died, to Miss Claridge--ay, ‘twas her he deceived
and treated cruel, that come to him when he was shattered by his
experimenting. No patience, he had at last--and reckless in his chemical
place, and didn’t realise what his hands was doing. ‘Twas so he told
her, that forgave him all his deceit, and held him in her arms when he
died. Not many words he had to speak; but he did say that he had never
done any good to any one--ay, I was standing near behind his bed and
heard all, for I was thinking of her alone with him, and so I would be
with her, and she would have it so. Ay, and he said that he had misused
cruel her that had loved him, her ladyship, that’s here. He said he
had misused her because he had never loved her truly, only pride and
vainglory being in his heart. Then he spoke summat to her that was there
to forgive him and help him over the stile ‘twixt this field and it
that’s Beyond and Away, which made her cry out in pain and say that he
must fix his thoughts on other things. And she prayed out loud for him,
for he would have no parson there. She prayed and prayed as never priest
or parson prayed, and at last he got quiet and still, and, when she
stopped praying, he did not speak or open his eyes for a longish while.
But when the old clock on the stable was striking twelve, he opened his
eyes wide, and when it had stopped, he said: ‘It is always twelve by
the clock that stops at noon. I’ve done no good. I’ve earned my end.’
He looked as though he was waiting for the clock to go on striking,
half raising himself up in bed, with Miss Faith’s arm under his head.
He whispered to her then--he couldn’t speak by this time. ‘It’s twelve
o’clock,’ he said. Then there came some words I’ve heard the priest say
at Mass, ‘Vanitas, Vanitatum,’--that was what he said. And her he’d lied
to, there with him, laying his head down on the pillow, as if he was her
child going to sleep. So, too, she had him buried by her father, in the
Quaker burying-ground--ay, she is a saint on earth, I warrant.”

For a moment after he had stopped the Duchess did not speak, but kept
untying and tying the blue ribbons under her chin, her faded eyes still
fastened on him, burning with the flame of an emotion which made them
dark and young again.

“So, it’s all over,” she said, as though to herself. “They were all
alike, from old Broadbrim, the grandfather, down to this one, and back
to William the Conqueror.”

“Like as peas in a pod,” exclaimed Soolsby--“all but one, all but one,
and never satisfied with what was in their own garden, but peeking,
peeking beyond the hedge, and climbing and getting a fall. That’s what
they’ve always been evermore.”

His words aroused the Duchess, and the air became a little colder about
her-after all, the division between the classes and the masses must be
kept, and the Eglingtons were no upstarts. “You will say nothing about
this till I give you leave to speak,” she commanded. “I must tell her
ladyship.”

Soolsby drew himself up a little, nettled at her tone. “It is your
grace’s place to tell her ladyship,” he responded; “but I’ve taken ten
years’ savings to come to Egypt, and not to do any one harm, but good,
if so be I might.”

The Duchess relented at once. She got to her feet as quickly as she
could, and held out her hand to him. “You are a good man, and a
friend worth having, I know, and I shall like you to be my friend, Mr.
Soolsby,” she said impulsively.

He took her hand and shook it awkwardly, his lips working. “Your grace,
I understand. I’ve got naught to live for except my friends. Money’s
naught, naught’s naught, if there isn’t a friend to feel a crunch at his
heart when summat bad happens to you. I’d take my affydavy that there’s
no better friend in the world than your grace.”

She smiled at him. “And so we are friends, aren’t we? And I am to tell
her ladyship, and you are to say ‘naught.’

“But to the Egyptian, to him, your grace, it is my place to speak--to
Claridge Pasha, when he comes.” The Duchess looked at him quizzically.
“How does Lord Eglington’s death concern Claridge Pasha?” she asked
rather anxiously. Had there been gossip about Hylda? Had the public got
a hint of the true story of her flight, in spite of all Windlehurst had
done? Was Hylda’s name smirched, now, when all would be set right? Had
everything come too late, as it were?

“There’s two ways that his lordship’s death concerns Claridge Pasha,”
 answered Soolsby shrewdly, for though he guessed the truth concerning
Hylda and David, his was not a leaking tongue. “There’s two ways it
touches him. There’ll be a new man in the Foreign Office--Lord Eglington
was always against Claridge Pasha; and there’s matters of land betwixt
the two estates--matters of land that’s got to be settled now,” he
continued, with determined and successful evasion.

The Duchess was deceived. “But you will not tell Claridge Pasha until I
have told her ladyship and I give you leave? Promise that,” she urged.

“I will not tell him until then,” he answered. “Look, look, your grace,”
 he added, suddenly pointing towards the southern horizon, “there he
comes! Ay, ‘tis Our Man, I doubt not--Our Man evermore!”

Miles away there appeared on the horizon a dozen camels being ridden
towards Assouan.

“Our Man evermore,” repeated the Duchess, with a trembling smile. “Yes,
it is surely he. See, the soldiers are moving. They’re going to ride out
to meet him.” She made a gesture towards the far shore where Kaid’s men
were saddling their horses, and to Nahoum’s and Kaid’s dahabiehs, where
there was a great stir.

“There’s one from Hamley will meet them first,” Soolsby said, and
pointed to where Hylda, in the desert, was riding towards the camels
coming out of the south.

The Duchess threw up her hands. “Dear me, dear me,” she said in
distress, “if she only knew!”

“There’s thousands of women that’d ride out mad to meet him,” said
Soolsby carefully; “women that likes to see an Englishman that’s done
his duty--ay, women and men, that’d ride hard to welcome him back from
the grave. Her ladyship’s as good a patriot as any,” he added, watching
the Duchess out of the corners of his eyes, his face turned to the
desert.

The Duchess looked at him quizzically, and was satisfied with her
scrutiny. “You’re a man of sense,” she replied brusquely, and gathered
up her skirts. “Find me a horse or a donkey, and I’ll go too,” she added
whimsically. “Patriotism is such a nice sentiment.”

For David and Lacey the morning had broken upon a new earth. Whatever
of toil and tribulation the future held in store, this day marked a
step forward in the work to which David had set his life. A way had been
cloven through the bloody palisades of barbarism, and though the dark
races might seek to hold back the forces which drain the fens, and build
the bridges, and make the desert blossom as the rose, which give liberty
and preserve life, the good end was sure and near, whatever of rebellion
and disorder and treachery intervened. This was the larger, graver
issue; but they felt a spring in the blood, and their hearts were
leaping, because of the thought that soon they would clasp hands again
with all from which they had been exiled.

“Say, Saadat, think of it: a bed with four feet, and linen sheets,
and sleeping till any time in the morning, and, If you please, sir,
breakfast’s on the table.’ Say, it’s great, and we’re in it!”

David smiled. “Thee did very well, friend, without such luxuries. Thee
is not skin and bone.”

Lacey mopped his forehead. “Well, I’ve put on a layer or two since
the relief. It’s being scared that takes the flesh off me. I never was
intended for the ‘stricken field.’ Poetry and the hearth-stone was my
real vocation--and a bit of silver mining to blow off steam with,” he
added with a chuckle.

David laughed and tapped his arm. “That is an old story now, thy
cowardice. Thee should be more original.

“It’s worth not being original, Saadat, to hear you thee and thou me
as you used to do. It’s like old times--the oldest, first times. You’ve
changed a lot, Saadat.”

“Not in anything that matters, I hope.”

“Not in anything that matters to any one that matters. To me it’s the
same as it ever was, only more so. It isn’t that, for you are you. But
you’ve had disappointment, trouble, hard nuts to crack, and all you
could do to escape the rocks being rolled down the Egyptian hill onto
you; and it’s left its mark.”

“Am I grown so different?”

Lacey’s face shone under the look that was turned towards him. “Say,
Saadat, you’re the same old red sandstone; but I missed the thee and
thou. I sort of hankered after it; it gets me where I’m at home with
myself.”

David laughed drily. “Well, perhaps I’ve missed something in you. Thee
never says now--not since thee went south a year ago, ‘Well, give my
love to the girls.’ Something has left its mark, friend,” he added
teasingly; for his spirits were boyish to-day; he was living in the
present. There had gone from his eyes and from the lines of his figure
the melancholy which Hylda had remarked when he was in England.

“Well, now, I never noticed,” rejoined Lacey. “That’s got me. Looks as
if I wasn’t as friendly as I used to be, doesn’t it? But I am--I am,
Saadat.”

“I thought that the widow in Cairo, perhaps--” Lacey chuckled. “Say,
perhaps it was--cute as she can be, maybe, wouldn’t like it, might be
prejudiced.”

Suddenly David turned sharply to Lacey. “Thee spoke of silver mining
just now. I owe thee something like two hundred thousand pounds, I
think--Egypt and I.”

Lacey winked whimsically at himself under the rim of his helmet. “Are
you drawing back from those concessions, Saadat?” he asked with apparent
ruefulness.

“Drawing back? No! But does thee think they are worth--”

Lacey assumed an injured air. “If a man that’s made as much money as me
can’t be trusted to look after a business proposition--”

“Oh, well, then!”

“Say, Saadat, I don’t want you to think I’ve taken a mean advantage of
you; and if--”

David hastened to put the matter right. “No, no; thee must be the
judge!” He smiled sceptically. “In any case, thee has done a good deed
in a great way, and it will do thee no harm in the end. In one way the
investment will pay a long interest, as long as the history of Egypt
runs. Ah, see, the houses of Assouan, the palms, the river, the masts of
the dahabiehs!”

Lacey quickened his camel’s steps, and stretched out a hand to the
inviting distance. “‘My, it’s great,” he said, and his eyes were
blinking with tears. Presently he pointed. “There’s a woman riding
to meet us, Saa dat. Golly, can’t she ride! She means to be in it--to
salute the returning brave.”

He did not glance at David. If he had done so, he would have seen that
David’s face had taken on a strange look, just such a look as it wore
that night in the monastery when he saw Hylda in a vision and heard her
say: “Speak, speak to me!”

There had shot into David’s mind the conviction that the woman
riding towards them was Hylda. Hylda, the first to welcome him back,
Hylda--Lady Eglington! Suddenly his face appeared to tighten and grow
thin. It was all joy and torture at once. He had fought this fight out
with himself--had he not done so? Had he not closed his heart to all
but duty and Egypt? Yet there she was riding out of the old life, out
of Hamley, and England, and all that had happened in Cairo, to meet him.
Nearer and nearer she came. He could not see the face, but yet he
knew. He quickened his camel and drew ahead of Lacey. Lacey did not
understand, he did not recognise Hylda as yet; but he knew by instinct
the Saadat’s wishes, and he motioned the others to ride more slowly,
while he and they watched horsemen coming out from Assouan towards them.

David urged his camel on. Presently he could distinguish the features
of the woman riding towards him. It was Hylda. His presentiment, his
instinct had been right. His heart beat tumultuously, his hand trembled,
he grew suddenly weak; but he summoned up his will, and ruled himself to
something like composure. This, then, was his home-coming from the
far miseries and trials and battle-fields--to see her face before all
others, to hear her voice first. What miracle had brought this thing to
pass, this beautiful, bitter, forbidden thing? Forbidden! Whatever the
cause of her coming, she must not see what he felt for her. He must deal
fairly by her and by Eglington; he must be true to that real self which
had emerged from the fiery trial in the monastery. Bronzed as he was,
his face showed no paleness; but, as he drew near her, it grew pinched
and wan from the effort at self-control. He set his lips and rode on,
until he could see her eyes looking into his--eyes full of that which he
had never seen in any eyes in all the world.

What had been her feelings during that ride in the desert? She had not
meant to go out to meet him. After she heard that he was coming, her
desire was to get away from all the rest of the world, and be alone with
her thoughts. He was coming, he was safe, and her work was done. What
she had set out to do was accomplished--to bring him back, if it was
God’s will, out of the jaws of death, for England’s sake, for the
world’s sake, for his sake, for her own sake. For her own sake? Yes,
yes, in spite of all, for her own sake. Whatever lay before, now, for
this one hour, for this moment of meeting he should be hers. But meet
him, where? Before all the world, with a smile of conventional welcome
on her lips, with the same hand-clasp that any friend and lover of
humanity would give him?

The desert air blew on her face, keen, sweet, vibrant, thrilling. What
he had heard that night at the monastery, the humming life of the land
of white fire--the desert, the million looms of all the weavers of the
world weaving, this she heard in the sunlight, with the sand rising
like surf behind her horse’s heels. The misery and the tyranny and the
unrequited love were all behind her, the disillusion and the loss and
the undeserved insult to her womanhood--all, all were sunk away into the
unredeemable past. Here, in Egypt, where she had first felt the stir of
life’s passion and pain and penalty, here, now, she lost herself in a
beautiful, buoyant dream. She was riding out to meet the one man of all
men, hero, crusader, rescuer--ah, that dreadful night in the Palace, and
Foorgat’s face! But he was coming, who had made her live, to whom she
had called, to whom her soul had spoken in its grief and misery. Had she
ever done aught to shame the best that was in herself--and had she not
been sorely tempted? Had she not striven to love Eglington even when
the worst was come, not alone at her own soul’s command, but because she
knew that this man would have it so? Broken by her own sorrow, she had
left England, Eglington--all, to keep her pledge to help him in his hour
of need, to try and save him to the world, if that might be. So she had
come to Nahoum, who was binding him down on the bed of torture and of
death. And yet, alas! not herself had conquered Nahoum, but David, as
Nahoum had said. She herself had not done this one thing which would
have compensated for all that she had suffered. This had not been
permitted; but it remained that she had come here to do it, and perhaps
he would understand when he saw her.

Yes, she knew he would understand! She flung up her head to the sun
and the pulse-stirring air, and, as she did so, she saw his cavalcade
approaching. She was sure it was he, even when he was far off, by the
same sure instinct that convinced him. For an instant she hesitated. She
would turn back, and meet him with the crowd. Then she looked around.
The desert was deserted by all save herself and himself and those who
were with him. No. Her mind was made up. She would ride forward. She
would be the first to welcome him back to life and the world. He and she
would meet alone in the desert. For one minute they would be alone, they
two, with the world afar, they two, to meet, to greet--and to part. Out
of all that Fate had to give of sorrow and loss, this one delectable
moment, no matter what came after.

“David!” she cried with beating heart, and rode on, harder and harder.

Now she saw him ride ahead of the others. Ah, he knew that it was she,
though he could not see her face! Nearer and nearer. Now they looked
into each other’s eyes.

She saw him stop his camel and make it kneel for the dismounting. She
stopped her horse also, and slid to the ground, and stood waiting, one
hand upon the horse’s neck. He hastened forward, then stood still, a few
feet away, his eyes on hers, his helmet off, his brown hair, brown as
when she first saw it--peril and hardship had not thinned or greyed it.
For a moment they stood so, for a moment of revealing and understanding,
but speechless; and then, suddenly, and with a smile infinitely
touching, she said, as he had heard her say in the monastery--the very
words:

“Speak--speak to me!”

He took her hand in his. “There is no need--I have said all,” he
answered, happiness and trouble at once in his eyes. Then his face grew
calmer. “Thee has made it worth while living on,” he added.

She was gaining control of herself also. “I said that I would come when
I was needed,” she answered less, tremblingly.

“Thee came alone?” he asked gently.

“From Assouan, yes,” she said in a voice still unsteady. “I was riding
out to be by myself, and then I saw you coming, and I rode on. I thought
I should like to be the first to say: ‘Well done,’ and ‘God bless you!’”

He drew in a long breath, then looked at her keenly. “Lord Eglington is
in Egypt also?” he asked.

Her face did not change. She looked him in the eyes.

“No, Eglington would not come to help you. I came to Nahoum, as I said I
would.”

“Thee has a good memory,” he rejoined simply. “I am a good friend,” she
answered, then suddenly her face flushed up, her breast panted, her eyes
shone with a brightness almost intolerable to him, and he said in a low,
shaking voice:

“It is all fighting, all fighting. We have done our best; and thee has
made all possible.”

“David!” she said in a voice scarce above a whisper.

“Thee and me have far to go,” he said in a voice not louder than her
own, “but our ways may not be the same.”

She understood, and a newer life leaped up in her. She knew that he
loved her--that was sufficient; the rest would be easier now. Sacrifice,
all, would be easier. To part, yes, and for evermore; but to know that
she had been truly loved--who could rob her of that?

“See,” she said lightly, “your people are waiting--and there, why, there
is my cousin Lacey. Tom, oh, Cousin Tom!” she called eagerly.

Lacey rode down on them. “I swan, but I’m glad,” he said, as he dropped
from his horse. “Cousin Hylda, I’m blest if I don’t feel as if I could
sing like Aunt Melissa.”

“You may kiss me, Cousin Tom,” she said, as she took his hands in hers.

He flushed, was embarrassed, then snatched a kiss from her cheek. “Say,
I’m in it, ain’t I? And you were in it first, eh, Cousin Hylda? The
rest are nowhere--there they come from Assouan, Kaid, Nahoum, and the
Nubians. Look at ‘em glisten!”

A hundred of Kaid’s Nubians in their glittering armour made three sides
of a quickly moving square, in the centre of which, and a little
ahead, rode Kaid and Nahoum, while behind the square-in parade and gala
dress-trooped hundreds of soldiers and Egyptians and natives.

Swiftly the two cavalcades approached each other, the desert ringing
with the cries of the Bedouins, the Nubians, and the fellaheen. They
met on an upland of sand, from which the wide valley of the Nile and its
wild cataracts could be seen. As men meet who parted yesterday, Kaid,
Nahoum, and David met, but Kaid’s first quiet words to David had behind
them a world of meaning:

“I also have come back, Saadat, to whom be the bread that never moulds
and the water that never stales!” he said, with a look in his face which
had not been there for many a day. Superstition had set its mark on
him--on Claridge Pasha’s safety depended his own, that was his belief;
and the look of this thin, bronzed face, with its living fire, gave him
vital assurance of length of days.

And David answered: “May thy life be the nursling of Time, Effendina.
I bring the tribute of the rebel lions once more to thy hand. What was
thine, and was lost, is thine once more. Peace and salaam!” Between
Nahoum and David there were no words at first at all. They shook hands
like Englishmen, looking into each other’s eyes, and with pride of what
Nahoum, once, in his duplicity, had called “perfect friendship.”

Lacey thought of this now as he looked on; and not without a sense of
irony, he said under his breath, “Almost thou persuadest me to be a
Christian!”

But in Hylda’s look, as it met Nahoum’s, there was no doubt--what woman
doubts the convert whom she thinks she has helped to make? Meanwhile,
the Nubians smote their mailed breasts with their swords in honour of
David and Kaid.

Under the gleaming moon, the exquisite temple of Philae perched on its
high rock above the river, the fires on the shore, the masts of the
dahabiehs twinkling with lights, and the barbarous songs floating across
the water, gave the feeling of past centuries to the scene. From the
splendid boat which Kaid had placed at his disposal David looked out
upon it all, with emotions not yet wholly mastered by the true estimate
of what this day had brought to him. With a mind unsettled he listened
to the natives in the forepart of the boat and on the shore, beating the
darabukkeh and playing the kemengeh. Yet it was moving in a mist and on
a flood of greater happiness than he had ever known.

He did not know as yet that Eglington was gone for ever. He did not know
that the winds of time had already swept away all traces of the house of
ambition which Eglington had sought to build; and that his nimble tongue
and untrustworthy mind would never more delude and charm, and wanton
with truth. He did not know, but within the past hour Hylda knew; and
now out of the night Soolsby came to tell him.

He was roused from his reverie by Soolsby’s voice saying: “Hast nowt to
say to me, Egyptian?”

It startled him, sounded ghostly in the moonlight; for why should he
hear Soolsby’s voice on the confines of Egypt? But Soolsby came nearer,
and stood where the moonlight fell upon him, hat in hand, a rustic
modern figure in this Oriental world.

David sprang to his feet and grasped the old man by the shoulders.
“Soolsby, Soolsby,” he said, with a strange plaintive-note in his voice,
yet gladly, too. “Soolsby, thee is come here to welcome me! But has she
not come--Miss Claridge, Soolsby?”

He longed for that true heart which had never failed him, the simple
soul whose life had been filled by thought and care of him, and whose
every act had for its background the love of sister for brother--for
that was their relation in every usual meaning--who, too frail and
broken to come to him now, waited for him by the old hearthstone. And
so Soolsby, in his own way, made him understand; for who knew them both
better than this old man, who had shared in David’s destiny since the
fatal day when Lord Eglington had married Mercy Claridge in secret, had
set in motion a long line of tragic happenings?

“Ay, she would have come, she would have come,” Soolsby answered, “but
she was not fit for the journey, and there was little time, my lord.”

“Why did thee come, Soolsby? Only to welcome me back?”

“I come to bring you back to England, to your duty there, my lord.”

The first time Soolsby had used the words “my lord,” David had scarcely
noticed it, but its repetition struck him strangely.

“Here, sometimes they call me Pasha and Saadat, but I am not ‘my lord,’”
 he said.

“Ay, but you are my lord, Egyptian, as sure as I’ve kept my word to you
that I’d drink no more, ay, on my sacred honour. So you are my lord; you
are Lord Eglington, my lord.”

David stood rigid and almost unblinking as Soolsby told his tale,
beginning with the story of Eglington’s death, and going back all the
years to the day of Mercy Claridge’s marriage.

“And him that never was Lord Eglington, your own father’s son, is dead
and gone, my lord; and you are come into your rights at last.” This was
the end of the tale.

For a long time David stood looking into the sparkling night before him,
speechless and unmoving, his hands clasped behind him, his head bent
forward, as though in a dream.

How, all in an instant, had life changed for him! How had Soolsby’s
tale of Eglington’s death filled him with a pity deeper than he had ever
felt-the futile, bitter, unaccomplished life, the audacious, brilliant
genius quenched, a genius got from the same source as his own resistless
energy and imagination, from the same wild spring. Gone--all gone,
with only pity to cover him, unloved, unloving, unbemoaned, save by the
Quaker girl whose true spirit he had hurt, save by the wife whom he had
cruelly wronged and tortured; and pity was the thing that moved them
both, unfathomable and almost maternal, in that sense of motherhood
which, in spite of love or passion, is behind both, behind all, in every
true woman’s life.

At last David spoke.

“Who knows of all this--of who I am, Soolsby?”

“Lady Eglington and myself, my lord.”

“Only she and you?”

“Only us two, Egyptian.”

“Then let it be so--for ever.”

Soolsby was startled, dumfounded.

“But you will take your title and estates, my lord; you will take the
place which is your own.”

“And prove my grandfather wrong? Had he not enough sorrow? And change my
life, all to please thee, Soolsby?”

He took the old man’s shoulders in his hands again. “Thee has done thy
duty as few in this world, Soolsby, and given friendship such as few
give. But thee must be content. I am David Claridge, and so shall remain
ever.”

“Then, since he has no male kin, the title dies, and all that’s his will
go to her ladyship,” Soolsby rejoined sourly.

“Does thee grudge her ladyship what was his?”

“I grudge her what is yours, my lord--”

Suddenly Soolsby paused, as though a new thought had come to him, and he
nodded to himself in satisfaction. “Well, since you will have it so, it
will be so, Egyptian; but it is a queer fuddle, all of it; and where’s
the way out, tell me that, my lord?”

David spoke impatiently. “Call me ‘my lord’ no more.... But I will go
back to England to her that’s waiting at the Red Mansion, and you will
remember, Soolsby--”

Slowly the great flotilla of dahabiehs floated with the strong current
down towards Cairo, the great sails swelling to the breeze that blew
from the Libyan Hills. Along the bank of the Nile thousands of Arabs and
fellaheen crowded to welcome “the Saadat,” bringing gifts of dates and
eggs and fowls and dourha and sweetmeats, and linen cloth; and even
in the darkness and in the trouble that was on her, and the harrowing
regret that she had not been with Eglington in his last hour--she little
knew what Eglington had said to Faith in that last hour--Hylda’s heart
was soothed by the long, loud tribute paid to David.

As she sat in the evening light, David and Lacey came, and were received
by the Duchess of Snowdon, who could only say to David, as she held his
hand, “Windlehurst sent his regards to you, his loving regards. He was
sure you would come home--come home. He wished he were in power for your
sake.”

So, for a few moments she talked vaguely, and said at last: “But Lady
Eglington, she will be glad to see you, such old friends as you are,
though not so old as Windlehurst and me--thirty years, over thirty la,
la!”

They turned to go to Hylda, and came face to face with Kate Heaver.

Kate looked at David as one would look who saw a lost friend return from
the dead. His eyes lighted, he held out his hand to her.

“It is good to see thee here,” he said gently. “And ‘tis the cross-roads
once again, sir,” she rejoined.

“Thee means thee will marry Jasper?”

“Ay, I will marry Jasper now,” she answered. “It has been a long
waiting.”

“It could not be till now,” she responded.

David looked at her reflectively, and said: “By devious ways the human
heart comes home. One can only stand in the door and wait. He has been
patient.”

“I have been patient, too,” she answered.

As the Duchess disappeared with David, a swift change came over Lacey.
He spun round on one toe, and, like a boy of ten, careered around the
deck to the tune of a negro song.

“Say, things are all right in there with them two, and it’s my turn
now,” he said. “Cute as she can be, and knows the game! Twice a widow,
and knows the game! Waiting, she is down in Cairo, where the orange
blossom blows. I’m in it; we’re all in it--every one of us. Cousin
Hylda’s free now, and I’ve got no past worth speaking of; and, anyhow,
she’ll understand, down there in Cairo. Cute as she can be--”

Suddenly he swung himself down to the deck below. “The desert’s the
place for me to-night,” he said. Stepping ashore, he turned to where
the Duchess stood on the deck, gazing out into the night. “Well, give my
love to the girls,” he called, waving a hand upwards, as it were to the
wide world, and disappeared into the alluring whiteness.

“I’ve got to get a key-thought,” he muttered to himself, as he walked
swiftly on, till only faint sounds came to him from the riverside. In
the letter he had written to Hylda, which was the turning-point of
all for her, he had spoken of these “key-thoughts.” With all the
childishness he showed at times, he had wisely felt his way into spheres
where life had depth and meaning. The desert had justified him to
himself and before the spirits of departed peoples, who wandered over
the sands, until at last they became sand also, and were blown hither
and thither, to make beds for thousands of desert wayfarers, or paths
for camels’ feet, or a blinding storm to overwhelm the traveller and
the caravan; Life giving and taking, and absorbing and destroying, and
destroying and absorbing, till the circle of human existence wheel to
the full, and the task of Time be accomplished.

On the gorse-grown common above Hamley, David and Faith, and David’s
mother Mercy, had felt the same soul of things stirring--in the green
things of green England, in the arid wastes of the Libyan desert, on the
bosom of the Nile, where Mahommed Hassan now lay in a nugger singing a
song of passion, Nature, with burning voice, murmuring down the unquiet
world its message of the Final Peace through the innumerable years.



GLOSSARY

  Aiwa----Yes.
  Allah hu Achbar----God is most Great.
  Al’mah----Female professional singers, signifying “a learned female.”
   Ardab----A measure equivalent to five English bushels.

  Backsheesh----Tip, douceur.
  Balass----Earthen vessel for carrying water.
  Bdsha----Pasha.
  Bersim----Clover.
  Bismillah----In the name of God.
  Bowdb----A doorkeeper.

  Dahabieh----A Nile houseboat with large lateen sails.
  Darabukkeh----A drum made of a skin stretched over an earthenware funnel.
  Dourha----Maize.

  Effendina----Most noble.
  El Azhar----The Arab University at Cairo.

  Fedddn----A measure of land representing about an acre.
  Fellah----The Egyptian peasant.

  Ghiassa----Small boat.

  Hakim----Doctor.
  Hasheesh----Leaves of hemp.

  Inshallah----God willing.

  Kdnoon----A musical instrument like a dulcimer.
  Kavass----An orderly.
  Kemengeh----A cocoanut fiddle.
  Khamsin----A hot wind of Egypt and the Soudan.

  Kourbash----A whip, often made of rhinoceros hide.

  La ilaha illa-llah----There is no deity but God.

  Malaish----No matter.
  Malboos----Demented.
  Mastaba----A bench.
  Medjidie----A Turkish Order.
  Mooshrabieh----Lattice window.
  Moufettish----High Steward.
  Mudir----The Governor of a
  Mudirieh, or province.
  Muezzin----The sheikh of the mosque who calls to prayer.

  Narghileh----A Persian pipe.
  Nebool----A quarter-staff.

  Ramadan----The Mahommedan season of fasting.

  Saadat-el-bdsha----Excellency Pasha.
  Sdis----Groom.
  Sakkia----The Persian water-wheel.
  Salaam----Eastern salutation.
  Sheikh-el-beled----Head of a village.

  Tarboosh----A Turkish turban.

  Ulema----Learned men.

  Wakf----Mahommedan Court dealing with succession, etc.
  Welee----A holy man or saint.

  Yashmak----A veil for the lower part of the face.
  Yelek----A long vest or smock.


     ETEXT EDITOR’S BOOKMARKS:

     A cloak of words to cover up the real thought behind
     Antipathy of the man in the wrong to the man in the right
     Antipathy of the lesser to the greater nature
     Begin to see how near good is to evil
     But the years go on, and friends have an end
     Cherish any alleviating lie
     Does any human being know what he can bear of temptation
     Friendship means a giving and a getting
     He’s a barber-shop philosopher
     Heaven where wives without number awaited him
     Honesty was a thing he greatly desired--in others
     How little we can know to-day what we shall feel tomorrow
     How many conquests have been made in the name of God
     Monotonously intelligent
     No virtue in not falling, when you’re not tempted
     Of course I’ve hated, or I wouldn’t be worth a button
     One does the work and another gets paid
     Only the supremely wise or the deeply ignorant who never alter
     Passion to forget themselves
     Political virtue goes unrewarded
     She knew what to say and what to leave unsaid
     Smiling was part of his equipment
     Sometimes the longest way round is the shortest way home
     Soul tortured through different degrees of misunderstanding
     The vague pain of suffered indifference
     There is no habit so powerful as the habit of care of others
     There’s no credit in not doing what you don’t want to do
     To-morrow is no man’s gift
     Tricks played by Fact to discredit the imagination
     Triumph of Oriental duplicity over Western civilisation
     We want every land to do as we do; and we want to make ‘em do it
     We must live our dark hours alone
     When God permits, shall man despair?
     Woman’s deepest right and joy and pain in one--to comfort





*** End of this LibraryBlog Digital Book "The Weavers: a tale of England and Egypt of fifty years ago - Complete" ***

Copyright 2023 LibraryBlog. All rights reserved.



Home